<?xml version='1.0' encoding='UTF-8'?><?xml-model href="../../Schemas/eltec-1.rng" type="application/xml" 
            schematypens="http://relaxng.org/ns/structure/1.0"?><?xml-model href="../../Schemas/eltec-1.rng" type="application/xml" 
            schematypens="http://purl.oclc.org/dsdl/schematron"?><TEI xmlns="http://www.tei-c.org/ns/1.0" xml:id="ENG18471" xml:lang="en">
    <teiHeader>
        <fileDesc>
            <titleStmt>
                <title>Wuthering Heights : ELTeC edition</title>
                <author ref="https://viaf.org/viaf/97097302/">Brontë, Emily (1818-1848)</author>
            </titleStmt>
            <extent>
                <measure unit="words">115398</measure>
                <measure unit="pages">764</measure>
            </extent>
            <publicationStmt>
<publisher ref="https://distant-reading.net">COST Action "Distant Reading for European Literary History" (CA16204)</publisher>
<distributor ref="https://zenodo.org/communities/eltec/">Zenodo.org</distributor><date when="2021-04-09"/>
<availability><licence target="https://creativecommons.org/licenses/by/4.0/"/></availability>
<ref type="doi" target="https://doi.org/10.5281/zenodo.3462435">ELTeC</ref>
<ref type="doi" target="https://doi.org/10.5281/zenodo.4662444">ELTeC release 1.1.0</ref>
<ref type="doi" target="https://doi.org/10.5281/zenodo.3533868">ELTeC-eng</ref>
<ref type="doi" target="https://doi.org/10.5281/zenodo.4662490">ELTeC-eng release 1.0.1</ref>
</publicationStmt>

            <sourceDesc><bibl type="digitalSource"><title>Wuthering Heights (1st edition) : wikisource
                        edition</title>
                    <ref target="https://en.wikisource.org/wiki/Wuthering_Heights_(1st_edition)"/>
                </bibl><bibl type="firstEdition" n="B7446"><title>Wuthering Heights : A novel</title>
                        by
                    <author>Ellis Bell</author>
                    <publisher>London: T. C. Newby</publisher>
                    <date>1847</date>
                    <ref target="http://archive.org/details/wutheringheights01bron">vol 1</ref>; 
                 <ref target="http://archive.org/details/wutheringheights02bron">vol 2</ref></bibl></sourceDesc>
        </fileDesc>
        <encodingDesc n="eltec-1">
            <p/>
        </encodingDesc>
        <profileDesc>
            <langUsage>
                <language ident="en"/>
            </langUsage>
            <textClass>
                <keywords>
                    <term>Character: Gypsy</term>
                </keywords>
            </textClass>
            <textDesc>
                <authorGender xmlns="http://distantreading.net/eltec/ns" key="F"/>
                <size xmlns="http://distantreading.net/eltec/ns" key="long"/>
                <reprintCount xmlns="http://distantreading.net/eltec/ns" key="high"/>
                <timeSlot xmlns="http://distantreading.net/eltec/ns" key="T1"/>
            </textDesc>
        </profileDesc>
        <revisionDesc>
<change when="2021-04-09">Converted by checkUp script for new release</change>
<change when="2020-11-14">Converted by checkUp script for new release</change>
            <change when="2020-05-19">Add text classifications from Bassett</change>
            <change when="2019-11-09">Checked by releaseChecker script</change>
            <change when="2018-12-12">LB added header</change>
        </revisionDesc>
    </teiHeader>
    <text type="T1FLH">
        <front>
            <div type="titlepage">
                <p>Wuthering Heights</p>
                <p>A novel,</p>
                <p>By Ellis Bell,</p>
                <p>in three volumes...</p>
                <p>London:</p>
                <p>Thomas Cautley Newby, publisher, 72 Mortimer St., Cavendish Sq.</p>
                <p>1847.</p>
            </div>
        </front>
        <body>

            <div type="group">
                <div type="chapter">

                    <pb n="1"/>


                    <head>CHAPTER I.</head>

                    <p>1801——I have just returned from a visit to my landlord—the solitary neighbour
                        that I shall be troubled with. This is certainly, a beautiful country! In
                        all England, I do not believe that I could have fixed on a situation so
                        completely removed from the stir of society. A perfect misanthropist's
                        Heaven—and Mr. Heathcliff and I are such a suitable pair to divide the
                        desolation between us. A capital fellow! He little imagined how my heart
                        warmed towards him when I beheld his black <pb n="2"/>eyes withdraw so
                        suspiciously under their brows, as I rode up, and when his fingers sheltered
                        themselves, with a jealous resolution, still further in his waistcoat, as I
                        announced my name.</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Heathcliff?" I said.</p>
                    <p>A nod was the answer.</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Lockwood your new tenant, sir—I do myself the honour of calling as soon
                        as possible, after my arrival, to express the hope that I have not
                        inconvenienced you by my perseverance in soliciting the occupation of
                        Thrushcross Grange: I heard, yesterday, you had had some thoughts—"</p>
                    <p>"Thrushcross Grange is my own, sir," he interrupted wincing, "I should not
                        allow any one to inconvenience me, if I could hinder it—walk in!"</p>
                    <p>The "walk in," was uttered with closed teeth and expressed the sentiment, "Go
                        to the Deuce!" even the gate over which he leant manifested no sympathizing
                        movement to the <pb n="3"/>words; and I think that circumstance determined
                        me to accept the invitation: I felt interested in a man who seemed more
                        exaggeratedly reserved than myself.</p>
                    <p>When he saw my horse's breast fairly pushing the barrier, he did pull out his
                        hand to unchain it, and then sullenly preceded me up the causeway, calling,
                        as we entered the court:</p>
                    <p>"Joseph, take Mr. Lockwood's horse; and bring up some wine."</p>
                    <p>"Here we have the whole establishment of domestics, I suppose," was the
                        reflection, suggested by this compound order, "No wonder the grass grows up
                        between the flags, and cattle are the only hedge-cutters."</p>
                    <p>Joseph was an elderly, nay, an old man, very old, perhaps, though hale and
                        sinewy.</p>
                    <p>"The Lord help us!" he soliloquised in an undertone of peevish displeasure,
                        while relieving me of my horse: looking, meantime, in my face so sourly that
                        I charitably conjectured he must have need of divine aid to digest his <pb n="4"/>dinner, and his pious ejaculation had no reference to my
                        unexpected advent.</p>
                    <p>Wuthering Heights is the name of Mr. Heathcliff's dwelling. "Wuthering" being
                        a significant provincial adjective, descriptive of the atmospheric tumult to
                        which its station is exposed, in stormy weather. Pure, bracing ventilation
                        they must have up there, at all times, indeed: one may guess the power of
                        the north wind, blowing over the edge, by the excessive slant of a few,
                        stunted firs at the end of the house; and by a range of gaunt thorns all
                        stretching their limbs one way, as if craving alms of the sun. Happily, the
                        architect had foresight to build it strong: the narrow windows are deeply
                        set in the wall; and the corners defended with large jutting stones.</p>
                    <p>Before passing the threshold, I paused to admire a quantity of grotesque
                        carving lavished over the front, and especially about the principal door,
                        above which, among a wilderness of <pb n="5"/>crumbling griffins, and
                        shameless little boys, I detected the date "1500," and the name "Hareton
                        Earnshaw," I would have made a few comments, and requested a short history
                        of the place, from the surly owner, but his attitude at the door appeared to
                        demand my speedy entrance, or complete departure, and I had no desire to
                        aggravate his impatience, previous to inspecting the penetralium.</p>
                    <p>One step brought us into the family sitting-room, without any introductory
                        lobby, or passage: they call it here "the house" preeminently. It includes
                        kitchen, and parlor, generally, but I believe at Wuthering Heights, the
                        kitchen is forced to retreat altogether, into another quarter, at least I
                        distinguished a chatter of tongues, and a clatter of culinary utensils, deep
                        within; and I observed no signs of roasting, boiling, or baking, about the
                        huge fire-place; nor any glitter of copper saucepans and tin cullenders on
                        the walls. One end, indeed, reflected splendidly both light and heat, <pb n="6"/>from ranks of immense pewter dishes; interspersed with silver
                        jugs, and tankards, towering row after row, in a vast oak dresser, to the
                        very roof. The latter had never been under-drawn, its entire anatomy lay
                        bare to an inquiring eye, except where a frame of wood laden with oatcakes,
                        and clusters of legs of beef, mutton and ham, concealed it. Above the
                        chimney were sundry villanous old guns, and a couple of horse-pistols, and,
                        by way of ornament, three gaudily painted canisters disposed along its
                        ledge. The floor was of smooth, white stone: the chairs, high-backed,
                        primitive structures, painted green: one or two heavy black ones lurking in
                        the shade. In an arch, under the dresser, reposed a huge, liver-coloured
                        bitch pointer surrounded by a swarm of squealing puppies, and other dogs,
                        haunted other recesses.</p>
                    <p>The apartment, and furniture would have been nothing extraordinary as
                        belonging to a homely, northern farmer with a stubborn <pb n="7"/>countenance, and stalwart limbs, set out to advantage in knee-breeches,
                        and gaiters. Such an individual, seated in his arm-chair, his mug of ale
                        frothing on the round table before him, is to be seen in any circuit of five
                        or six miles among these hills, if you go at the right time, after dinner.
                        But, Mr. Heathcliff forms a singular contrast to his abode and style of
                        living. He is a dark skinned gypsy, in aspect, in dress, and manners, a
                        gentleman, that is, as much a gentleman as many a country squire: rather
                        slovenly, perhaps, yet not looking amiss, with his negligence, because he
                        has an erect and handsome figure—and rather morose—possibly, some people
                        might suspect him of a degree of under-bred pride—I have a sympathetic chord
                        within that tells me it is nothing of the sort; I know, by instinct, his
                        reserve springs from an aversion to showy displays of feeling—to
                        manifestations of mutual kindliness. He'll love and hate, equally under
                        cover, and esteem it a species of impertinence, to be loved <pb n="8"/>or
                        hated again—No, I'm running on too fast—I bestow my own attributes over
                        liberally on him. Mr. Heathcliff may have entirely dissimilar reasons for
                        keeping his hand out of the way, when he meets a would be acquaintance, to
                        those which actuate me. Let me hope my constitution is almost peculiar: my
                        dear mother used to say I should never have a comfortable home, and only
                        last summer, I proved myself perfectly unworthy of one.</p>
                    <p>While enjoying a month of fine weather at the sea-coast, I was thrown into
                        the company of a most fascinating creature, a real goddess, in my eyes, as
                        long as she took no notice of me. I "never told my love" vocally; still, if
                        looks have language, the merest idiot might have guessed I was over head and
                        ears: she understood me, at last, and looked a return—the sweetest of all
                        imaginable looks—and what did I do? I confess it with shame—shrunk icily
                        into myself, like a snail, at every glance retired colder and farther; till,
                        finally, the <pb n="9"/>poor innocent was led to doubt her own senses, and,
                        overwhelmed with confusion at her supposed mistake, persuaded her mamma to
                        decamp.</p>
                    <p>By this curious turn of disposition I have gained the reputation of
                        deliberate heartlessness, how undeserved, I alone can appreciate.</p>
                    <p>I took a seat at the end of the hearthstone opposite that towards which my
                        landlord advanced, and filled up an interval of silence by attempting to
                        caress the canine mother, who had left her nursery, and was sneaking
                        wolfishly to the back of my legs, her lip curled up, and her white teeth
                        watering for a snatch.</p>
                    <p>My caress provoked a long, guttural gnarl.</p>
                    <p>"You'd better let the dog alone," growled Mr. Heathcliff, in unison, checking
                        fiercer demonstrations with a punch of his foot. "She's not accustomed to be
                        spoiled—not kept for a pet."</p>
                    <p>Then, striding to a side-door, he shouted again.</p>
                    <p><pb n="10"/>"Joseph!"</p>
                    <p>Joseph mumbled indistinctly in the depths of the cellar; but, gave no
                        intimation of ascending; so, his master dived down to him, leaving me
                            <hi>vis-à-vis</hi> the ruffianly bitch, and a pair of grim, shaggy sheep
                        dogs, who shared with her a jealous guardianship over all my movements.</p>
                    <p>Not anxious to come in contact with their fangs, I sat still—but, imagining
                        they would scarcely understand tacit insults, I unfortunately indulged in
                        winking and making faces at the trio, and some turn of my physiognomy so
                        irritated madam, that she suddenly broke into a fury, and leapt on my knees.
                        I flung her back, and hastened to interpose the table between us. This
                        proceeding roused the whole hive. Half-a-dozen four-footed fiends, of
                        various sizes, and ages, issued from hidden dens to the common centre. I
                        felt my heels, and coat-laps peculiar subjects of assault; and, parrying off
                        the larger combatants, as <pb n="11"/>effectually as I could, with the
                        poker, I was constrained to demand, aloud, assistance from some of the
                        household, in re-establishing peace.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Heathcliff and his man climbed the cellar steps with vexatious phlegm. I
                        don't think they moved one second faster than usual, though the hearth was
                        an absolute tempest of worrying and yelping.</p>
                    <p>Happily, an inhabitant of the kitchen made more dispatch; a lusty dame, with
                        tucked up gown, bare arms, and fire-flushed cheeks, rushed into the midst of
                        us flourishing a fryingpan; and used that weapon, and her tongue to such
                        purpose, that the storm subsided magically, and she only remained, heaving
                        like a sea after a high wind, when her master entered on the scene.</p>
                    <p>"What the devil is the matter?" he asked, eyeing me in a manner that I could
                        ill endure after this inhospitable treatment.</p>
                    <p>"What the devil, indeed!" I muttered. "The herd of possessed swine could have
                        had <pb n="12"/>no worse spirits in them than those animals of yours, sir.
                        You might as well leave a stranger with a brood of tigers!"</p>
                    <p>"They wont meddle with persons who touch nothing," he remarked, putting the
                        bottle before me, and restoring the displaced table. "The dogs do right to
                        be vigilant. Take a glass of wine?"</p>
                    <p>"No, thank you."</p>
                    <p>"Not bitten, are you?"</p>
                    <p>"If I had been, I would have set my signet on the biter."</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff's countenance relaxed into a grin.</p>
                    <p>"Come, come," he said, "you are flurried, Mr. Lockwood. Here, take a little
                        wine. Guests are so exceedingly rare in this house that I and my dogs, I am
                        willing to own, hardly know how to receive them. Your health, sir!"</p>
                    <p>I bowed and returned the pledge; beginning to perceive that it would be
                        foolish to sit sulking for the misbehaviour of a pack of curs: <pb n="13"/>besides, I felt loath to yield the fellow further amusement, at my
                        expense; since his humour took that turn.</p>
                    <p>He-probably swayed by prudential considerations of the folly of offending a
                        good tenant—relaxed, a little, in the laconic style of chipping of his
                        pronouns, and auxiliary verbs; and introduced, what he supposed would be a
                        subject of interest to me, a discourse on the advantages and disadvantages
                        of my present place of retirement.</p>
                    <p>I found him very intelligent on the topics we touched; and, before I went
                        home, I was encouraged so far as to volunteer another visit, to-morrow.</p>
                    <p>He evidently wished no repetition of my intrusion. I shall go,
                        notwithstanding. It is astonishing how sociable I feel myself compared with
                        him.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="14"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER II.</head>

                    <p>Yesterday afternoon set in misty and cold. I had half a mind to spend it by
                        my study fire, instead of wading through heath and mud to Wuthering
                        Heights.</p>
                    <p>On coming up from dinner, however, (N. B. I dine between twelve and one
                        o'clock; the housekeeper, a matronly lady taken as a fixture along with the
                        house, could not, or would not comprehend my request that I might be served
                        at five.) On mounting the stairs with this lazy intention, and stepping into
                        the room, I <pb n="15"/>saw a servant-girl on her knees, surrounded by
                        brushes, and coal-scuttles; and raising an infernal dust as she extinguished
                        the flames with heaps of cinders. This spectacle drove me back immediately;
                        I took my hat, and, after a four miles walk, arrived at Heathcliff's garden
                        gate just in time to escape the first feathery flakes of a snow shower.</p>
                    <p>On that bleak hill top the earth was hard with a black frost, and the air
                        made me shiver through every limb. Being unable to remove the chain, I
                        jumped over, and, running up the flagged causeway bordered with straggling
                        gooseberry bushes, knocked vainly for admittance, till my knuckles tingled,
                        and the dogs howled.</p>
                    <p>"Wretched inmates!" I ejaculated, mentally, "you deserve perpetual isolation
                        from your species for your churlish inhospitality. At least, I would not
                        keep my doors barred in the day time—I don't care—I will get in!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="16"/>So resolved, I grasped the latch, and shook it vehemently.
                        Vinegar-faced Joseph projected his head from a round window of the barn.</p>
                    <p>"Whet are ye for?" he shouted. "T' maisters dahn i' t'fowld. Goa rahnd by th'
                        end ut' laith, if yah went tuh spake tull him."</p>
                    <p>"Is there nobody inside to open the door?" I hallooed, responsively.</p>
                    <p>"They's nobbut t' missis; and shoo'll nut oppen't an ye mak yer flaysome dins
                        till neeght."</p>
                    <p>"Why? cannot you tell her who I am, eh, Joseph?"</p>
                    <p>"Nor-ne me! Aw'll hae noa hend wi't," muttered the head vanishing.</p>
                    <p>The snow began to drive thickly. I seized the handle to essay another trial;
                        when a young man, without coat, and shouldering a pitchfork, appeared in the
                        yard behind. He hailed me to follow him, and, after marching <pb n="17"/>through a washhouse, and a paved area containing a coal-shed, pump, and
                        pigeon cote, we at length arrived in the large, warm, cheerful apartment,
                        where I was formerly received.</p>
                    <p>It glowed delightfully in the radiance of an immense fire, compounded of
                        coal, peat, and wood: and near the table, laid for a plentiful evening meal,
                        I was pleased to observe the "missis," an individual whose existence I had
                        never previously suspected.</p>
                    <p>I bowed and waited, thinking she would bid me take a seat. She looked at me,
                        leaning back in her chair, and remained motionless and mute.</p>
                    <p>"Rough weather!" I remarked. "I'm afraid, Mrs. Heathcliff, the floor must
                        bear the consequence of your servant's leisure attendance: I had hard work
                        to make them hear me!"</p>
                    <p>She never opened her mouth. I stared—she stared also. At any rate, she kept
                        her eyes <pb n="18"/>on me, in a cool, regardless manner, exceedingly
                        embarrassing and disagreeable.</p>
                    <p>"Sit down," said the young man, gruffly. "He'll be in soon."</p>
                    <p>I obeyed; and hemmed, and called the villain Juno, who deigned, at this
                        second interview, to move the extreme tip of her tail, in token of owning my
                        acquaintance.</p>
                    <p>"A beautiful animal!" I commenced again. "Do you intend parting with the
                        little ones, madam?"</p>
                    <p>"They are not mine," said the amiable hostess more repellingly than
                        Heathcliff himself could have replied.</p>
                    <p>"Ah, your favourites are among these!" I continued, turning to an obscure
                        cushion full of something like cats.</p>
                    <p>"A strange choice of favourites," she observed scornfully.</p>
                    <p>Unluckily, it was a heap of dead rabbits—I hemmed once more, and drew closer
                        to the <pb n="19"/>hearth, repeating my comment on the wildness of the
                        evening.</p>
                    <p>"You should not have come out," she said, rising and reaching from the
                        chimney piece two of the painted canisters.</p>
                    <p>Her position before was sheltered from the light: now, I had a distinct view
                        of her whole figure and countenance. She was slender, and apparently
                        scarcely past girlhood: an admirable form, and the most exquisite little
                        face that I have ever had the pleasure of beholding: small features, very
                        fair; flaxen ringlets, or rather golden, hanging loose on her delicate neck;
                        and eyes—had they been agreeable in expression, they would have been
                        irresistible—fortunately for my susceptible heart, the only sentiment they
                        evinced hovered between scorn and a kind of desperation, singularly
                        unnatural to be detected there.</p>
                    <p>The canisters were almost out of her reach; I made a motion to aid her; she
                        turned upon me as a miser might turn, if any one attempted to assist him in
                        counting his gold.</p>
                    <p><pb n="20"/>"I don't want your help," she snapped, "I can get them for
                        myself."</p>
                    <p>"I beg your pardon," I hastened to reply.</p>
                    <p>"Were you asked to tea?" she demanded, tying an apron over her neat black
                        frock, and standing with a spoonful of the leaf poised over the pot.</p>
                    <p>"I shall be glad to have a cup," I answered.</p>
                    <p>"Were you asked?" she repeated.</p>
                    <p>"No;" I said, half smiling. "You are the proper person to ask me."</p>
                    <p>She flung the tea back, spoon and all; and resumed her chair in a pet, her
                        forehead corrugated, and her red under-lip pushed out, like a child's, ready
                        to cry.</p>
                    <p>Meanwhile, the young man had slung onto his person a decidedly shabby upper
                        garment, and, erecting himself before the blaze, looked down on me, from the
                        corner of his eyes, for all the world as if there were some mortal feud
                        unavenged between us. I began to doubt <pb n="21"/>whether he were a servant
                        or not; his dress and speech were both rude, entirely devoid of the
                        superiority observable in Mr. and Mrs. Heathcliff; his thick, brown curls
                        were rough and uncultivated, his whiskers encroached bearishly over his
                        cheeks, and his hands were embrowned like those of a common labourer, still
                        his bearing was free, almost haughty; and he showed none of a domestic's
                        assiduity in attending on the lady of the house.</p>
                    <p>In the absence of clear proofs of his condition, I deemed it best to abstain
                        from noticing his curious conduct, and, five minutes afterwards, the
                        entrance of Heathcliff relieved me, in some measure, from my uncomfortable
                        state.</p>
                    <p>"You see, sir, I am come according to promise!" I exclaimed, assuming the
                        cheerful "and I fear I shall be weather-bound for half an hour, if you can
                        afford me shelter during that space."</p>
                    <p>"Half an hour?" he said, shaking the <pb n="22"/>white flakes from his
                        clothes; "I wonder you should select the thick of a snow-storm to ramble
                        about in. Do you know that you run a risk of being lost in the marshes?
                        People familiar with these moors often miss their road on such evenings,
                        and, I can tell you, there is no chance of a change at present."</p>
                    <p>"Perhaps I can get a guide among your lads, and he might stay at the Grange
                        till morning—could you spare me one?"</p>
                    <p>"No, I could not."</p>
                    <p>"Oh, indeed! Well then, I must trust to my own sagacity."</p>
                    <p>"Umph!"</p>
                    <p>"Are you going to mak th'tea?" demanded he of the shabby coat, shifting his
                        ferocious gaze from me to the young lady.</p>
                    <p>"Is <hi>he</hi> to have any?" she asked, appealing to Heathcliff.</p>
                    <p>"Get it ready, will you?" was the answer, uttered so savagely that I started.
                        The tone in which the words were said, revealed a <pb n="23"/>genuine bad
                        nature. I no longer felt Inclined to call Heathcliff a capital fellow.</p>
                    <p>When the preparations were finished, he invited me with—</p>
                    <p>"Now, sir, bring forward your chair." And we all, including the rustic youth,
                        drew round the table, an austere silence prevailing while we discussed our
                        meal.</p>
                    <p>I thought, if I had caused the cloud, it was my duty to make an effort to
                        dispel it. They could not every day sit so grim and taciturn, and it was
                        impossible, however ill-tempered they might be, that the universal scowl
                        they wore was their every day countenance.</p>
                    <p>"It is strange," I began in the interval of swallowing one cup of tea, and
                        receiving another, "it is strange how custom can mould our tastes and ideas;
                        many could not imagine the existence of happiness in a life of such complete
                        exile from the world as you spend, Mr. Heathcliff; yet, I'll venture to say,
                        that, surrounded by your family, and with <pb n="24"/>your amiable lady as
                        the presiding genius over your home and heart—"</p>
                    <p>"My amiable lady!" he interrupted, with an almost diabolical sneer on his
                        face. "Where is she—my amiable lady?"</p>
                    <p>"Mrs. Heathcliff, your wife, I mean."</p>
                    <p>"Well, yes—Oh! you would intimate that her spirit has taken the post of
                        ministering angel, and guards the fortunes of Wuthering Heights, even when
                        her body is gone. Is that it?"</p>
                    <p>Perceiving myself in a blunder, I attempted to correct it. I might have seen
                        there was too great a disparity between the ages of the parties to make it
                        likely that they were man and wife. One was about forty; a period of mental
                        vigour at which men seldom cherish the delusion of being married for love,
                        by girls: that dream is reserved for the solace of our declining years. The
                        other did not look seventeen.</p>
                    <p>Then it flashed upon me; "the clown at <pb n="25"/>my elbow, who is drinking
                        his tea out of a basin, and eating his bread with unwashed hands, may be her
                        husband. Heathcliff, junior, of course. Here is the consequence of being
                        buried alive: she has thrown herself away upon that boor, from sheer
                        ignorance that better individuals existed! A sad pity—I must beware how I
                        cause her to regret her choice."</p>
                    <p>The last reflection may seem conceited; it was not. My neighbour struck me as
                        bordering on repulsive. I knew, through experience, that I was tolerably
                        attractive.</p>
                    <p>"Mrs. Heathcliff is my daughter-in-law," said Heathcliff, corroborating my
                        surmise. He turned, as he spoke, a peculiar look in her direction, a look of
                        hatred unless he has a most perverse set of facial muscles that will not,
                        like those of other people, interpret the language of his soul.</p>
                    <p>"Ah, certainly—I see now; you are the <pb n="26"/>favoured possessor of the
                        beneficent fairy," I remarked, turning to my neighbour.</p>
                    <p>This was worse than before: the youth grew crimson, and clenched his fist
                        with every appearance of a meditated assault. But he seemed to recollect
                        himself, presently; and smothered the storm in a brutal curse, muttered on
                        my behalf, which, however, I took care not to notice."</p>
                    <p>"Unhappy in your conjectures, sir!" observed my host; "we neither of us have
                        the privilege of owning your good fairy; her mate is dead. I said she was my
                        daughter-in-law, therefore, she must have married my son."</p>
                    <p>"And this young man is—"</p>
                    <p>"Not my son, assuredly!"</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff smiled again, as if it were rather too bold a jest to attribute
                        the paternity of that bear to him.</p>
                    <p>"My name is Hareton Earnshaw," growled the other; "and I'd counsel you to
                        respect it!</p>
                    <p><pb n="27"/>"I've shown no disrespect," was my reply, laughing internally at
                        the dignity with which he announced himself.</p>
                    <p>He fixed his eye on me longer than I cared to return the stare, for fear I
                        might be tempted either to box his ears, or render my hilarity audible. I
                        began to feel unmistakably out of place in that pleasant family circle. The
                        dismal spiritual atmosphere overcame, and more than neutralized the glowing
                        physical comforts round me; and I resolved to be cautious how I ventured
                        under those rafters a third time.</p>
                    <p>The business of eating being concluded, and no one uttering a word of
                        sociable conversation, I approached a window to examine the weather. A
                        sorrowful sight I saw; dark night coming down prematurely, and sky and hills
                        mingled in one bitter whirl of wind and suffocating snow.</p>
                    <p>"I don't think it possible for me to get home now, without a guide," I could
                        not help <pb n="28"/>exclaiming. "The roads will be buried already; and, if
                        they were bare, I could scarcely distinguish a foot in advance."</p>
                    <p>"Hareton, drive those dozen sheep into the barn porch. They'll be covered if
                        left in the fold all night; and put a plank before them," said
                        Heathcliff.</p>
                    <p>"How must I do?" I continued, with rising irritation.</p>
                    <p>There was no reply to my question; and, on looking round, I saw only Joseph
                        bringing in a pail of porridge for the dogs; and Mrs. Heathcliff, leaning
                        over the fire, diverting herself with burning a bundle of matches which had
                        fallen from the chimney-piece as she restored the tea-canister to its
                        place.</p>
                    <p>The former, when he had deposited his burden, took a critical survey of the
                        room; and, in cracked tones, grated out:</p>
                    <p>"Aw woonder hagh yah can faishion tuh stand thear i' idleness un war, when
                        all on 'em's goan aght! Bud yah're a nowt, and it's noa <pb n="29"/>use
                        talking—yah'll niver mend uh yer ill ways; bud, goa raight tuh t' divil,
                        like yer mother afore ye!"</p>
                    <p>I imagined, for a moment, that this piece of eloquence was addressed to me;
                        and, sufficiently enraged, stepped towards the aged rascal with an intention
                        of kicking him out of the door.</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Heathcliff, however, checked me by her answer.</p>
                    <p>"You scandalous old hypocrite!" she replied. "Are you not afraid of being
                        carried away bodily, whenever you mention the devil's name? I warn you to
                        refrain from provoking me, or I'll ask your abduction as a special favour.
                        Stop, look here, Joseph," she continued, taking a long, dark book from a
                        shelf. "I'll show you how far I've progressed in the Black Art—I shall soon
                        be competent to make a clear house of it. The red cow didn't die by chance;
                        and your rheumatism can hardly be reckoned among providential
                        visitations!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="30"/>"Oh, wicked, wicked!" gasped the elder, "may the Lord deliver us
                        from evil!"</p>
                    <p>"No, reprobate! you are a castaway—be off, or I'll hurt you seriously! I'll
                        have you all modlled in wax and clay; and the first who passes the limits, I
                        fix, shall—I'll not say what he shall be done to—but, you'll see! Go, I'm
                        looking at you!"</p>
                    <p>The little witch put a mock malignity into her beautiful eyes, and Joseph,
                        trembling with sincere horror, hurried out praying and ejaculating "wicked"
                        as he went.</p>
                    <p>I thought her conduct must be prompted by a species of dreary fun; and, now
                        that we were alone, I endeavoured to interest her in my distress.</p>
                    <p>"Mrs. Heathcliff," I said, earnestly, "you must excuse me for troubling you—I
                        presume, because, with that face, I'm sure you cannot help being
                        good-hearted. Do point out some landmarks by which I may know my way home—I
                        have no more idea how to get there than you would have how to get to
                        London!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="31"/>"Take the road you came," she answered, ensconcing herself in a
                        chair, with a candle, and the long book open before her. "It is brief
                        advice; but, as sound as I can give."</p>
                    <p>"Then, if you hear of me being discovered dead in a bog, or a pit full of
                        snow, your conscience wont whisper that it is partly your fault?"</p>
                    <p>"How so? I cannot escort you. They wouldn't let me go to the end of the
                        garden-wall."</p>
                    <p>"<hi>You</hi>! I should be sorry to ask you to cross the threshold, for my
                        convenience, on such a night," I cried. "I want you to <hi>tell</hi> me my
                        way, not to <hi>show</hi> it; or else to persuade Mr. Heathcliff to give me
                        a guide."</p>
                    <p>"Who? There is himself, Earnshaw, Zillah, Joseph, and I. Which would you
                        have?"</p>
                    <p>"Are there no boys at the farm?"</p>
                    <p>"No, those are all."</p>
                    <p>"Then, it follows that I am compelled to stay."</p>
                    <p><pb n="32"/>"That you may settle with your host. I have nothing to do with
                        it."</p>
                    <p>"I hope it will be a lesson to you, to make no more rash journeys on these
                        hills," cried Heathcliff's stern voice from the kitchen entrance. "As to
                        staying here, I don't keep accommodations for visiters; you must share a bed
                        with Hareton, or Joseph, if you do."</p>
                    <p>"I can sleep on a chair in this room," I replied.</p>
                    <p>"No, no! A stranger is a stranger, be he rich or poor—it will not suit me to
                        permit any one the range of the place while I am off guard!" said the
                        unmannerly wretch.</p>
                    <p>With this insult my patience was at an end. I uttered an expression of
                        disgust, and pushed past him into the yard, running against Earnshaw in my
                        haste. It was so dark that I could not see the means of exit, and, as I
                        wandered round, I heard another specimen of their civil behaviour amongst
                        each other.</p>
                    <p><pb n="33"/>At first, the young man appeared about to befriend me.</p>
                    <p>"I'll go with him as far as the park," he said.</p>
                    <p>"You'll go with him to hell!" exclaimed his master, or whatever relation he
                        bore. "And who is to look after the horses, eh?"</p>
                    <p>"A man's life is of more consequence than one evening's neglect of the
                        horses; somebody must go," murmured Mrs. Heathcliff, more kindly than I
                        expected.</p>
                    <p>"Not at your command!" retorted Hareton.</p>
                    <p>"If you set store on him, you'd better be quiet."</p>
                    <p>"Then I hope his ghost will haunt you; and I hope Mr. Heathcliff will never
                        get another tenant, till the Grange is a ruin!" she answered sharply.</p>
                    <p>"Hearken, hearken, shoo's cursing on em!" muttered Joseph, towards whom I had
                        been steering.</p>
                    <p><pb n="34"/>He sat within earshot, milking the cows, by the aid of a lantern
                        which I seized unceremoniously, and calling out that I would send it back on
                        the morrow, rushed to the nearest postern.</p>
                    <p>"Maister, maister, he's staling t' lantern!" shouted the ancient, pursuing my
                        retreat. "Hey, Gnasher! Hey, dog! Hey, wolf, holld him, holld him!"</p>
                    <p>On opening the little door, two hairy monsters flew at my throat, bearing me
                        down, and extinguishing the light, while a mingled guffaw, from Heathcliff
                        and Hareton, put the copestone on my rage and humiliation.</p>
                    <p>Fortunately, the beasts seemed more bent on stretching their paws, and
                        yawning, and flourishing their tails, than devouring me alive; but, they
                        would suffer no resurrection, and I was forced to lie till their malignant
                        masters pleased to deliver me: then hatless, and trembling with wrath, I
                        ordered the miscreants to <pb n="35"/>let me out—on their peril to keep me
                        one minute longer—with several incoherent threats of retaliation, that in
                        their indefinite depth of virulency, smacked of King Lear.</p>
                    <p>The vehemence of my agitation brought on a copious bleeding at the nose, and
                        still Heathcliff laughed, and still I scolded. I don't know what would have
                        concluded the scene had there not been one person at hand rather more
                        rational than myself, and more benevolent than my entertainer. This was
                        Zillah, the stout housewife; who at length issued forth to inquire into the
                        nature of the uproar. She thought that some of them had been laying violent
                        hands on me; and, not daring to attack her master, she turned her vocal
                        artillery against the younger scoundrel.</p>
                    <p>"Well, Mr. Earnshaw," she cried, "I wonder what you'll have agait next! Are
                        we going to murder folk on our very door-stones? I see this house will never
                        do for me—look at t' poor lad, he's fair choking! Wisht, wisht! <pb n="36"/>you mun'n't go on so—come in, and I'll cure that. There now, hold ye
                        still."</p>
                    <p>With these words she suddenly splashed a pint of icy water down my neck, and
                        pulled me into the kitchen. Mr. Heathcliff followed, his accidental
                        merriment expiring quickly in his habitual moroseness.</p>
                    <p>I was sick exceedingly, and dizzy and faint; and thus compelled, perforce, to
                        accept lodgings under his roof. He told Zillah to give me a glass of brandy,
                        and then passed on to the inner room, while she condoled with me on my sorry
                        predicament, and having obeyed his orders, whereby I was somewhat revived,
                        ushered me to bed.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="37"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER III.</head>

                    <p>While leading the way up-stairs, she recommended that I should hide the
                        candle, and not make a noise, for her master had an odd notion about the
                        chamber she would put me in; and never let anybody lodge there
                        willingly.</p>
                    <p>I asked the reason.</p>
                    <p>She did not know, she answered; she had only lived there a year or two; and
                        they had so many queer goings on, she could not begin to be curious.</p>
                    <p>Too stupified to be curious myself, I <pb n="38"/>fastened my door and
                        glanced round for the bed. The whole furniture consisted of a chair, a
                        clothes-press, and a large oak case, with squares cut out near the top,
                        resembling coach windows.</p>
                    <p>Having approached this structure, I looked inside, and perceived it to be a
                        singular sort of old-fashioned couch, very conveniently designed to obviate
                        the necessity for every member of the family having a room to himself. In
                        fact, it formed a little closet, and the ledge of a window, which it
                        enclosed, served as a table.</p>
                    <p>I slid back the panelled sides, got in with my light, pulled them together
                        again, and felt secure against the vigilance of Heathcliff, and every one
                        else.</p>
                    <p>The ledge, where I placed my candle, had a few mildewed books piled up in one
                        corner; and it was covered with writing scratched on the paint. This
                        writing, however, was nothing but a name repeated in all kinds of
                        characters, <pb n="39"/>large and small—<hi>Catherine Earnshaw</hi>; here
                        and there varied to <hi>Catherine Heathcliff</hi>, and then again to
                            <hi>Catherine Linton</hi>."</p>
                    <p>In vapid listlessness I leant my head against the window, and continued
                        spelling over Catherine Earnshaw—Heathcliff—Linton, till my eyes closed; but
                        they had not rested five minutes when a glare of white letters started from
                        the dark, as vivid as spectres—the air swarmed with Catherines; and rousing
                        myself to dispel the obtrusive name, I discovered my candle wick reclining
                        on one of the antique volumes, and perfuming the place with an odour of
                        roasted calf-skin.</p>
                    <p>I snuffed it off, and, very ill at ease, under the influence of cold and
                        lingering nausea, sat up, and spread open the injured tome on my knee. It
                        was a Testament, in lean type, and smelling dreadfully musty: a fly-leaf
                        bore the inscription—"Catherine Earnshaw, her book," and a date some quarter
                        of a century back.</p>
                    <p><pb n="40"/>I shut it, and took up another, and another, till I had examined
                        all. Catherine's library was select; and its state of dilapidation proved it
                        to have been well used, though not altogether for a legitimate purpose;
                        scarcely one chapter had escaped a pen and ink commentary, at least, the
                        appearance of one, covering every morsel of blank that the printer had
                        left.</p>
                    <p>Some were detached sentences; other parts took the form of a regular diary,
                        scrawled in an unformed, childish hand. At the top of an extra page, quite a
                        treasure probably when first lighted on, I was greatly amused to behold an
                        excellent caricature of my friend Joseph, rudely yet powerfully
                        sketched.</p>
                    <p>An immediate interest kindled within me for the unknown Catherine, and I
                        began, forthwith, to decypher her faded hieroglyphics.</p>
                    <p>"An awful Sunday!" commenced the paragraph beneath. "I wish my father were
                        back again. Hindley is a detestable substitute— <pb n="41"/>his conduct to
                        Heathcliff is atrocious—H. and I are going to rebel—we took our initiatory
                        step this evening.</p>
                    <p>"All day had been flooding with rain; we could not go to church, so Joseph
                        must needs get up a congregation in the garret; and, while Hindley and his
                        wife basked down stairs before a comfortable fire, doing anything but
                        reading their bibles, I'll answer for it; Heathcliff, myself, and the
                        unhappy plough-boy, were commanded to take our Prayer-books, and mount—we
                        were ranged in a row, on a sack of corn, groaning and shivering, and hoping
                        that Joseph would shiver too, so that he might give us a short homily for
                        his own sake. A vain idea! The service lasted precisely three hours; and yet
                        my brother had the face to exclaim, when he saw us descending,</p>
                    <p>"'What, done already?"</p>
                    <p>"On Sunday evenings we used to be permitted to play, if we did not make much
                        noise; now <pb n="42"/>a mere titter is sufficient to send us into
                        corners!</p>
                    <p>"'You forget you have a master here," says the tyrant. 'I'll demolish the
                        first who puts me out of temper! I insist on perfect sobriety and silence.
                        Oh, boy! was that you? Frances, darling, pull his hair as you go by; I heard
                        him snap his fingers.</p>
                    <p>"Frances pulled his hair heartily; and then went and seated herself on her
                        husband's knee, and there they were, like two babies, kissing and talking
                        nonsense by the hour—foolish palaver that we should be ashamed of.</p>
                    <p>"We made ourselves as snug as our means allowed in the arch of the dresser. I
                        had just fastened our pinafores together, and hung them up for a curtain;
                        when in comes Joseph, on an errand from the stables. He tears down my
                        handywork, boxes my ears, and croaks:</p>
                    <p>"'T' maister nobbut just buried, and Sabbath nut oe'red, und t' sabnd, uh't
                        gospel still i' <pb n="43"/>yer lugs, and yah darr be laiking! shame on ye!
                        sit ye dahn, ill chllder! they's good books eneugh if ye'll read 'em; sit ye
                        dahn, and think uh yer sowls!"</p>
                    <p>Saying this, he compelled us so to square our positions that we might
                        receive, from the far-off fire, a dull ray to show us the text of the lumber
                        he thrust upon us.</p>
                    <p>"I could not bear the employment. I took my dingy volume by the scroop, and
                        hurled it into the dog-kennel, vowing I hated a good book.</p>
                    <p>"Heathcliff kicked his to the same place.</p>
                    <p>"Then there was a hubbub!</p>
                    <p>"'Maister Hindley!' shouted our chaplain. 'Maister, coom hither! Miss Cathy's
                        riven th' back off 'Th' Helmet uh Salvation,' un' Heathcliff 's pawsed his
                        fit intuh t' first part uh 'T' Brooad Way to Destruction!' It's fair
                        flaysome ut yah let 'em goa on this gait. Ech! th' owd man ud uh laced 'em
                        properly—bud he's goan!'</p>
                    <p><pb n="44"/>"Hindley hurried up from his paradise on the hearth, and seizing
                        one of us by the collar, and the other by the arm, hurled both into the
                        back-kitchen; where, Joseph asseverated, "owd Nick" would fetch us as sure
                        as we were living; and, so comforted, we each sought a separate nook to
                        await his advent.</p>
                    <p>"I reached this book, and a pot of ink from a shelf, and pushed the
                        house-door ajar to give me light, and I have got the time on with writing
                        for twenty minutes; but my companion is impatient and proposes that we
                        should appropriate the dairy woman's cloak, and have a scamper on the moors,
                        under its shelter. A pleasant suggestion—and then, if the surly old man come
                        in, he may believe his prophesy verified—we cannot be damper, or colder, in
                        the rain than we are here."</p>

                    <milestone unit="section" rend="stars"/>
                    <p>I suppose Catherine fulfilled her project, <pb n="45"/>for the next sentence
                        took up another subject; she waxed lachrymose.</p>
                    <p>"How little did I dream that Hindley would ever make me cry so!" she wrote.
                        "My head aches, till I cannot keep it on the pillow; and still I can't give
                        over. Poor Heathcliff! Hindley calls him a vagabond, and wont let him sit
                        with us, nor eat with us any more; and, he says, he and I must not play
                        together, and threatens to turn him out of the house if we break his
                        orders.</p>
                    <p>"He has been blaming our father (how dared he?) for treating H. too
                        liberally; and swears he will reduce him to his right place—"</p>

                    <milestone unit="section" rend="stars"/>

                    <p>I began to nod drowsily over the dim page; my eye wandered from manuscript to
                        print. I saw a red ornamented title. . . "Seventy Times Seven, and the First
                        of the Seventy First. <pb n="46"/>A Pious Discourse delivered by the
                        Reverend Jabes Branderham, in the Chapel of Gimmerden Sough." And while I
                        was, half consciously, worrying my brain to guess what Jabes Branderham
                        would make of his subject, I sank back in bed, and fell asleep.</p>
                    <p>Alas, for the effects of bad tea and bad temper! what else could it be that
                        made me pass such a terrible night? I don't remember another that I can at
                        all compare with it since I was capable of suffering.</p>
                    <p>I began to dream, almost before I ceased to be sensible of my locality. I
                        thought it was morning; and I had set out on my way home, with Joseph for a
                        guide. The snow lay yards deep in our road; and, as we floundered on, my
                        companion wearied me with constant reproaches that I had not brought a
                        pilgrim's staff: telling me I could never get into the house without one,
                        and boastfully flourishing a heavy-headed cudgel, which I understood to be
                        so denominated.</p>
                    <p><pb n="47"/>For a moment I considered it absurd that I should need such a
                        weapon to gain admittance into my own residence. Then, a new idea flashed
                        across me. I was not going there; we were journeying to hear the famous
                        Jabes Branderham preach from the text—"Seventy Times Seven;" and either
                        Joseph, the preacher, or I had committed the "First of the Seventy First,"
                        and were to be publicly exposed and excommunicated.</p>
                    <p>We came to the chapel—I have passed it really in my walks, twice or thrice:
                        it lies in a hollow, between two hills—an elevated hollow—near a swamp,
                        whose peaty moisture is said to answer all the purposes of embalming on the
                        few corpses deposited there. The roof has been kept whole hitherto, but, as
                        the clergyman's stipend is only twenty pounds per annum, and a house with
                        two rooms, threatening speedily to determine into one, no clergyman will
                        undertake the duties of pastor, especially, as it is currently reported that
                        his flock would rather <pb n="48"/>let him starve than increase the living
                        by one penny from their own pockets. However, in my dream, Jabes had a full
                        and attentive congregation: and he preached—good God—what a sermon! Divided
                        into <hi>four hundred and ninety</hi> parts—each fully equal to an ordinary
                        address from the pulpit—and each discussing a separate sin! Where he
                        searched for them, I cannot tell; he had his private manner of interpreting
                        the phrase, and it seemed necessary the brother should sin different sins on
                        every occasion.</p>
                    <p>They were of the most curious character—odd trangressions that I never
                        imagined previously.</p>
                    <p>Oh, how weary I grew. How I writhed, and yawned, and nodded, and revived! How
                        I pinched and pricked myself, and rubbed my eyes, and stood up, and sat down
                        again, and nudged Joseph to inform me if he would <hi>ever</hi> have
                        done!"</p>
                    <p>I was condemned to hear all out—finally, he <pb n="49"/>reached the
                            "<hi>First of the Seventy-First</hi>."At that crisis, a sudden
                        inspiration descended on me; I was moved to rise and denounce Jabes
                        Branderham as the sinner of the sin that no christian need pardon.</p>
                    <p>"Sir," I exclaimed, "sitting here, within these four walls, at one stretch, I
                        have endured and forgiven the four hundred and ninety heads of your
                        discourse. Seventy times seven times have I plucked up ray hat, and been
                        about to depart—Seventy times seven times have you preposterously forced me
                        to resume my seat. The four hundred and ninety-first is too much. Fellow
                        martyrs, have at him! Drag him down, and crush him to atoms, that the place
                        which knows him may know him no more!"</p>
                    <p>"<hi>Thou art the Man!</hi>" cried Jabes, after a solemn pause, leaning over
                        his cushion. "Seventy times seven times didst thou gapingly contort thy
                        visage—seventy times seven did I <pb n="50"/>take counsel with my soul—Lo,
                        this is human weakness; this also may be absolved! The First of the
                        Seventy-First is come. Brethren, execute upon him the judgment written! such
                        honour have all His saints!"</p>
                    <p>With that concluding word, the whole assembly, exalting their pilgrim's
                        staves, rushed round me in a body, and I, having no weapon to raise in
                        self-defence, commenced grappling with Joseph, my nearest and most ferocious
                        assailant, for his. In the confluence of the multitude, several clubs
                        crossed; blows, aimed at me, fell on other sconses. Presently the whole
                        chapel resounded with rappings and counter-rappings. Every man's hand was
                        against his neighbour; and Branderham, unwilling to remain idle, poured
                        forth his zeal in a shower of loud taps on the boards of the pulpit which
                        responded so smartly, that, at last, to my unspeakable relief, they woke
                        me.</p>
                    <p>And what was it that had suggested the <pb n="51"/>tremendous tumult, what
                        bad played Jabes' part in the row? Merely, the branch of a fir-tree that
                        touched my lattice, as the blast wailed by, and rattled its dry cones
                        against the panes!</p>
                    <p>I listened doubtingly an instant; detected the disturber, then turned and
                        dosed, and dreamt again; if possible, still more disagreebly than
                        before.</p>
                    <p>This time, I remembered I was lying in the oak closet, and I heard distinctly
                        the gusty wind, and the driving of the snow; I heard also, the firbough
                        repeat its teasing sound, and ascribed it to the right cause: but, it
                        annoyed me so much, that I resolved to silence it, if possible; and, I
                        thought, I rose and endeavoured to unhasp the casement. The hook was
                        soldered into the staple, a circumstance observed by me, when awake, but
                        forgotten.</p>
                    <p>"I must stop it, nevertheless!" I muttered, knocking my knuckles through the
                        glass, and stretching an arm out to seize the importunate <pb n="52"/>branch: instead of which, my fingers closed on the fingers of a little,
                        ice-cold hand!</p>
                    <p>The intense horror of nightmare came over me; I tried to draw back my arm,
                        but, the hand clung to it, and a most melancholy voice, sobbed,</p>
                    <p>"Let me in—let me in!"</p>
                    <p>"Who are you?" I asked struggling, meanwhile, to disengage myself.</p>
                    <p>"Catherine Linton," it replied, shiveringly, (why did I think of
                            <hi>Linton</hi>? I had read <hi>Earnshaw</hi>, twenty times for Linton)
                        "I'm come home, I'd lost my way on the moor!"</p>
                    <p>As it spoke, I discerned, obscurely, a child's face looking through the
                        window—Terror made me cruel; and, finding it useless to attempt shaking the
                        creature off, I pulled its wrist on to the broken pane, and rubbed it to and
                        fro till the blood ran down and soaked the bed-clothes: still it wailed,
                        "Let me in!" and maintained its tenacious gripe, almost maddening me with
                        fear.</p>
                    <p><pb n="53"/>"How can I?" I said at length. "Let <hi>me</hi> go, if you want
                        me to let you in!"</p>
                    <p>The fingers relaxed, I snatched mine through the hole, hurriedly piled the
                        books up in a pyramid against it, and stopped my ears to exclude the
                        lamentable prayer.</p>
                    <p>I seemed to keep them closed above a quarter of an hour, yet, the instant I
                        listened, again, there was the doleful cry moaning on!</p>
                    <p>"Begone!" I shouted, "I'll never let you in, not if you beg for twenty
                        years!"</p>
                    <p>"It's twenty years," mourned the voice, "twenty years, I've been a waif for
                        twenty years!"</p>
                    <p>Thereat began a feeble scratching outside, and the pile of books moved as if
                        thrust forward.</p>
                    <p>I tried to jump up; but, could not stir a limb; and so, yelled aloud, in a
                        frenzy of fright.</p>
                    <p>To my confusion, I discovered the yell was not ideal. Hasty footsteps
                        approached my <pb n="54"/>chamber door: somebody pushed it open, with a
                        vigorous hand, and a light glimmered through the squares at the top of the
                        bed. I sat shuddering, yet, and wiping the perspiration from my forehead:
                        the intruder appeared to hesitate and muttered to himself.</p>
                    <p>At last, he said in a half-whisper, plainly not expecting an answer,</p>
                    <p>"Is any one here?"</p>
                    <p>I considered it best to confess my presence, for I knew Heathcliff's accents,
                        and feared he might search further, if I kept quiet.</p>
                    <p>With this intention, I turned and opened the panels—I shall not soon forget
                        the effect my action produced.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff stood near the entrance, in his shirt and trousers; with a candle
                        dripping over his fingers, and his face as white as the wall behind him. The
                        first creak of the oak startled him like an electric shock: the light leaped
                        from his hold to a distance of some <pb n="55"/>feet, and his agitation was
                        so extreme, that he could hardly pick it up.</p>
                    <p>"It is only your guest, slr," I called out, desirous to spare him the
                        humiliation of exposing his cowardice further. "I had the misfortune to
                        scream in my sleep, owing to a frightful nightmare. I'm sorry I disturbed
                        you."</p>
                    <p>"Oh, God confound you, Mr. Lockwood! I wish you were at the—" commenced my
                        host setting the candle on a chair, because he found it impossible to hold
                        it steady.</p>
                    <p>"And who showed you up to this room?" he continued, crushing his nails into
                        his palms, and grinding his teeth to subdue the maxillary convulsions. "Who
                        was it? I've a good mind to turn them out of the house, this moment!"</p>
                    <p>"It was your servant, Zillah," I replied flinging myself, on to the floor,
                        and rapidly resuming my garments. "I should not care if you did, Mr.
                        Heathcliff; she richly deserves <pb n="56"/>it. I suppose that she wanted to
                        get another proof that the place was haunted, at my expense—Well, it
                        is—swarming with ghosts and goblins! You have reason in shutting it up, I
                        assure you. No one will thank you for a dose in such a den!"</p>
                    <p>"What do you mean?" asked Heathcliff, "and what are you doing? Lie down and
                        finish out the night, since you <hi>are</hi> here; but, for Heaven's sake!
                        don't repeat that horrid noise—Nothing could excuse it, unless you were
                        having your throat cut!"</p>
                    <p>"If the little fiend had got in at the window, she probably would have
                        strangled me!" I returned. "I'm not going to endure the persecutions of your
                        hospitable ancestors, again—Was not the Reverend Jabes Branderham akin to
                        you on the mother's side? And that minx, Catherine Linton, or Earnshaw, or
                        however she was called—she must have been a changling—wicked little soul!
                        She told me she had been walking the earth these twenty <pb n="57"/>years: a
                        just punishment for her mortal transgressions, I've no doubt!"</p>
                    <p>Scarcely were these words uttered, when I recollected the association of
                        Heathcliff's with Catherine's name in the book, which had completely slipped
                        from my memory till thus awakened. I blushed at my inconsideration; but
                        without showing further consciousness of the offence, I hastened to add,</p>
                    <p>"The truth is, sir, I passed the first part of the night in—" Here, I stopped
                        afresh—I was about to say "perusing those old volumes," then it would have
                        revealed my knowledge of their written, as well as their printed contents;
                        so correcting myself, I went on,</p>
                    <p>"In spelling over the name scratched on that window-ledge. A monotonous
                        occupation, calculated to set me asleep, like counting, or—"</p>
                    <p>"What <hi>can</hi> you mean, by talking in this way to <hi>me</hi>!"
                        thundered Heathcliff with savage vehemence. "How—how <hi>dare</hi> you,
                        under my <pb n="58"/>roof—God! he's mad to speak so!" And he struck his
                        forehead with rage.</p>
                    <p>I did not know whether to resent this language, or pursue my explanation; but
                        he seemed so powerfully affected that I took pity and proceeded with my
                        dreams; affirming I had never heard the appellation of "Catherine Linton,"
                        before, but, reading it often over produced an impression which personified
                        itself when I had no longer my imagination under control.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff gradually fell back into the shelter of the bed, as I spoke,
                        finally, sitting down almost concealed behind it. I guessed, however, by his
                        irregular and intercepted breathing, that he struggled to vanquish an access
                        of violent emotion.</p>
                    <p>Not liking to show him that I heard the conflict, I continued my toilette
                        rather noisily, looked at my watch, and soliloquised on the length of the
                        night:</p>
                    <p><pb n="59"/>"Not three o'clock, yet! I could have taken oath it had been
                        six—time stagnates here—we must surely have retired to rest at eight!"</p>
                    <p>"Always at nine in winter, and always rise at four," said my host,
                        suppressing a groan; and, as I fancied, by the motion of his shadow's arm,
                        dashing a tear from his eyes.</p>
                    <p>"Mr Lockwood," he added, "you may go into my room; you'll only be in the way,
                        coming down stairs so early: and your childish outcry has sent sleep to the
                        devil for me."</p>
                    <p>"And for me too," I replied. "I'll walk in the yard till daylight, and then
                        I'll be off; and you need not dread a repetition of my intrusion. I am now
                        quite cured of seeking pleasure in society, be it country or town. A
                        sensible man ought to find sufficient company in himself."</p>
                    <p>"Delightful company!" muttered Heathcliff. "Take the candle, and go where you
                        please. I shall join you directly. Keep out of the yard though the dogs are
                        unchained; <pb n="60"/>and the house—Juno mounts sentinel there—and—nay, you
                        can only ramble about the steps and passages—but, away with you! I'll come
                        in two minutes."</p>
                    <p>I obeyed, so far as to quit the chamber; when, ignorant where the narrow
                        lobbies led, I stood still, and was witness, involuntarily, to a piece of
                        superstition on the part of my landlord, which belied, oddly, his apparent
                        sense.</p>
                    <p>He got on to the bed, and wrenched open the lattice, bursting, as he pulled
                        at it, into an uncontrollable passion of tears.</p>
                    <p>"Come in! come in!" he sobbed. "Cathy, do come. Oh do—<hi>once</hi> more! Oh!
                        my heart's darling, hear me <hi>this</hi> time—Catherine, at last!"</p>
                    <p>The spectre showed a spectre's ordinary caprice; it gave no sign of being;
                        but the snow and wind whirled wildly through, even reaching my station, and
                        blowing out the light.</p>
                    <p>There was such anguish in the gush of grief that accompanied this raving,
                        that my compassion made me overlook its folly, and I drew <pb n="61"/>off,
                        half angry to have listened at all, and vexed at having related my
                        ridiculous nightmare, since it produced that agony; though <hi>why</hi>, was
                        beyond my comprehension.</p>
                    <p>I descended cautiously to the lower regions and landed in the back-kitchen,
                        where a gleam of fire, raked compactly together, enabled me to rekindle my
                        candle.</p>
                    <p>Nothing was stirring except a brindled, grey cat, which crept from the ashes,
                        and saluted me with a querulous mew.</p>
                    <p>Two benches, shaped in sections of a circle, nearly enclosed the hearth; on
                        one of these I stretched myself, and Grimalkin mounted the other. We were
                        both of us nodding, ere any one invaded our retreat; and then it was Joseph
                        shuffling down a wooden ladder that vanished in the roof, through a trap,
                        the assent to his garret, I suppose.</p>
                    <p>He cast a sinister look at the little flame which I had enticed to play
                        between the ribs, swept the cat from its elevation, and bestowing <pb n="62"/>himself In the vacancy, commenced the operation of stuffing a three-inch
                        pipe with tobacco; my presence in his sanctum was evidently esteemed a piece
                        of impudence too shameful for remark. He silently applied the tube to his
                        lips, folded his arms, and puffed away.</p>
                    <p>I let him enjoy the luxury, unannoyed; and after sucking out the last wreath,
                        and heaving a profound sigh, he got up, and departed as solemnly as he
                        came.</p>
                    <p>A more elastic footstep entered next, and now I opened my mouth for a "good
                        morning," but closed it again, the salutation unachieved; for Hareton
                        Earnshaw was performing his orisons, <hi>sotto voce</hi>, in a series of
                        curses directed against every object he touched, while he rummaged a corner,
                        for a spade or shovel to dig through the drifts. He glanced over the back of
                        the bench dilating his nostrils, and thought as little of exchanging
                        civilities with me, as with my companion, the cat.</p>
                    <p>I guessed by his preparations that egress <pb n="63"/>was allowed, and
                        leaving my hard couch, made a movement to follow him. He noticed this, and
                        thrust at an inner door with the end of his spade, intimating by an
                        inarticulate sound, that there was the place where I must go, if I changed
                        my locality.</p>
                    <p>It opened into the house, where the females were already astir. Zillah urging
                        flakes of flame up the chimney with a colossal bellows; and Mrs. Heathcliff,
                        kneeling on the hearth, reading a book by the aid of the blaze.</p>
                    <p>She held her hand interposed between the furnace-heat and her eyes; and
                        seemed absorbed in her occupation: desisting from it only to chide the
                        servant for covering her with sparks, or to push away a dog, now and then,
                        that snoozled its nose over forwardly into her face.</p>
                    <p>I was surprised to see Heathcliff there also. He stood by the fire, his back
                        towards me, just finishing a stormy scene to poor Zillah, who ever and anon
                        interrupted her labour to <pb n="64"/>pluck up the corner of her apron, and
                        heave an indignant groan.</p>
                    <p>"And you, you worthless—" he broke out as I entered, turning to his
                        daughter-in-law, and employing an epithet as harmless as duck, or sheep, but
                        generally represented by a dash.</p>
                    <p>"There you are at your idle tricks again! The rest of them do earn their
                        bread—you live on my charity! Put your trash away, and find something to do.
                        You shall pay me for the plague of having you eternally in my sight—do you
                        hear, damnable jade?"</p>
                    <p>"I'll put my trash away, because you can make me, if I refuse," answered the
                        young lady, closing her book, and throwing it on a chair. "But I'll not do
                        anything, though you should swear your tongue out, except what I
                        please!"</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff lifted his hand, and the speaker sprang to a safer distance,
                        obviously acquainted with its weight.</p>
                    <p>Having no desire to be entertained by a cat <pb n="65"/>and dog combat, I
                        stepped forward briskly, as if eager to partake the warmth of the hearth,
                        and innocent of any knowledge of the interrupted dispute. Each had enough
                        decorum to suspend further hostilities; Heathcliff placed his fists, out of
                        temptation, in his pockets: Mrs. Heathcliff curled her lip, and walked to a
                        seat far off; where she kept her word by playing the part of a statue during
                        the remainder of my stay.</p>
                    <p>That was not long. I declined joining their breakfast, and, at the first
                        gleam of dawn, took an opportunity of escaping into the free air, now clear,
                        and still, and cold as impalpable ice.</p>
                    <p>My landlord hallooed for me to stop ere I reached the bottom of the garden,
                        and offered to accompany me across the moor. It was well he did, for the
                        whole hill-back was one billowy, white ocean; the swells and falls not
                        indicating corresponding rises and depressions in the ground—many pits, at
                        least, were filled <pb n="66"/>to a level; and entire ranges of mounds, the
                        refuse of the quarries, blotted from the chart which my yesterday's walk
                        left pictured in my mind.</p>
                    <p>I had remarked on one side of the road, at intervals of six or seven yards, a
                        line of upright stones, continued through the whole length of the barren:
                        these were erected, and daubed with lime, on purpose to serve as guides in
                        the dark, and also, when a fall, like the present, confounded the deep
                        swamps on either hand with the firmer path: but, excepting a dirty dot
                        pointing up, here and there, all traces of their existence had vanished; and
                        my companion found it necessary to warn me frequently to steer to the right,
                        or left, when I imagined I was following, correctly, the windings of the
                        road.</p>
                    <p>We exchanged little conversation, and he halted at the entrance of
                        Thrushcross park, saying, I could make no error there. Our adieux were
                        limited to a hasty bow, and then <pb n="67"/>I pushed forward, trusting to
                        my own resources, for the porter's lodge is untenanted as yet.</p>
                    <p>The distance from the gate to the Grange is to miles: I believe I managed to
                        make it four; what with losing myself among the trees, and sinking up to the
                        neck in snow, a predicament which only those who have experienced it can
                        appreciate. At any rate, whatever were my wanderings, the clock chimed
                        twelve as I entered the house; and that gave exactly an hour for every mile
                        of the usual way from Wuthering Heights.</p>
                    <p>My human fixture, and her satellites rushed to welcome me; exclaiming,
                        tumultuously, they had completely given me up; everybody conjectured that I
                        perished last night; and they were wondering how they must set about the
                        search for my remains.</p>
                    <p>I bid them be quiet, now that they saw me returned, and, benumbed to my very
                        heart, I dragged up-stairs, whence, after putting on dry clothes, and pacing
                        to and fro, thirty or <pb n="68"/>forty minutes, to restore the animal heat,
                        I am adjourned to my study, feeble as a kitten, almost too much so to enjoy
                        the cheerful fire, and smoking coffee which the servant has prepared for my
                        refreshment.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="69"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER IV.</head>

                    <p>What vain weather-cocks we are! I, who had determined to held myself
                        independent of all social intercourse, and thanked my stars that, at length,
                        I had lighted on a spot where it was next to impracticable. I, weak wretch,
                        after maintaining till dusk a struggle with low spirits, and solitude, was
                        finally compelled to strike my colours; and, under pretence of gaining
                        information concerning the necessities of my establishment, I desired Mrs.
                        Dean, when she brought in supper, to sit down while <pb n="70"/>I ate it,
                        hoping sincerely she would prove a regular gossip, and either rouse me to
                        animation, or lull me to sleep by her talk.</p>
                    <p>"You have lived here a considerable time," I commenced; "did you not say
                        sixteen years?"</p>
                    <p>"Eighteen, sir; I came, when the mistress was married, to wait on her; after
                        she died, the master retained me for his house-keeper."</p>
                    <p>"Indeed."</p>
                    <p>There ensued a pause. She was not a gossip, I feared, unless about her own
                        affairs, and those could hardly interest me.</p>
                    <p>However, having studied for an interval, with a fist on either knee, and a
                        cloud of meditation over her ruddy countenance, she ejaculated—</p>
                    <p>"Ah, times are greatly changed since then!"</p>
                    <p>"Yes," I remarked, "you've seen a good many alterations, I suppose?"</p>
                    <p>"I have: and troubles too," she said.</p>
                    <p><pb n="71"/>"Oh, I'll turn the talk on my landlord's family!" I thought to
                        myself. "A good subject to start—and that pretty girl—widow, I should like
                        to know her history; whether she be a native of the country, or, as is more
                        probable, an exotic that the surly indigenae will not recognise for
                        kin."</p>
                    <p>With this intention I asked Mrs. Dean why Heathcliif let Thrushcross Grange,
                        and preferred living in a situation and residence so much inferior.</p>
                    <p>"Is he not rich enough to keep the estate in good order?" I enquired.</p>
                    <p>"Rich sir!" she returned. "He has, nobody knows what money, and every year it
                        increases. Yes, yes, he's rich enough to live in a finer house than this;
                        but he's very near—close-handed; and, if he had meant to flit to Thrushcross
                        Grange, as soon as he heard of a good tenant, he could not have borne to
                        miss the chance of getting a few hundreds more. It <pb n="72"/>is strange
                        people should be so greedy, when they are alone in the world!"</p>
                    <p>"He had a son, it seems?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes, he had one—he is dead."</p>
                    <p>"And that young lady, Mrs. Heathcliff, is his widow?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes."</p>
                    <p>"Where did she come from originally?"</p>
                    <p>"Why, sir, she is my late master's daughter; Catherine Linton was her maiden
                        name. I nursed her, poor thing! I did wish Mr. Heathcliff would remove here,
                        and then we might have been together again."</p>
                    <p>"What, Catherine Linton!" I exclaimed, astonished. But a minute's reflection
                        convinced me it was not my ghostly Catherine. "Then," I continued, "my
                        predecessor's name was Linton?"</p>
                    <p>"It was."</p>
                    <p>"And who is that Earnshaw, Hareton Earnshaw, who lives with Mr. Heathcliff?
                        are they relations?"</p>
                    <p><pb n="73"/>"No; he is the late Mrs. Linton's nephew."</p>
                    <p>"The young lady's cousin then?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes; and her husband was her cousin also—one, on the mother's—the other, on
                        the father's side—Heathcliff married Mr. Linton's sister."</p>
                    <p>"I see the house at Wuthering Heights has 'Earnshaw' carved over the front
                        door. Are they an old family?"</p>
                    <p>"Very old, sir; and Hareton is the last of them, as our Miss Cathy is of us—I
                        mean, of the Lintons. Have you been to Wuthering Heights? I beg pardon for
                        asking; but I should like to hear how she is!"</p>
                    <p>"Mrs. Heathcliff? she looked very well, and very handsome; yet, I think, not
                        very happy."</p>
                    <p>"Oh dear, I don't wonder!" And how did you like the master?"</p>
                    <p>"A rough fellow, rather, Mrs. Dean. Is not that his character?"</p>
                    <p>"Rough as a saw-edge, and hard as <pb n="74"/>whinstone! The less you meddle
                        with him the better."</p>
                    <p>"He must have had some ups and downs in life to make him such a churl. Do you
                        know anything of his history?"</p>
                    <p>"It's a cuckoo's; sir—I know all about it; except where he was born, and who
                        were his parents, and how he got his money, at first—And Hareton has been
                        cast out like an unfledged dunnock—The unfortunate lad is the only one, in
                        all this parish, that does not guess how he has been cheated!"</p>
                    <p>"Well, Mrs. Dean, it will be a charitable deed to tell me something of my
                        neighbours—I feel I shall not rest, if I go to bed; so, be good enough to
                        sit, and chat an hour."</p>
                    <p>"Oh, certainly, sir! I'll just fetch a little sewing, and then I'll sit as
                        long as you please but you've caught cold, I saw you shivering, and you must
                        have some gruel to drive it out."</p>
                    <p>The worthy woman bustled off; and I <pb n="75"/>crouched nearer the fire: my
                        head felt hot, and the rest of me chill: moreover I was excited, almost to a
                        pitch of foolishness through my nerves and brain. This caused me to feel,
                        not uncomfortable, but rather fearful, as I am still, of serious effects
                        from the incidents of today and yesterday.</p>
                    <p>She returned presently, bringing a smoking basin, and a basket of work; and,
                        having placed the former on the hob, drew in her seat, evidently pleased to
                        find me so companionable.</p>
                    <p>"Before I came to live here," she commenced, waiting no further invitation to
                        her story; "I was almost always at Wuthering Heights; because, my mother had
                        nursed Mr. Hindley Earnshaw, that was Hareton's father, and I got used to
                        playing with the children—I ran errands too, and helped to make hay, and
                        hung about the farm ready for anything that anybody would set me to.</p>
                    <p>"One fine summer morning—it was the <pb n="76"/>beginning of harvest, I
                        remember—Mr. Earnshaw, the old master, came down stairs, dressed for a
                        journey; and, after he had told Joseph what was to be done during the day,
                        he turned to Hindley, and Cathy, and me—for I sat eating my porridge, with
                        them, and he said, speaking to his son,</p>
                    <p>"Now my bonny man, I'm going to Liverpool, to-day. . .What shall I bring you?
                        You may choose what you like; only let it be little, for I shall walk there
                        and back; sixty miles each way, that is a long spell!"</p>
                    <p>Hindley named a fiddle, and then he asked Miss Cathy; she was hardly six
                        years old, but she could ride any horse in the stable, and she chose a
                        whip.</p>
                    <p>He did not forget me, for, he had a kind heart, though he was rather severe,
                        sometimes. He promised to bring me a pocketful of apples, and pears, and
                        then he kissed his children, good bye, and set off.</p>
                    <p>It seemed a long while to us all—the three <pb n="77"/>days of his
                        absence—and often did little Cathy ask when he would be home: Mrs. Earnshaw,
                        expected him by supper-time, on the third evening; and she put the meal off
                        hour after hour; there were no signs of his coming, however, and at last the
                        children got tired of running down to the gate to look—Then it grew dark,
                        she would have had them to bed, but they begged sadly to be allowed to stay
                        up: and, just about eleven o'clock, the door-latch was raised quietly and in
                        stept the master. He threw himself into a chair, laughing and groaning, and
                        bid them all stand off, for he was nearly killed—he would not have such
                        another walk for the three kingdoms.</p>
                    <p>"And at the end of it, to be flighted to death!" he said opening his great
                        coat, which he held bundled up in his arms, "See here, wife; I was never so
                        beaten with anything in my life; but you must e'en take it as a gift of God;
                        though it's as dark almost as if it came from the devil."</p>
                    <p><pb n="78"/>We crowded round, and, over Miss Cathy's head, I had a peep at a
                        dirty, ragged, black-haired child; big enough both to walk and talk—indeed,
                        its face looked older than Catherine's—yet, when it was set on its feet, it
                        only stared round, and repeated over and over again, some gibberish that
                        nobody could understand. I was frightened, and Mrs. Earnshaw was ready to
                        fling it out of doors: she did fly up—asking how he could fashion to bring
                        that gipsy brat into the house, when they had their own bairns to feed, and
                        fend for? What he meant to do with it, and whether he were mad?</p>
                    <p>The master tried to explain the matter; but, he was really half dead with
                        fatigue, and all that I could make out, amongst her scolding, was a tale of
                        his seeing it starving, and houseless, and as good as dumb in the streets of
                        Liverpool where he picked it up and inquired for its owner—Not a soul knew
                        to whom it belonged, he said, and his money and <pb n="79"/>time, being both
                        limited, he thought it better, to take it home with him, at once, than run,
                        into vain expences there; because he was determined he would not leave as he
                        found it.</p>
                    <p>Well, the conclusion was that my mistress grumbled herself calm; and Mr
                        Earnshaw told me to wash it, and give it clean things, and let it sleep with
                        the children.</p>
                    <p>Hindley and Cathy contented themselves with looking and listening till peace
                        was restored: then, both began searching their father's pockets for the
                        presents he had promised them. The former was a boy of fourteen, but when he
                        drew out, what had been a fiddle crushed to morsels in the great coat, he
                        blubbered aloud, and Cathy, when she learnt the master had lost her whip in
                        attending on the stranger, showed her humour by grinning and spitting at the
                        stupid little thing, earning for her pains, a sound blow from her father to
                        teach her cleaner manners.</p>
                    <p>They entirely refused to have it in bed with <pb n="80"/>them, or even in
                        their room, and I had no more sense, so, I put it on the landing of the
                        stairs, hoping it might be gone on the morrow. By chance, or else attracted
                        by hearing his voice, it crept to Mr. Earnshaw's door and there he found it
                        on quitting his chamber. Inquiries were made as to how it got there; I was
                        obliged to confess, and in recompense for my cowardice and inhumanity was
                        sent out of the house.</p>
                    <p>This was Heathcliff's first introduction to the family: on coming back a few
                        days afterwards, for I did not consider my banishment perpetual, I found
                        they had christened him "Heathcliff," it was the name of a son who died in
                        childhood, and it has served him ever since, both for christian and
                        surname.</p>
                    <p>Miss Cathy and he were now very thick; but Hindley hated him, and to say the
                        truth I did the same; and we plagued and went on with him shamefully, for I
                        was'nt reasonable enough to feel my injustice, and the mistress <pb n="81"/>never put in a word on his behalf, when she saw him wronged.</p>
                    <p>He seemed a sullen, patient child; hardened, perhaps, to ill-treatment: he
                        would stand Hindley's blows without winking or shedding a tear, and my
                        pinches moved him only to draw in a breath, and open his eyes as if he had
                        hurt himself by accident, and nobody was to blame.</p>
                    <p>This endurance made old Earnshaw furious when he discovered his son
                        persecuting the poor, fatherless child, as he called him. He took to
                        Heathcliff strangely, believing, all he said, (for that matter, he said
                        precious little, and generally the truth,) and petting him up far above
                        Cathy, who was too mischievous and wayward for a favourite.</p>
                    <p>So, from the very beginning, he bred bad feeling in the house; and at Mrs
                        Earnshaw's death, which happened in less than two years after, the young
                        master had learnt to regard <pb n="82"/>his father as an oppressor rather
                        than a friend, and Heathcliff as a usurper of his parent's aflfections, and
                        his privileges, and he grew bitter with brooding over these injuries.</p>
                    <p>I sympathised awhile, but, when the children fell ill of the measles and I
                        had to tend them, and take on me the cares of a woman, at once, I changed my
                        ideas. Heathcliff was dangerously sick, and while he lay at the worst he
                        would have me constantly by his pillow; I suppose he felt I did a good deal
                        for him, and he had'nt wit to guess that I was compelled to do it. However,
                        I will say this, he was the quietest child that ever nurse watched over. The
                        difference between him and the others forced me to be less partial: Cathy
                        and her brother harassed me terribly: <hi>he</hi> was as uncomplaining as a
                        lamb; though hardness, not gentleness, made him give little trouble.</p>
                    <p>He got through, and the doctor affirmed it was in a great measure owing to
                        me, and <pb n="83"/>praised me for my care. I was vain of his commendations,
                        and softened towards the being by whose means, I earned them, and thus
                        Hindley lost his last ally; still I couldn't dote on Heathcliff, and I
                        wondered often what my master saw to admire so much in the sullen boy who
                        never, to my recollection, repaid his indulgence by any sign of gratitude.
                        He was not insolent to his benefactor; he was simply insensible, though
                        knowing perfectly the hold he had on his heart, and conscious he had only to
                        speak and all the house would be obliged to bend to his wishes.</p>
                    <p>As an instance, I remember Mr. Earnshaw once bought a couple of colts at the
                        parish fair, and gave the lads each one. Heathcliff took the handsomest, but
                        it soon fell lame, and when he discovered it, he said to Hindley,</p>
                    <p>"You must exchange horses with me; I don't like mine, and, if you won't I
                        shall tell your father of the three thrashings you've <pb n="84"/>given me
                        this week, and show him my arm which is black to the shoulder."</p>
                    <p>Hindley put out his tongue, and cuffed him over the ears.</p>
                    <p>"You'd better do it, at once," he persisted escaping to the porch, (they were
                        in the stable) "you will have to, and, if I speak, of these blows, you'll
                        get them again with interest."</p>
                    <p>"Off dog!" cried Hindley, threatening him with an iron weight, used for
                        weighing potatoes, and hay.</p>
                    <p>"Throw it," he replied, standing still, "and then I'll tell how you boasted
                        that you would turn me out of doors as soon as he died, and see whether he
                        will not turn you out directly."</p>
                    <p>Hindley threw it, hitting him on the breast and down he fell but staggered
                        up, immediately, breathless and white, and had not I prevented it he would
                        have gone just so to the master, and got full revenge by letting <pb n="85"/>his condition plead for him, intimating who had caused it."</p>
                    <p>"Take my colt, gipsy, then!" said young Earnshaw, "And I pray that he may
                        break your neck, take him, and be damned, you beggarly interloper! and
                        wheedle my father out of all he has, only, afterwards, show him what you
                        are, imp of Satan—And take that, I hope he'll kick out your brains!"</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff had gone to loose the beast, and shift it to his own stall—He was
                        passing behind it, when Hindley finished his speech by knocking him under
                        its feet, and without stopping to examine whether his hopes were fulfilled,
                        ran away as fast as he could.</p>
                    <p>I was surprised to witness how coolly the child gathered himself up, and went
                        on with his intention, exchanging saddles and all; and then sitting down on
                        a bundle of hay to overcome the qualm which the violent blow occasioned,
                        before he entered the house.</p>
                    <p>I persuaded him easily to let me lay the <pb n="86"/>blame of his bruises on
                        the horse; he minded little what tale was told since he had what he wanted.
                        He complained so seldom, indeed, of such stirs as these, that I really
                        thought him not vindictive—I was deceived, completely, as you will hear.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="87"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER V.</head>

                    <p>In the course of time, Mr. Earnshaw began to fail. He had been active and
                        healthy, yet his strength left him suddenly; and when he was confined to the
                        chimney-corner he grew grievously irritable. A nothing vexed him, and
                        suspected slights of his authority nearly threw him into fits.</p>
                    <p>This was especially to be remarked if any one attempted to impose upon, or
                        domineer over his favourite; he was painfully jealous lest a word should be
                        spoken amiss to him, <pb n="88"/>seeming to have got into his head the
                        notion that, because he liked Heathcliff, all hated, and longed to do him an
                        ill-turn.</p>
                    <p>It was a disadvantage to the lad, for the kinder among us did not wish to
                        fret the master, so we humoured his partiality; and that humouring was rich
                        nourishment to the child's pride and black tempers. Still it became in a
                        manner necessary; twice, or thrice, Hindley's manifestations of scorn, while
                        his father was near, roused the old man to a fury. He seized his stick to
                        strike him, and shook with rage that he could not do it.</p>
                    <p>At last, our curate, (we had a curate then who made the living answer by
                        teaching the little Lintons and Earnshaws, and farming his bit of land
                        himself,) he advised that the young man should be sent to college, and Mr,
                        Earnshaw agreed, though with a heavy spirit, for he said—</p>
                    <p>"Hindley was naught, and would never thrive as where he wandered."</p>
                    <p><pb n="89"/>I hoped heartily we should have peace now. It hurt me to think
                        the master should be made uncomfortable by his own good deed. I fancied the
                        discontent of age and disease arose from his family disagreements, as he
                        would have it that it did—really, you know, sir, it was in his sinking
                        frame.</p>
                    <p>We might have got on tolerably, notwithstanding; but, for two people. Miss
                        Cathy, and Joseph, the servant; you saw him, I dare say, up yonder. He was,
                        and is yet, most likely, the wearisomest, self-righteous pharisee that ever
                        ransacked a bible to rake the promises to himself, and fling the curses on
                        his neighbours. By his knack of sermonizing and pious discoursing, he
                        contrived to make a great impression on Mr. Earnshaw, and, the more feeble
                        the master became, the more influence he gained.</p>
                    <p>He was relentless in worrying him about his soul's concerns, and about ruling
                        his children rigidly. He encouraged him to regard <pb n="90"/>Hindley as a
                        reprobate; and, night after night, he regularly grumbled out a long string
                        of tales against Heathcliff and Catherine; always minding to flatter
                        Earnshaw's weakness by heaping the heaviest blame on the last.</p>
                    <p>Certainly, she had ways with her such as I never saw a child take up before;
                        and she put all of us past our patience fifty times and oftener in a day:
                        from the hour she came down stairs, till the hour she went to bed, we had
                        not a minute's security that she wouldn't be in mischief. Her spirits were
                        always at high-water mark, her tongue always going—singing, laughing, and
                        plaguing everybody who would not do the same. A wild, wick slip she was—but,
                        she had the bonniest eye, and sweetest smile, and lightest foot in the
                        parish; and, after all, I believe she meant no harm; for when once she made
                        you cry in good earnest, it seldom happened that she would not keep you
                        company; and oblige you to be quiet that you might comfort her.</p>
                    <p>She was much too fond of Heathcliff. The <pb n="91"/>greatest punishment we
                        could invent for her was to keep her separate from him: yet, she got chided
                        more than any of us on his account.</p>
                    <p>In play, she liked, exceedingly, to act the little mistress; using her hands
                        freely, and commanding her companions: she did so to me, but I would not
                        bear slapping, and ordering; and so I let her know.</p>
                    <p>Now, Mr. Earnshaw did not understand jokes from his children: he had always
                        been strict and grave with them; and Catherine, on her part, had no idea why
                        her father should be crosser and less patient in his ailing condition, than
                        he was in his prime.</p>
                    <p>His peevish reproofs wakened in her a naughty delight to provoke him; she was
                        never so happy as when we were all scolding her at once, and she defying us
                        with her bold, saucy look, and her ready words; turning Joseph's religious
                        curses into ridicule, baiting me, and doing just what her father hated most,
                        showing how her pretended insolence, which he thought <pb n="92"/>real, had
                        more power over Heathcliff than his kindness. How the boy would do
                            <hi>her</hi> bidding in anything, and <hi>his</hi> only when it suited
                        his own inclination.</p>
                    <p>After behaving as badly as possible all day, she sometimes came fondling to
                        make it up at night.</p>
                    <p>"Nay, Cathy," the old man would say, "I cannot love thee; thou'rt worse than
                        thy brother. Go, say thy prayers, child, and ask God's pardon. I doubt thy
                        mother and I must rue that we ever reared thee!"</p>
                    <p>That made her cry, at first; and then, being repulsed continually hardened
                        her, and she laughed if I told her to say she was sorry for her faults, and
                        beg to be forgiven.</p>
                    <p>But the hour came, at last, that ended Mr. Earnshaw's troubles on earth. He
                        died quietly in his chair one October evening, seated by the fire-side.</p>
                    <p>A high wind blustered round the house, and roared in the chimney: it sounded
                        wild and <pb n="93"/>stormy, yet it was not cold, and we were all
                        together—I, a little removed from the hearth, busy at my knitting, and
                        Joseph reading his Bible near the table, (for the servants generally sat in
                        the house then, after their work was done.) Miss Cathy had been sick, and
                        that made her still; she leant against her father's knee, and Heathcliff was
                        lying on the floor with his head in her lap.</p>
                    <p>I remember the master, before he fell into a doze, stroking her bonny hair—it
                        pleased him rarely to see her gentle—and saying—</p>
                    <p>"Why canst thou not always be a good lass, Cathy?"</p>
                    <p>And she turned her face up to his, and laughed, and answered,</p>
                    <p>"Why cannot you always be a good man, father?"</p>
                    <p>But as soon as she saw him vexed again, she kissed his hand, and said she
                        would sing him to sleep. She began singing very low, till his fingers
                        dropped from hers, and his head <pb n="94"/>sank on his breast. Then I told
                        her to hush, and not stir, for fear she should wake him. We all kept as mute
                        as mice a full half-hour, and should have done longer, only Joseph, having
                        finished his chapter, got up and said that he must rouse the master for
                        prayers and bed. He stepped forward, and called him by name, and touched his
                        shoulder, but he would not move—so he took the candle and looked at him.</p>
                    <p>I thought there was something wrong as he set down the light; and seizing the
                        children each by an arm, whispered them to "frame up-stairs, and make little
                        din—they might pray alone that evening—he had summut to do."</p>
                    <p>"I shall bid father good-night first," said Catherine, putting her arms round
                        his neck, before we could hinder her.</p>
                    <p>The poor thing discovered her loss directly—she screamed out—</p>
                    <p>"Oh, he's dead, Heathcliff! he's dead!"</p>
                    <p>And they both set up a heart-breaking cry.</p>
                    <p><pb n="95"/>I joined my wail to theirs, loud and bitter; but Joseph asked
                        what we could be thinking of to roar in that way over a saint in Heaven.</p>
                    <p>He told me to put on my cloak and run to Gimmerton for the doctor and the
                        parson. I could not guess the use that either would be of, then. However, I
                        went, through wind and rain, and brought one, the doctor, back with me; the
                        other said he would come in the morning.</p>
                    <p>Leaving Joseph to explain matters, I ran to the children's room; their door
                        was ajar, I saw they had never laid down, though it was past midnight; but
                        they were calmer, and did not need me to console them. The little souls were
                        comforting each other with better thoughts than I could have hit on; no
                        parson in the world ever pictured Heaven so beautifully as they did, in
                        their innocent talk; and, while I sobbed, and listened, I could not help
                        wishing we were all there safe together.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="96"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER VI.</head>

                    <p>Mr. Hindley came home to the funeral; and—a thing that amazed us, and set the
                        neighbours gossipping right and left—he brought a wife with him.</p>
                    <p>What she was, and where she was born he never informed us; probably, she had
                        neither money nor name to recommend her, or he would scarcely have kept the
                        union from his father.</p>
                    <p>She was not one that would have disturbed the house much on her own account.
                        Every <pb n="97"/>object she saw, the moment she crossed the threshold,
                        appeared to delight her; and every circumstance that took place about her,
                        except the preparing for the burial, and the presence of the mourners.</p>
                    <p>I thought she was half silly from her behaviour while that went on; she ran
                        into her chamber, and made me come with her, though I should have been
                        dressing the children; and there she sat shivering and clasping her hands,
                        and asking repeatedly—</p>
                    <p>"Are they gone yet?"</p>
                    <p>Then she began describing with hysterical emotion the effect it produced on
                        her to see black; and started, and trembled, and, at last, fell a
                        weeping—and when I asked what was the matter? answered, she didn't know; but
                        she felt so afraid of dying!</p>
                    <p>I imagined her as little likely to die as myself. She was rather thin, but
                        young, and fresh complexioned, and her eyes sparkled as <pb n="98"/>bright
                        as diamonds. I did remark, to be sure, that mounting the stairs made her
                        breathe very quick, that the least sudden noise set her all in a quiver, and
                        that she coughed troublesomely sometimes: but, I knew nothing of what these
                        symptoms portended, and had no impulse to sympathize with her. We don't in
                        general take to foreigners here, Mr. Lockwood, unless they take to us
                        first.</p>
                    <p>Young Earnshaw was altered considerably in the three years of his absence. He
                        had grown sparer, and lost his colour, and spoke and dressed quite
                        differently: and, on the very day of his return, he told Joseph and me we
                        must thenceforth quarter ourselves in the back-kitchen, and leave the house
                        for him. Indeed he would have carpeted and papered a small spare room for a
                        parlour; but his wife expressed such pleasure at the white floor, and huge
                        glowing fire-place, at the pewter dishes, and delf-case, and dog-kennel, and
                        the wide <pb n="99"/>space there was to move about in, where they usually
                        sat, that he thought it unnecessary to her comfort, and so dropped the
                        intention.</p>
                    <p>She expressed pleasure, too, at finding a sister among her new acquaintance,
                        and she prattled to Catherine, and kissed her, and ran about with her, and
                        gave her quantities of presents, at the beginning. Her affection tired very
                        soon, however, and when she grew peevish, Hindley became tyrannical. A few
                        words from her, evincing a dislike to Heathcliff, were enough to rouse in
                        him all his old hatred of the boy. He drove him from their company to the
                        servants, deprived him of the instructions of the curate, and insisted that
                        he should labour out of doors instead, compelling him to do so, as hard as
                        any other lad on the farm.</p>
                    <p>He bore his degradation pretty well at first, because Cathy taught him what
                        she learnt, and worked or played with him in the fields. They both promised
                        fair to grow up as rude as <pb n="100"/>savages, the young master being
                        entirely negligent how they behaved, and what they did, so they kept clear
                        of him. He would not even have seen after their going to church on Sundays,
                        only Joseph and the curate reprimanded his carelessness when they absented
                        themselves, and that reminded him to order Heathcliff a flogging, and
                        Catherine a fast from dinner or supper.</p>
                    <p>But it was one of their chief amusements to run away to the moors in the
                        morning and remain there all day, and the after punishment grew a mere thing
                        to laugh at. The curate might set as many chapters as he pleased for
                        Catherine to get by heart, and Joseph might thrash Heathcliff till his arm
                        ached; they forgot everything the minute they were together again, at least
                        the minute they had contrived some naughty plan of revenge, and many a time
                        I've cried to myself to watch them growing more reckless daily, and I not
                        daring to speak a syllable for fear of losing <pb n="101"/>the small power I
                        still retained over the unfriended creatures.</p>
                    <p>One Sunday evening, it chanced that they were banished from the sitting-room,
                        for making a noise, or a light offence of the kind, and when I went to call
                        them to supper, I could discover them nowhere.</p>
                    <p>We searched the house, above and below, and the yard, and stables, they were
                        invisible; and, at last, Hindley in a passion told us to bolt the doors, and
                        swore nobody should let them in that night.</p>
                    <p>The household went to bed; and I, too anxious to lie down, opened my lattice
                        and put my head out to hearken, though it rained, determined to admit them
                        in spite of the prohibition, should they return.</p>
                    <p>In a while, I distinguished steps coming up the road, and the light of a
                        lantern glimmered through the gate.</p>
                    <p>I threw a shawl over my head and ran to prevent them from waking Mr. Earnshaw
                        by <pb n="102"/>knocking. There was Heathcliff, by himself; it gave me a
                        start to see him alone.</p>
                    <p>"Where is Miss Catherine?" I cried hurriedly. "No accident, I hope?"</p>
                    <p>"At Thrushcross Grange," he answered, "and I would have been there too, but
                        they had not the manners to ask me to stay."</p>
                    <p>"Well, you will catch it!" I said, "you'll never be content till you're sent
                        about your business. What in the world led you wandering to Thrushcross
                        Grange?"</p>
                    <p>"Let me get off my wet clothes, and I'll tell you all about it, Nelly," he
                        replied.</p>
                    <p>I bid him beware of rousing the master, and while he undressed, and I waited
                        to put out the candle, he continued—</p>
                    <p>"Cathy and I escaped from the wash house to have a ramble at liberty, and
                        getting a glimpse of the Grange lights, we thought we would just go and see
                        whether the Lintons passed their Sunday evenings standing shivering in
                        corners, while their father and mother <pb n="103"/>sat eating and drinking
                        and singing and laughing, and burning their eyes out before the fire. Do you
                        think they do? Or reading sermons, and being catechised by their manservant,
                        and set to learn a column of Scripture names, if they don't answer
                        properly?"</p>
                    <p>"Probably not," I responded. "They are good children, no doubt, and don't
                        deserve the treatment you receive, for your bad conduct."</p>
                    <p>"Don't you cant, Nelly," he said "nonsense! We ran from the top of the
                        Heights to the park, without stopping—Catherine completely beaten in the
                        race, because she was barefoot. You'll have to seek for her shoes in the bog
                        to-morrow. We crept through a broken hedge, groped our way up the path, and
                        planted ourselves on a flower-plot under the drawing room window. The light
                        came from thence; they had not put up the shutters, and the curtains were
                        only half closed. Both of us were able to look in by <pb n="104"/>standing
                        on the basement, and clinging to the ledge, and we saw—ah! it was
                        beautiful—a splendid place carpeted with crimson, and crimson-covered chairs
                        and tables, and a pure white ceiling bordered by gold, a shower of
                        glass-drops hanging in silver chains from the centre, and shimmering with
                        little soft tapers. Old Mr. and Mrs. Linton were not there. Edgar and his
                        sister had it entirely to themselves; shouldn't they have been happy? We
                        should have thought ourselves in heaven! And now, guess what your good
                        children were doing? Isabella, I believe she is eleven, a year younger than
                        Cathy, lay screaming at the farther end of the room, shrieking as if witches
                        were running red hot needles into her. Edgar stood on the hearth weeping
                        silently, and in the middle of the table sat a little dog shaking its paw
                        and yelping, which, from their mutual accusations, we understood they had
                        nearly pulled in two between them. The idiots! That was their pleasure! to
                            <pb n="105"/>quarrel who should hold a heap of warm hair, and each begin
                        to cry because both, after struggling to get it, refused to take it. We
                        laughed outright at the petted things, we did despise them! When would you
                        catch me wishing to have what Catherine wanted? or find us by ourselves,
                        seeking entertainment in yelling, and sobbing, and rolling on the ground,
                        divided by the whole room? I'd not exchange, for a thousand lives, my
                        condition here, for Edgar Linton's at Thrushcross Grange—not if I might have
                        the privilege of flinging Joseph off the highest gable, and painting the
                        house-front with Hindley's blood!"</p>
                    <p>"Hush, hush!" I interrupted. "Still you have not told me, Heathcliff, how
                        Catherine is left behind?"</p>
                    <p>"I told you we laughed," he answered. The Linton's heard us, and with one
                        accord, they shot like arrows to the door; there was silence, and then a
                        cry, 'Oh, mamma, mamma! <pb n="106"/>Oh, papa! Oh, mamma, come here. Oh
                        papa, oh!' They really did howl out, something in that way. We made
                        frightful noises to terrify them still more, and then we dropped off the
                        ledge, because somebody was drawing the bars, and we felt we had better
                        flee. I had Cathy by the hand, and was urging her on, when all at once she
                        fell down.</p>
                    <p>"Run, Heathcliff, run!" she whispered. "They have let the bull-dog loose, and
                        he holds me!"</p>
                    <p>"The devil had seized her ankle, Nelly; I heard his abominable snorting. She
                        did not yell out—no! She would have scorned to do it, if she had been
                        spitted on the horns of a mad cow. I did, though, I vociferated curses
                        enough to annihilate any fiend in Christendom, and I got a stone and thrust
                        it between his jaws, and tried with all my might to cram it down his throat.
                        A beast of a servant came up with a lantern, at last, shouting—</p>
                    <p>"Keep fast, Skulker, keep fast!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="107"/>"He changed his note, however, when he saw Skulker's game. The
                        dog was throttled off, his huge, purple tongue hanging half a foot out of
                        his mouth, and his pendant lips streaming with bloody slaver.</p>
                    <p>"The man took Cathy up; she was sick; not from fear, I'm certain, but from
                        pain. He carried her in; I followed grumbling execrations and
                        vengeance."</p>
                    <p>"What prey, Robert?" hallooed Linton from the entrance."</p>
                    <p>"Skulker has caught a little girl, sir," he replied, and there's a lad here,"
                        ha added, making a clutch at me, "who looks an out-and-outer! Very like, the
                        robbers were for putting them through the window, to open the doors to the
                        gang, after all were asleep, that they might murder us at their ease. Hold
                        your tongue, you foul-mouthed thief, you! you shall go to the gallows for
                        this. Mr. Linton, sir, don't lay by your gun!"</p>
                    <p>"No, no, Robert!" said the old fool. <pb n="108"/>"The rascals knew that
                        yesterday was my rent day; they thought to have me cleverly. Come in; I'll
                        furnish them a reception. There, John, fasten the chain. Give Skulker some
                        water, Jenny. To beard a magistrate in his strong-hold, and on the Sabbath,
                        too! where will their insolence stop? Oh, my dear Mary, look here! Don't be
                        afraid, it is but a boy—yet, the villain scowls so plainly in his face,
                        would it not be a kindness to the country to hang him at once, before he
                        shows his nature in acts, as well as features?"</p>
                    <p>He pulled me under the chandelier, and Mrs. Linton placed her spectacles on
                        her nose and raised her hands in horror. The cowardly children crept nearer
                        also, Isabella lisping—</p>
                    <p>"Frightful thing! Put him in the cellar, papa. He's exactly like the son of
                        the fortune-teller, that stole my tame pheasant. Isn't he, Edgar?"</p>
                    <p>"While they examined me, Cathy came round; she heard the last speech, and
                        laughed. <pb n="109"/>Edgar Linton, after an inquisitive stare, collected
                        sufficient wit to recognise her. They see us at church, you know, though we
                        seldom meet them elsewhere."</p>
                    <p>"That's Miss Earnshaw!" he whispered to his mother, "and look how Skulker has
                        bitten her—how her foot bleeds!"</p>
                    <p>"Miss Earnshaw? Nonsense!" cried the dame, "Miss Earnshaw scouring the
                        country with a gipsy! Aud yet, my dear, the child is in mourning—surely it
                        is—and she may be lamed for life!"</p>
                    <p>"What culpable carelessness in her brother!" exclaimed Mr. Linton, turning
                        from me to Catherine. "I've understood from Shielders (that was the curate
                        sir) that he lets her grow up in absolute heathenism. But who is this? Where
                        did she pick up this companion? Oho! I declare he is that strange
                        acquisition my late neighbour made in his journey to Liverpool—a little
                        Lascar, or an American or Spanish castaway."</p>
                    <p><pb n="110"/>"A wicked boy, at all events," remarked the old lady, "and quite
                        unfit for a decent house! Did you notice his language, Linton? I'm shocked
                        that my children should have heard it."</p>
                    <p>"I recommenced cursing—don't be angry Nelly—and so Robert was ordered to take
                        me off—I refused to go without Cathy—he dragged me into the garden, pushed
                        the lantern into my hand, assured me that Mr. Earnshaw, should be informed
                        of my behaviour, and bidding me march, directly, secured the door again.</p>
                    <p>"The curtains were still looped up at one corner; and I resumed my station as
                        spy, because, if Catherine had wished to return, I intended shattering their
                        great glass panes to a million fragments, unless they let her out.</p>
                    <p>"She sat on the sofa quietly, Mrs. Linton took off the grey cloak of the
                        dairy maid which we had borrowed for our excursion; shaking her head, and
                        expostulating with her, <pb n="111"/>I suppose; she was a young lady and
                        they made a distinction between her treatment, and mine. Then the woman
                        servant brought a basin of warm water, and washed her feet; and Mr. Linton
                        mixed a tumbler of negus, and Isabella emptied a plateful of cakes into her
                        lap, and Edgar, stood gaping at a distance. Afterwards, they dried and
                        combed her beautiful hair, and gave her a pair of enormous slippers, and
                        wheeled her to the fire, and I left her, as merry as she could be, dividing
                        her food, between the little dog and Skulker whose nose she pinched as he
                        ate; and kindling a spark of spirit in the vacant blue eyes of the Lintons—a
                        dim reflection from her own enchanting face—I saw they were full of stupid
                        admiration; she is so immeasurably superior to them—to everybody on earth;
                        is she not, Nelly?"</p>
                    <p>"There will more come of this business than you reckon on." I answered
                        covering him up and extinguishing the light, "You are <pb n="112"/>incurable
                        Heathcliff, and Mr. Hindley will have to proceed to extremities, see if he
                        wont."</p>
                    <p>My words came truer than I desired. The luckless adventure made Earnshaw
                        furious—And then, Mr. Linton, to mend matters, paid us a visit himself, on
                        the morrow; and read the young master such a lecture on the road he guided
                        his family, that he was stirred to look about him, in earnest.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff received no flogging, but he was told that the first word he spoke
                        to Miss Catherine should ensure a dismissal; and Mrs. Earnshaw undertook to
                        keep her sister-in-law in due restraint, when she returned home employing
                        art, not force—with force she would have found it impossible.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="113"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER VII.</head>

                    <p>Cathy stayed at Thrushcross Grange five weeks, till Christmas. By that time
                        her ankle was thoroughly cured, and her manners much improved. The mistress
                        visited her often, in the interval, and commenced her plan of reform, by
                        trying to raise her self-respect with fine clothes, and flattery, which she
                        took readily: so that, instead of a wild, hatless little savage jumping into
                        the house, and rushing to squeeze us all breathless, there lighted <pb n="114"/>from a handsome black pony a very dignified person with brown
                        ringlets falling from the cover of a feathered beaver, and a long cloth
                        habit which she was obliged to hold up with both hands that she might sail
                        in.</p>
                    <p>Hindley lifted her from her horse exclaiming delightedly,</p>
                    <p>"Why Cathy, you are quite a beauty! I should scarcely have known you—you look
                        like a lady now—Isabella Linton is not to be be compared with her, is she
                        Frances?"</p>
                    <p>"Isabella has not her natural advantages," replied his wife, "but she must
                        mind and not grow wild again here. Ellen, help Miss Catherine off with her
                        things—Stay, dear, you will disarrange your curls—let me untie your
                        hat."</p>
                    <p>I removed the habit, and there shone forth, beneath a grand plaid silk frock,
                        white trousers, and burnished shoes; and, while her eyes sparkled joyfully
                        when the dogs came bounding up to welcome her, she dare hardly <pb n="115"/>touch them lest they should fawn upon her splendid garments.</p>
                    <p>She kissed me gently, I was all flour making the Christmas cake, and it would
                        not have done to give me a hug; and, then, she looked round for Heathcliff.
                        Mr. and Mrs. Earnshaw watched anxiously their meeting, thinking it would
                        enable them to judge, in some measure, what grounds they had for hoping to
                        succeed in separating the two friends.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff was hard to discover, at first—If he were careless, and uncared
                        for, before Catherine's absence, he had been ten times more so, since.</p>
                    <p>Nobody, but I even did him the kindness to call him a dirty boy, and bid him
                        wash himself, once a week; and children of his age, seldom have a natural
                        pleasure in soap and water. Therefore, not to mention his clothes, which had
                        seen three month's service, in mire and dust, and his thick uncombed hair;
                        the surface of his face and hands was dismally beclouded. <pb n="116"/>He
                        might well skulk behind the settle, on beholding such a bright, graceful
                        damsel enter the house, instead of a rough-headed counterpart to himself, as
                        he expected.</p>
                    <p>"Is Heathcliff not here?" she demanded pulling off her gloves, and displaying
                        fingers wonderfully whitened with doing nothing, and staying in doors.</p>
                    <p>"Heathcliff you may come forward," cried Mr. Hindley enjoying his
                        discomfiture and gratified to see what a forbidding young blackguard he
                        would be compelled to present himself. "You may come and wish Miss Catherine
                        welcome, like the other servants."</p>
                    <p>Cathy, catching a glimpse of her friend in his concealment, flew to embrace
                        him, she bestowed seven or eight kisses on his cheek within the second, and,
                        then, stopped, and drawing back, burst into a laugh, exclaiming,</p>
                    <p>"Why, how very black and cross you look I and how—how funny and grim! But
                        that's because I'm used to Edgar, and Isabella <pb n="117"/>Linton. Well,
                        Heathcliff, have you forgotten me?"</p>
                    <p>She had some reason to put the question, for shame, and pride threw double
                        gloom over his countenance, and kept him immoveable.</p>
                    <p>"Shake hands, Heathcliff," said Mr. Earnshaw, condescendingly; "once in a
                        way, that is permitted."</p>
                    <p>"I shall not!" replied the boy finding his tongue at last, "I shall not stand
                        to be laughed at, I shall not bear it!"</p>
                    <p>And he would have broken from the circle, but Miss Cathy seized him
                        again.</p>
                    <p>"I did not mean to laugh at you," she said, "I could not hinder myself,
                        Heathcliff, shake hands, at least! What are you sulky for? It was only that
                        you looked odd—If you wash your face, and brush your hair it will be all
                        right. But you are so dirty!"</p>
                    <p>She gazed concernedly at the dusky fingers she held in her own, and also at
                        her dress <pb n="118"/>which she feared had gained no embellishment from its
                        contact with his.</p>
                    <p>"You needn't have touched me!" He answered, following her eye and snatching
                        away his hand. I shall be as dirty as I please, and I like to be dirty, and
                        I will be dirty."</p>
                    <p>With that he dashed head foremost out of the room, amid the merriment of the
                        master and mistress, and to the serious disturbance of Catherine who could
                        not comprehend how her remarks should have produced such an exhibition of
                        bad temper.</p>
                    <p>After playing lady's maid to the new comer, and putting my cakes in the oven,
                        and making the house and kitchen cheerful with great fires befitting
                        Christmas eve, I prepared to sit down and amuse myself by singing carols,
                        all alone; regardless of Joseph's affirmations that he considered the merry
                        tunes I chose as next door to songs.</p>
                    <p>He had retired to private prayer in his <pb n="119"/>chamber, and Mr. and
                        Mrs. Earnshaw were engaging Missy's attention by sundry gay trifles bought
                        for her to present to the little Lintons, as an acknowledgment of their
                        kindness</p>
                    <p>They had invited them to spend the morrow at Wuthering Heights, and the
                        invitation had been accepted, on one condition, Mrs. Linton begged that her
                        darlings might be kept carefully apart from that "naughty, swearing
                        boy."</p>
                    <p>Under these circumstances I remained solitary. I smelt the rich scent of the
                        heating spices; and admired the shining kitchen utensils, the polished
                        clock, decked in holly, the silver mugs ranged on a tray ready to be filled
                        with mulled ale for supper; and, above all, the speckless purity of my
                        particular care—the scoured and well-swept floor.</p>
                    <p>I gave due inward applause to every object and, then, I remembered how old
                        Earnshaw used to come in when all was tidied, and call me a cant lass, and
                        slip a shilling into my <pb n="120"/>hand, as a christmas box: and, from
                        that, I went on to think of his fondness for Heathcliff, and his dread lest
                        he should suffer neglect after death had removed him; and that naturally led
                        me to consider the poor lad's situation now, and from singing I changed my
                        mind to crying. It struck me soon, however, there would be more sense in
                        endeavouring to repair some of his wrongs than shedding tears over them—I
                        got up and walked into the court to seek him.</p>
                    <p>He was not far, I found him smoothing the glossy coat of the new pony in the
                        stable, and feeding the other beasts, according to custom.</p>
                    <p>"Make haste, Heathcliff!" I said "the kitchen is so comfortable—and Joseph is
                        upstairs; make haste, and let me dress you smart before Miss Cathy comes
                        out—and then you can sit together, with the whole hearth to yourselves, and
                        have a long chatter till bedtime."</p>
                    <p><pb n="121"/>He proceeded with his task and never turned his head towards
                        me.</p>
                    <p>"Come—are you coming?" I continued, "There's a little cake for each of you,
                        nearly enough; and you'll need half an hour's donning."</p>
                    <p>I waited five minutes, but getting no answer left him. . .Catherine supped
                        with her brother and sister-in law: Joseph and I joined at an unsociable
                        meal seasoned with reproofs on one side, and sauciness on the other. His
                        cake and cheese remained on the table all night, for the fairies. He managed
                        to continue work till nine o'clock, and, then, marched dumb and dour, to his
                        chamber.</p>
                    <p>Cathy sat up late; having a world of things to order for the reception of her
                        new friends: she came into the kitchen, once, to speak to her old one, but
                        he was gone, and she only staid to ask what was the matter with him, and
                        then went back.</p>
                    <p>"In the morning, he rose early; and, as it <pb n="122"/>was a holiday,
                        carried his ill-humour onto the moors; not re-appearing till the family were
                        departed for church. Fasting, and reflection seemed to have brought him to a
                        better spirit. He hung about me, for a while, and having screwed up his
                        courage, exclaimed abruptly,</p>
                    <p>"Nelly, make me decent, I'm going to be good."</p>
                    <p>"High time, Heathcliff," I said, "you <hi>have</hi> grieved Catherine; she's
                        sorry she ever came home, I dare say! It looks as if you envied her, because
                        she is more thought of than you."</p>
                    <p>The notion of <hi>envying</hi> Catherine was incomprehensible to him, but the
                        notion of grieving her, be understood clearly enough.</p>
                    <p>"Did she say she was grieved?" he inquired looking very serious.</p>
                    <p>"She cried when I told her you were off again this morning."</p>
                    <p>"Well, <hi>I</hi> cried last night" he returned, "and I had more reason to
                        cry than she."</p>
                    <p><pb n="123"/>"Yes, you had the reason of going to bed, with a proud heart,
                        and an empty stomach," said I, "Proud people breed sad sorrows for
                        themselves—But, if you be ashamed of your touchiness, you must ask pardon,
                        mind, when she comes in. You must go up, and offer to kiss her, and say—you
                        know best what to say, only, do it heartily, and not as if you thought her
                        converted into a stranger by her grand dress. And now, though I have dinner
                        to get ready, I'll steal time to arrange you so that Edgar Linton shall look
                        quite a doll beside you: and that he does—You are younger, and yet, I'll be
                        bound, you are taller and twice as broad across the shoulders—you could
                        knock him down in a twinkling; don't you feel that you could?"</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff's face brightened a moment; then, it was overcast afresh, and he
                        sighed.</p>
                    <p>"But, Nelly, if I knocked him down twenty times, that wouldn't make him less
                        handsome, <pb n="124"/>or me more so. I wish I had light hair and a fair
                        skin, and was dressed, and behaved as well, and had a chance of being as
                        rich as he will be!"</p>
                    <p>"And cried for mamma, at every turn—" I added, "and trembled if a country lad
                        heaved his fist against you, and sat at home all day for a shower of
                        rain.—O, Heathcliff, you are showing a poor spirit! Come to the glass, and
                        I'll let you see what you should wish. Do you mark those two lines between
                        your eyes, and those thick brow, that instead of rising arched, sink in the
                        middle, and that couple of black fiends, so deeply buried, who never open
                        their windows boldly, but lurk glinting under them, like devil's spies? Wish
                        and learn to smooth away the surly wrinkles, to raise your lids frankly, and
                        change the fiends to confidant, innocent angels, suspecting and doubting
                        nothing, and always seeing friends where they are not sure of foes—Don't get
                        the expression of a vicious <pb n="125"/>cur that appears to know the kicks
                        it gets are its desert, and yet, hates all the world, as well as the kicker,
                        for what it suffers."</p>
                    <p>"In other words, I must wish for Edgar Linton's great blue eyes, and even
                        forehead," he replied. "I do—and that wont help me to them."</p>
                    <p>"A good heart will help you to a bonny face my lad," I continued, "if you
                        were a regular black; and a bad one will turn the bonniest into something
                        worse than ugly. And now that we've done washing, and combing, and
                        sulking—tell me whether you don't think yourself rather handsome? I'll tell
                        you, I do. You're fit for a prince in disguise. Who knows, but your father
                        was Emperor of China, and your mother an Indian queen, each of them able to
                        buy up, with one week's income, Wuthering Heights and Thrushcross Grange
                        together? And you were kidnapped by wicked sailors, and brought to England.
                        Were I in your place, I would frame high notions of <pb n="126"/>my birth;
                        and the thoughts of what I was should give me courage and dignity to support
                        the oppressions of a little farmer!"</p>
                    <p>So I chattered on; and Heathcliff gradually lost his frown, and began to look
                        quite pleasant; when, all at once, our conversation was interrupted by a
                        rumbling sound moving up the road and entering the court. He ran to the
                        window, and I to the door, just in time to behold the two Lintons descend
                        from the family carriage, smothered in cloaks and furs, and the Earnshaws
                        dismount from their horses—they often rode to church in winter. Catherine
                        took a hand of each of the children, and brought them into the house, and
                        set them before the fire which quickly put colour into their white
                        faces.</p>
                    <p>I urged my companion to hasten now, and show his amiable humour; and he
                        willingly obeyed: but ill luck would have it, that as he opened the door
                        leading from the kitchen on one side, Hindley opened it on the other; they
                            <pb n="127"/>met, and the master irritated at seeing him clean and
                        cheerful, or, perhaps, eager to keep his promise to Mrs. Linton shoved him
                        back with a sudden thrust, and angrily bade Joseph "keep the fellow out of
                        the room—send him into the garret till dinner is over. He'll be cramming his
                        fingers in the tarts, and stealing the fruit, if left alone with them a
                        minute."</p>
                    <p>"Nay, sir," I could not avoid answering, "he'll touch nothing, not he—and, I
                        suppose, he must have his share of the dainties as well as we."</p>
                    <p>"He shall have his share of my hand, if I catch him down stairs again till
                        dark," cried Hindley. "Begone, you vagabond! What, you are attempting the
                        coxcomb, are you? Wait till I get hold of those elegant locks—see if I won't
                        pull them a bit longer!"</p>
                    <p>"They are long enough already," observed Master Linton, peeping from the
                        door-way, "I wonder they don't make his head ache. It's like a colt's mane
                        over his eyes!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="128"/>He ventured this remark without any intention to insult; but,
                        Heathcliff's violent nature was not prepared to endure the appearance of
                        impertinence from one whom he seemed to hate, even then, as a rival. He
                        seized a tureen of hot apple-sauce, the first thing that came under his
                        gripe, and dashed it full against the speaker's face and neck—who instantly
                        commenced a lament that brought Isabella and Catherine hurrying to the
                        place.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Earnshaw snatched up the culprit directly and conveyed him to his
                        chamber, where, doubtless, he administered a rough remedy to cool the fit of
                        passion, for he reappeared red and breathless. I got the dishcloth, and,
                        rather spitefully, scrubbed Edgar's nose and mouth, affirming, it served him
                        right for meddling. His sister began weeping to go home, and Cathy stood by
                        confounded, blushing for all.</p>
                    <p>"You should not have spoken to him!" she expostulated with Master Linton. "He
                        was <pb n="129"/>in a bad temper, and now you've spoilt your visit, and
                        he'll be flogged—I hate him to be flogged! I can't eat my dinner. Why did
                        you speak to him, Edgar?"</p>
                    <p>"I didn't," sobbed the youth, escaping from my hands, and finishing the
                        remainder of the purification with his cambric pocket-handkerchief. "I
                        promised mamma that I wouldn't say one word to him, and I didn't!"</p>
                    <p>"Well, don't cry!" replied Catherine, contemptuously. "You're not
                        killed—don't make more mischief—my brother is coming—be quiet! Give over,
                        Isabella! Has any body hurt <hi>you</hi>?"</p>
                    <p>"There, there, children—to your seats!" cried Hindley, bustling in. "That
                        brute of a lad has warmed me nicely. Next time, Master Edgar, take the law
                        into your own fists—it will give you an appetite!'</p>
                    <p>The little party recovered its equanimity at sight of the fragrant feast.
                        They were <pb n="130"/>hungry, after their ride, and easily consoled, since
                        no real harm had befallen them.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Earnshaw carved bountiful platefuls; and the mistress made them merry
                        with lively talk. I waited behind her chair, and was pained to behold
                        Catherine, with dry eyes and an indifferent air, commence cutting up the
                        wing of a goose before her.</p>
                    <p>"An unfeeling child," I thought to myself, "how lightly she dismisses her old
                        playmate's troubles. I could not have imagined her to be so selfish."</p>
                    <p>She lifted a mouthful to her lips; then, she set it down again: her cheeks
                        flushed, and the tears gushed over them. She slipped her fork to the floor,
                        and hastily dived under the cloth to conceal her emotion. I did not call her
                        unfeeling long, for, I perceived she was in purgatory throughout the day,
                        and wearying to find an opportunity of getting by herself, or paying a visit
                        to Heathcliff, who had been locked up by the master, as I discovered, on <pb n="131"/>endeavouring to introduce to him a private mess of
                        victuals.</p>
                    <p>In the evening we had a dance, Cathy begged that he might be liberated then,
                        as Isabella Linton had no partner; her entreaties were vain, and I was
                        appointed to supply the deficiency.</p>
                    <p>We got rid of all gloom in the excitement of the exercise, and our pleasure
                        was increased by the arrival of the Gimmerton band, mustering fifteen
                        strong; a trumpet, a trombone, clarionets, bassoons, French horns, and a
                        bass viol, besides singers. They go the rounds of all the respectable
                        houses, and receive contributions every Christmas, and we esteemed it a
                        first-rate treat to hear them.</p>
                    <p>After the usual carols had been sung, we set them to songs and glees. Mrs.
                        Earnshaw loved the music, and, so, they gave us plenty.</p>
                    <p>Catherine loved it too; but she said it sounded sweetest at the top of the
                        steps, and she went up in the dark: I followed. They <pb n="132"/>shut the
                        house door below, never noting our absence, it was so full of people. She
                        made no stay at the stairs' head, but mounted farther, to the garret where
                        Heathcliff was confined; and called him. He stubbornly declined answering
                        for a while—she persevered, and finally persuaded him to hold communion with
                        her through the boards.</p>
                    <p>I let the poor things converse unmolested, till I supposed the songs were
                        going to cease, and the singers to get some refreshment: then, I clambered
                        up the ladder to warn her.</p>
                    <p>Instead of finding her outside, I heard her voice within. The little monkey
                        had crept by the skylight of one garret, along the roof, into the skylight
                        of the other, and it was with the utmost difficultly I could coax her out
                        again.</p>
                    <p>When she did come, Heathcliff came with her; and she insisted that I should
                        take him into the kitchen, as my fellow-servant had gone to a neighbour's to
                        be removed from the sound <pb n="133"/>of our "devil's psalmody," as it
                        pleased him to call it.</p>
                    <p>I told them I intended, by no means, to encourage their tricks; but as the
                        prisoner had never broken his fast since yesterday's dinner, I would wink at
                        his cheating Mr. Hindley that once.</p>
                    <p>He went down; I set him a stool by the fire, and offered him a quantity of
                        good things; but, he was sick and could eat little: and my attempts to
                        entertain him were thrown away. He leant his two elbows on his knees, and
                        his chin on his hands, and remained wrapt in dumb meditation. On my
                        inquiring the subject of his thoughts, he answered gravely—</p>
                    <p>"I'm trying to settle how I shall pay Hindley back. I don't care how long I
                        wait, if I can only do it, at last. I hope he will not die before I do!"</p>
                    <p>"For shame, Heathcliff!" said I. "It is for God to punish wicked people; we
                        should learn to forgive."</p>
                    <p><pb n="134"/>"No, God wont have the satisfaction that I shall," he returned.
                        "I only wish I knew the best way! Let me alone, and I'll plan it out: while
                        I'm thinking of that, I don't feel pain."</p>
                    <p>"But, Mr. Lockwood, I forget these tales cannot divert you. I'm annoyed how I
                        should dream of chattering on at such a rate; and your gruel cold, and you
                        nodding for bed! I could have told Heathcliff's history, all that you need
                        hear, in half-a-dozen words."</p>
                    <p>Thus interrupting herself, the housekeeper rose, and proceeded to lay aside
                        her sewing; but I felt incapable of moving from the hearth, and I was very
                        far from nodding.</p>
                    <p>"Sit still, Mrs. Dean," I cried, "do sit still, another half hour! You've
                        done just right to tell the story leisurely. That is the method I like; and
                        you must finish in the same style. I am interested in every character you
                        have mentioned, more or less."</p>
                    <p>"The clock is on the stroke of eleven, sir."</p>
                    <p>"No matter—I'm not accustomed to go to <pb n="135"/>bed in the long hours.
                        One or two is early enough for a person who lies till ten."</p>
                    <p>"You shouldn't lie till ten. There's the very prime of the morning gone long
                        before that time. A person who has not done one half his day's work by ten
                        o'clock, runs a chance of leaving the other half undone."</p>
                    <p>"Nevertheless, Mrs. Dean, resume your chair; because to-morrow I intend
                        lengthening the night till afternoon. I prognosticate for myself an
                        obstinate cold, at least."</p>
                    <p>"I hope not, sir. Well, you must allow me to leap over some three years,
                        during that space, Mrs. Earnshaw—"</p>
                    <p>"No, no, I'll allow nothing of the sort! Are you acquainted with the mood of
                        mind in which, if you were seated alone, and the cat licking its kitten on
                        the rug before you, you would watch the operation so intently that puss's
                        neglect of one ear would put you seriously out of temper?"</p>
                    <p>"A terribly lazy mood, I should say."</p>
                    <p><pb n="136"/>"On the contrary, a tiresomely active one. It is mine, at
                        present, and, therefore, continue minutely. I perceive that people in these
                        regions acquire over people in towns the value that a spider in a dungeon
                        does over a spider in a cottage, to their various occupants; and yet the
                        deepened attraction is not entirely owing to the situation of the looker-on.
                        They <hi>do</hi> live more in earnest, more in themselves, and less in
                        surface change, and frivolous external things. I could fancy a love for life
                        here almost possible; and I was a fixed unbeliever in any love of a year's
                        standing—one state resembles setting a hungry man down to a single dish on
                        which he may concentrate his entire appetite, and do it justice—the other,
                        introducing him to a table laid out by French cooks; he can perhaps extract
                        as much enjoyment from the whole; but each part is a mere atom in his regard
                        and remembrance."</p>
                    <p>"Oh! here we are the same as anywhere <pb n="137"/>else, when you get to know
                        us," observed Mrs. Dean, somewhat puzzled at my speech.</p>
                    <p>"Excuse me," I responded; "you, my good friend, are a striking evidence
                        against that assertion. Excepting a few provincialisms of slight
                        consequence; you have no marks of the manners that I am habituated to
                        consider as peculiar to your class. I am sure you have thought a great deal
                        more than the generality of servants think. You have been compelled to
                        cultivate your reflective faculties, for want of occasions for frittering
                        your life away in silly trifles."</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Dean laughed.</p>
                    <p>"I certainly esteem myself a steady, reasonable kind of body," she said, "not
                        exactly from living among the hills, and seeing one set of faces, and one
                        series of actions, from year's end to year's end: but I have undergone sharp
                        discipline which has taught me wisdom; and then, I have read more than you
                        would fancy, Mr. Lockwood. You could not open a book <pb n="138"/>in this
                        library that I have not looked into, and got something out of also; unless
                        it be that range of Greek and Latin, and that of French—and those I know one
                        from another, it is as much as you can expect of a poor man's daughter."</p>
                    <p>However, if I am to follow my story in true gossip's fashion, I had better go
                        on; and instead of leaping three years, I will be content to pass to the
                        next summer—the summer of 1778, that is nearly twenty-three years ago.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="139"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER VIII.</head>

                    <p>On the morning of a fine June day, my first bonny little nursling, and the
                        last of the ancient Earnshaw stock was born.</p>
                    <p>We were busy with the hay in a far away field, when the girl that usually
                        brought our breakfasts came running, an hour too soon, across the meadow and
                        up the lane, calling me as she ran.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, such a grand bairn!" she panted out. "The finest lad that ever breathed!
                        but the doctor says missis must go; he says she's been <pb n="140"/>in a
                        consumption these many months. I heard him tell Mr. Hindley—and now she has
                        nothing to keep her, and she'll be dead before winter. You must come home
                        directly. You're to nurse it, Nelly—to feed it with sugar and milk, and take
                        care of it, day and night—I wish I were you, because it will be all yours
                        when there is no missis!"</p>
                    <p>"But is she very ill?" I asked, flinging down my rake, and tying my
                        bonnet.</p>
                    <p>"I guess she is; yet she looks bravely," replied the girl, "and she talks as
                        if she thought of living to see it grow a man. She's out of her head for
                        joy, it's such a beauty! If I were her I'm certain I should not die. I
                        should get better at the bare sight of it, in spite of Kenneth. I was fairly
                        mad at him. Dame Archer brought the cherub down to master, in the house, and
                        his face just began to light up, then the old croaker steps forward, and,
                        says he:—'Earnshaw, it's a blessing your wife has been spared to leave you
                        this son. When she <pb n="141"/>came, I felt convinced we shouldn't keep her
                        long; and now, I must tell you, the winter will probably finish her. Don't
                        take on, and fret about it too much, it can't be helped. And besides, you
                        should have known better than to choose such a rush of a lass!"</p>
                    <p>"And what did the master answer?" I enquired.</p>
                    <p>"I think he swore—but, I didn't mind him, I was straining to see the bairn,"
                        and she began again to describe it rapturously. I, as zealous as herself,
                        hurried eagerly home to admire, on my part, though I was very sad for
                        Hindley's sake; he had room in his heart only for two idols—his wife and
                        himself—he doted on both, and adored one, and I couldn't conceive how he
                        would bear the loss.</p>
                    <p>When we got to Wuthering Heights, there he stood at the front door; and, as I
                        passed in, I asked, how was the baby?"</p>
                    <p>"Nearly ready to run about, Nell!" he replied, putting on a cheerful
                        smile.</p>
                    <p><pb n="142"/>"And the mistress?" I ventured to inquire, "the doctor says
                        she's—"</p>
                    <p>"Damn the doctor!" he interrupted, reddening. "Frances is quite right—she'll
                        be perfectly well by this time next week. Are you going up-stairs? will you
                        tell her that I'll come, if she'll promise not to talk. I left her because
                        she would not hold her tongue; and she must—tell her Mr. Kenneth says she
                        must be quiet."</p>
                    <p>I delivered this message to Mrs. Earnshaw; she seemed in flighty spirits, and
                        replied merrily—</p>
                    <p>"I hardly spoke a word, Ellen, and there he has gone out twice, crying. Well,
                        say I promise I wont speak; but that does not bind me not to laugh at
                        him!"</p>
                    <p>Poor soul! Till within a week of her death that gay heart never failed her;
                        and her husband persisted doggedly, nay, furiously, in affirming her health
                        improved every day. When Kenneth warned him that his medicines <pb n="143"/>were useless at that stage of the malady, and he needn't put him to
                        further expense by attending her, he retorted—</p>
                    <p>"I know you need not—she's well—she does not want any more attendance from
                        you! She never was in a consumption. It was a fever; and it is gone—her
                        pulse is as slow as mine now, and her cheek as cool."</p>
                    <p>He told his wife the same story, and she seemed to believe him; but one
                        night, while leaning on his shoulder, in the act of saying she thought she
                        should be able to get up to-morrow, a fit of coughing took her—a very slight
                        one—he raised her in his arms; she put her two hands about his neck, her
                        face changed, and she was dead.</p>
                    <p>As the girl had anticipated; the child Hareton, fell wholly into my hands.
                        Mr. Earnshaw, provided he saw him healthy, and never heard him cry, was
                        contented, as far as regarded him. For himself, he grew desperate; his
                        sorrow was of that kind that will not <pb n="144"/>lament, he neither wept
                        nor prayed—he cursed and defied—execrated God and man, and gave himself up
                        to reckless dissipation.</p>
                    <p>The servants could not bear his tyrannical and evil conduct long: Joseph and
                        I were the only two that would stay. I had not the heart to leave my charge;
                        and besides, you know, I had been his foster sister, and excused his
                        behaviour more readily than a stranger would.</p>
                    <p>Joseph remained to hector over tenants and labourers; and because it was his
                        vocation to be where he had plenty of wickedness to reprove.</p>
                    <p>The master's bad ways and bad companions formed a pretty example for
                        Catherine and Heathcliff. His treatment of the latter was enough to make a
                        fiend of a saint. And, truly, it appeared as if the lad <hi>were</hi>
                        possessed of something diabolical at that period. He delighted to witness
                        Hindley degrading himself past redemption; and became daily more notable for
                        savage sullenness and ferocity.</p>
                    <p><pb n="145"/>I could not half tell what an infernal house we had. The curate
                        dropped calling, and nobody decent came near us, at last; unless, Edgar
                        Linton's visits to Miss Cathy might be an exception. At fifteen she was the
                        queen of the country-side; she had no peer: and she did turn out a haughty,
                        headstrong creature! I own I did not like her, after her infancy was past;
                        and I vexed her frequently by trying to bring down her arrogance; she never
                        took an aversion to me though. She had a wondrous constancy to old
                        attachments; even Heathcliff kept his hold on her affections unalterably,
                        and young Linton, with all his superiority, found it difficult to make an
                        equally deep impression.</p>
                    <p>He was my late master; that is his portrait over the fireplace. It used to
                        hang on one side, and his wife's on the other; but her's has been removed,
                        or else you might see something of what she was. Can you make that out?</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Dean raised the candle, and I discerned <pb n="146"/>a soft-featured
                        face, exceedingly resembling the young lady at the Heights, but more pensive
                        and amiable in expression. It formed a sweet picture. The long light hair
                        curled slightly on the temples; the eyes were large and serious; the figure
                        almost too graceful. I did not marvel how Catherine Earnshaw could forget
                        her first friend for such an individual. I marvelled much how he, with a
                        mind to correspond with his person, could fancy my idea of Catherine
                        Earnshaw.</p>
                    <p>"A very agreeable portrait," I observed to the housekeeper. "Is it like?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes," she answered; "but he looked better when he was animated, that is his
                        every day countenance; he wanted spirit in general."</p>
                    <p>Catherine had kept up her acquaintance with the Lintons since her five weeks'
                        residence among them; and as she had no temptation to show her rough side in
                        their company, and had the sense to be ashamed of being rude where she
                        experienced such invariable <pb n="147"/>courtesy, she imposed unwittingly
                        on the old lady and gentleman, by her ingenious cordiality; gained the
                        admiration of Isabella, and the heart and soul of her brother—acquisitions
                        that flattered her from the first, for she was full of ambition—and led her
                        to adopt a double character without exactly intending to deceive anyone.</p>
                    <p>In the place where she heard Heathcliff termed a "vulgar young ruffian," and
                        "worse than a brute," she took care not to act like him; but at home she had
                        small inclination to practise politeness that would only be laughed at, and
                        restrain an unruly nature when it would bring her neither credit, nor
                        praise.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Edgar seldom mustered courage to visit Wuthering Heights openly. He had a
                        terror of Earnshaw's reputation, and shrunk from encountering him, and yet,
                        he was always received with our best attempts at civility: the master
                        himself, avoided offending him—knowing why he came, and if he could not be
                            <pb n="148"/>gracious, kept out of the way. I rather think his
                        appearance there was distasteful to Catherine; she was not artful, never
                        played the coquette, and had evidently an objection to her two friends
                        meeting at all: for when Heathcliff expressed contempt of Linton, in his
                        presence, she could not half coincide, as she did in his absence; and when
                        Linton evinced disgust, and antipathy to Heathcliff, she dare not treat his
                        sentiments with indifference, as if depreciation of her playmate were of
                        scarcely any consequence to her.</p>
                    <p>I've had many a laugh at her perplexities, and untold troubles, which she
                        vainly strove to hide from my mockery. That sounds ill-natured—but she was
                        so proud, it became really impossible to pity her distresses, till she
                        should be chastened into more humility.</p>
                    <p>She did bring herself, finally, to confess, and confide in me. There was not
                        a soul else that she might fashion into an adviser.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Hindley had gone from home, one <pb n="149"/>afternoon; and Heathcliff
                        presumed to give himself a holiday, on the strength of it. He had reached
                        the age of sixteen then, I think, and without having bad features or being
                        deficient in intellect, he contrived to convey an impression of inward and
                        outward repulsiveness that his present aspect retains no traces of.</p>
                    <p>In the first place, he had, by that time, lost the benefit of his early
                        education: continual hard work, begun soon and concluded late, had
                        extinguished any curiosity he once possessed in pursuit of knowledge, and
                        any love for books, or learning. His childhood's sense of superiority,
                        instilled into him by the favours of old Mr. Earnshaw, was faded away. He
                        struggled long to keep up an equality with Catherine in her studies and
                        yielded with poignant though silent regret: but, he yielded completely; and
                        there was no prevailing on him to take a step in the way of moving upward,
                        when he found he must, necessarily, sink beneath his former level. Then
                        personal <pb n="150"/>appearance sympathised with mental deterioration; he
                        acquired a slouching gait, and ignoble look; his naturally reserved
                        disposition was exaggerated into an almost idiotic excess of unsociable
                        moroseness; and he took a grim pleasure, apparently, in exciting the
                        aversion rather than the esteem of his few acquaintance.</p>
                    <p>Catherine and he were constant companions still, at his seasons of respite
                        from labour; but, he had ceased to express his fondness for her in words,
                        and recoiled with angry suspicion from her girlish caresses, as if conscious
                        there could be no gratification in lavishing such marks of affection on him.
                        On the before-named occasion he came into the house to announce his
                        intention of doing nothing, while I was assisting Miss Cathy to arrange her
                        dress—she had not reckoned on his taking it into his head to be idle, and
                        imagining she would have the whole place to herself, she managed, by some
                        means, to inform Mr. <pb n="151"/>Edgar of her brother's absence, and was
                        then preparing to receive him.</p>
                    <p>"Cathy, are you busy, this afternoon?" asked Heathcliff, "Are you going
                        anywhere?"</p>
                    <p>"No, it is raining," she answered.</p>
                    <p>"Why have you that silk frock on, then?" he said, "Nobody coming here I
                        hope?"</p>
                    <p>"Not that I know of;" stammered Miss, "but you should be in the field now,
                        Heathcliff. It is an hour past dinner time; I thought you were gone."</p>
                    <p>"Hindley does not often free us from his accursed presence;" observed the
                        boy, "I'll not work any more to-day, I'll stay with you."</p>
                    <p>"O, but Joseph will tell;" she suggested, "you'd better go!"</p>
                    <p>"Joseph is loading lime on the farther side of Pennistow Crag, it will take
                        him till dark, and he'll never know."</p>
                    <p>So saying he lounged to the fire, and sat <pb n="152"/>down, Catherine
                        reflected an instant, with knitted brows—she found it needful to smooth the
                        way for an intrusion.</p>
                    <p>"Isabella, and Edgar Linton talked of calling this afternoon;" she said at
                        the conclusion of a minute's silence. "As it rains, I hardly expect them;
                        but, they may come, and if they do, you run the risk of being scolded for no
                        good."</p>
                    <p>"Order Ellen to say you are engaged, Cathy," he persisted, "Don't turn me out
                        for those pitiful, silly friends of yours! I'm on the point, sometimes, of
                        complaining that they—but I'll not—"</p>
                    <p>"That they what?" cried Catherine, gazing at him with a troubled countenance.
                        "Oh Nelly!" she added petulantly jerking her head away from my hands,
                        "you've combed my hair quite out of curl! That's enough, let me alone. What
                        are you on the point of complaining about, Heathcliff?"</p>
                    <p>"Nothing—only look at the almanack, on <pb n="153"/>that wall," he pointed to
                        a framed sheet hanging near the window, and continued;</p>
                    <p>"The crosses are for the evenings you have spent with the Lintons, the dots
                        for those spent with me—Do you see, I've marked every day?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes—very foolish; as if I took notice!" replied Catherine in a peevish tone.
                        "And where is the sense of that?"</p>
                    <p>"To show that I <hi>do</hi> take notice." said Heathcliff.</p>
                    <p>"And should I always be sitting with you," she demanded, growing more
                        irritated. "What good do I get—What do you talk about? you might be dumb or
                        a baby for anything you say to amuse me, or for anything you do,
                        either!"</p>
                    <p>"You never told me, before, that I talked too little, or that you disliked my
                        company, Cathy!" exclaimed Heathcliff in much agitation.</p>
                    <p><pb n="154"/>"It is no company at all, when people know nothing and say
                        nothing," she muttered.</p>
                    <p>Her companion rose up, but he hadn't time to express his feelings further,
                        for a horse's feet were heard on the flags, and, having knocked gently,
                        young Linton entered, his face brilliant with delight at the unexpected
                        summons he had received.</p>
                    <p>Doubtless Catherine marked the difference between her friends as one came in,
                        and the other went out. The contrast resembled what you see in exchanging a
                        bleak, hilly, coal country, for a beautiful fertile valley; and his voice,
                        and greeting were as opposite as his aspect—He had a sweet, low manner of
                        speaking, and pronounced his words as you do, that's less gruff than we talk
                        here and softer.</p>
                    <p>"I'm not come too soon, am I?" he said, casting a look at me, I had begun to
                        wipe the plate, and tidy some drawers at the far end in the dresser.</p>
                    <p><pb n="155"/>"No," answered Catherine. "What are you doing there, Nelly?"</p>
                    <p>"My work, Miss," I replied. (Mr. Hindley had given me directions to make a
                        third party in any private visits Linton chose to pay.)</p>
                    <p>She stepped behind me and whispered crossly, "Take yourself and your dusters
                        off! when company are in the house, servants don't commence scouring and
                        cleaning in the room where they are!"</p>
                    <p>"It's a good opportunity, now that master is away," I answered aloud, "he
                        hates me to be fidgetting over these things in his presence—I'm sure Mr.
                        Edgar will excuse me."</p>
                    <p>"I hate you to be fidgetting in <hi>my</hi> presence," exclaimed the young
                        lady imperiously, not allowing her guest time to speak—she had failed to
                        recover her equanimity since the little dispute with Heathcliff.</p>
                    <p>"I'm sorry for it, Miss Catherine!" was my response; and I proceeded
                        assiduously with my occupation.</p>
                    <p><pb n="156"/>She, supposing Edgar could not see her, snatched the cloth from
                        my hand, and pinched me, with a prolonged wrench, very spitefully on the
                        arm.</p>
                    <p>I've said I did not love her; and rather relished mortifying her vanity, now
                        and then; besides, she hurt me extremely, so I started up from my knees, and
                        screamed out.</p>
                    <p>"O, Miss, that's a nasty trick! you have no right to nip me, and I'm not
                        going to bear it!"</p>
                    <p>"I didn't touch you, you lying creature!" cried she, her fingers tingling to
                        repeat the act, and her ears red with rage. She never had power to conceal
                        her passion, it always set her whole complexion in a blaze.</p>
                    <p>"What's that then?" I retorted showing a decided purple witness to refute
                        her.</p>
                    <p>She stamped her foot, wavered a moment, and then, irresistibly impelled by
                        the naughty spirit within her, slapped me on the cheek a stinging blow that
                        filled both eyes with water.</p>
                    <p><pb n="157"/>"Catherine, love! Catherine!" interposed Linton, greatly shocked
                        at the double fault of falsehood, and violence which his idol had
                        committed.</p>
                    <p>"Leave the room, Ellen!" she repeated, trembling all over.</p>
                    <p>Little Hareton, who followed me everywhere, and was sitting near me on the
                        floor, at seeing my tears commenced crying himself, and sobbed out
                        complaints against "wicked aunt Cathy," which drew her fury on to his
                        unlucky head: she seized his shoulders, and shook him till the poor child
                        waxed livid, and Edgar thoughtlessly laid hold of her hands to deliver him.
                        In an instant one was wrung free, and the astonished young man felt it
                        applied over his own ear in a way that could not be mistaken for jest.</p>
                    <p>He drew back in consternation—I lifted Hareton in my arms, and walked off to
                        the kitchen with him; leaving the door of communication open, for I was
                        curious to <pb n="158"/>watch how they would settle their disagreement.</p>
                    <p>The insulted visiter moved to the spot where he had laid his hat, pale and
                        with a quivering lip.</p>
                    <p>"That's right!" I said to myself, "Take warning and begone! It's a kindness
                        to let you have a glimpse of her genuine disposition."</p>
                    <p>"Where are you going?" demanded Catherine, advancing to the door.</p>
                    <p>He swerved aside and attempted to pass.</p>
                    <p>"You must not go!" she exclaimed energetically.</p>
                    <p>"I must and shall!" he replied in a subdued voice.</p>
                    <p>"No," she persisted, grasping the handle; "not yet, Edgar Linton—sit down,
                        you shall not leave me in that temper. I should be miserable, all night, and
                        I won't be miserable for you!"</p>
                    <p>"Can I stay after you have struck me?" asked Linton.</p>
                    <p><pb n="159"/>Catherine was mute.</p>
                    <p>"You've made me afraid, and ashamed of you;" he continued; "I'll not come
                        here again!"</p>
                    <p>Her eyes began to glisten and her lids to twinkle.</p>
                    <p>"And you told a deliberate untruth!" he said.</p>
                    <p>"I didn't!" she cried, recovering her speech "I did nothing
                        deliberately—Well, go, if you please—get away! And now I'll cry—I'll cry
                        myself sick!"</p>
                    <p>She dropped down on her knees by a chair and set to weeping in serious
                        earnest.</p>
                    <p>Edgar persevered in his resolution as far as the court; there, he lingered. I
                        resolved to encourage him.</p>
                    <p>"Miss is dreadfully wayward, sir!" I called out. "As bad as any marred
                        child—you'd better be riding home, or else she will be sick, only to grieve
                        us."</p>
                    <p>The soft thing looked askance through the <pb n="160"/>window—he possessed
                        the power to depart, as much as a cat possesses the power to leave a mouse
                        half killed, or a bird half eaten—</p>
                    <p>Ah, I thought; there will be no saving him—He's doomed, and flies to his
                        fate!</p>
                    <p>And, so it was; he turned abruptly, hastened into the house again, shut the
                        door behind him; and, when I went in a while after to inform them that
                        Earnshaw had come home rabid drunk, ready to pull the old place about our
                        ears, (his ordinary frame of mind in that condition) I saw the quarrel had
                        merely affected a closer intimacy—had broken the outworks of youthful
                        timidity, and enabled them to forsake the disguise of friendship, and
                        confess themselves lovers.</p>
                    <p>Intelligence of Mr. Hindley's arrival drove Linton speedily to his horse, and
                        Catherine to her chamber. I went to hide little Hareton, and to take the
                        shot out of the master's fowling piece which he was fond of playing with in
                        his insane excitement, to the hazard of the <pb n="161"/>lives of any who
                        provoked, or even, attracted his notice too much; and I had hit upon the
                        plan of removing it, that he might do less mischief, if he did go the length
                        of firing the gun.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="162"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER. IX</head>

                    <p>He entered, vociferating oaths dreadful to hear; and caught me in the act of
                        stowing his son away in the kitchen cupboard. Hareton was impressed with a
                        wholesome terror of encountering either his wild-beast's fondness, or his
                        madman's rage—for in one he ran a chance of being squeezed and kissed to
                        death, and in the other of being flung into the fire, or dashed against the
                        wall—and the poor thing remained perfectly quiet wherever I chose to put
                        him.</p>
                    <p><pb n="163"/>"There I've found it out at last!" cried Hindley, pulling me
                        back by the skin of the neck, like a dog, "By Heaven and Hell, you've sworn
                        between you to murder that child! I know how it is, now, that he is always
                        out of my way. But, with the help of Satan, I shall make you swallow the
                        carving knife, Nelly! you needn't laugh; for I've just crammed Kenneth
                        head-downmost, in the Blackhorse marsh; and two is the same as one—and I
                        want to kill some of you, I shall have no rest till I do!"</p>
                    <p>"But I don't like the carving knife, Mr. Hindley;" I answered, it has been
                        cutting red herrings—I'd rather be shot if you please."</p>
                    <p>"You'd rather be damned!" he said, "and so you shall—No law in England can
                        hinder a man from keeping his house decent, and mine's abominable! open your
                        mouth."</p>
                    <p>He held the knife in his hand, and pushed its point between my teeth: but,
                        for my part I was never much afraid of his vagaries. I <pb n="164"/>spat
                        out, and affirmed it tasted detestably—I would not take it on any
                        account."</p>
                    <p>"Oh!" said he releasing me, I see that hideous little villain is not
                        Hareton—I beg your pardon, Nell—if it be he deserves flaying alive for not
                        running to welcome me, and for screaming as if I were a goblin. Unnatural
                        cub, come hither! I'll teach thee to impose on a good-hearted, deluded
                        father—Now, don't you think the lad would be handsomer cropped? It makes a
                        dog fiercer, and I love something fierce—Get me a scissors—something fierce
                        and trim! Besides, it's infernal affectation—devilish conceit, it is to
                        cherish our ears—we're asses enough without them. Hush, child, hush! well
                        then, it is my darling I wisht, dry thy eyes—there's a joy; kiss me; what it
                        won't? kiss me, Hareton! Dam'n thee, kiss me! By God, as if I would rear
                        such a monster! As sure as I'm living, I'll break the brat's neck."</p>
                    <p>Poor Hareton was squalling and kicking in <pb n="165"/>his father's arms with
                        all his might, and re-doubled his yells when he carried him up-stairs and
                        lifted him over the bannister. I cried out that he would frighten the child
                        into fits, and ran to rescue him.</p>
                    <p>As I reached them, Hindley leant forward on the rails to listen to a noise
                        below; almost forgetting what he had in his hands.</p>
                    <p>"Who is that?" he asked, hearing some one approaching the stair's-foot.</p>
                    <p>I leant forward, also, for the purpose of signing to Heathcliff, whose step I
                        recognized, not to come further; and, at the instant when my eye quitted
                        Hareton, he gave a sudden spring, delivered himself from the careless grasp
                        that held him, and fell.</p>
                    <p>There was scarcely time to experience a thrill of horror before we saw that
                        the little wretch was safe. Heathcliff arrived underneath just at the
                        critical moment; by a natural impulse, he arrested his descent, and setting
                            <pb n="166"/>him on his feet, looked up to discover the author of the
                        accident.</p>
                    <p>A miser who has parted with a lucky lottery ticket for five shillings and
                        finds next day he has lost in the bargain five thousand pounds, could not
                        show a blanker countenance than he did on beholding the figure of Mr.
                        Earnshaw above—It expressed, plainer than words could do, the intensest
                        anguish at having made himself the instrument of thwarting his own revenge.
                        Had it been dark, I dare say, he would have tried to remedy the mistake by
                        smashing Hareton's skull on the steps; but, we witnessed his salvation; and
                        I was presently below with my precious charge pressed to my heart.</p>
                    <p>Hindley descended more leisurely, sobered and abashed.</p>
                    <p>"It is your fault, Ellen," be said, "you should have kept him out of sight;
                        you should have taken him from me! Is he injured anywhere?"</p>
                    <p><pb n="167"/>"Injured!" I cried angrily, "If he's not killed, he'll be an
                        idiot! Oh! I wonder his mother does not rise from her grave to see how you
                        use him. You're worse than a heathen—treating your own flesh and blood in
                        that manner!"</p>
                    <p>He attempted to touch the child, who on finding himself with me sobbed off
                        his terror directly. At the first finger his father laid on him, however, he
                        shrieked again louder than before, and struggled as if he would go into
                        convulsions.</p>
                    <p>"You shall not meddle with him!" I continued, "He hates you—they all hate
                        you—that's the truth! A happy family you have; and a pretty state you're
                        come to!"</p>
                    <p>"I shall come to a prettier, yet! Nelly," laughed the misguided man,
                        recovering his hardness. "At present, convey yourself and him away—And, hark
                        you, Heathcliff! clear you too, quite from my reach and hearing. . .I
                        wouldn't murder you to-night, unless, perhaps <pb n="168"/>I set the house
                        on fire; but that's as my fancy goes—"</p>
                    <p>While saying this he took a pint bottle of brandy from the dresser, and
                        poured some into a tumbler.</p>
                    <p>"Nay don't!" I entreated, "Mr. Hindley do take warning. Have mercy on this
                        unfortunate boy, if you care nothing for yourself!"</p>
                    <p>"Any one will do better for him, than I shall," he answered.</p>
                    <p>"Have mercy on your own soul!" I said, endeavouring to snatch the glass from
                        his hand.</p>
                    <p>"Not I! on the contrary, I shall have great pleasure in sending it to
                        perdition, to punish its maker," exclaimed the blasphemer, "Here's to its
                        hearty damnation!"</p>
                    <p>He drank the spirits, and impatiently bade us go; terminating his command
                        with a sequel of horrid imprecations, too bad to repeat, or remember.</p>
                    <p>"It's a pity he cannot kill himself with drink," observed Heathcliff,
                        muttering an <pb n="169"/>echo of curses back when the door was shut. "He's
                        doing his very utmost; but his constitution defies him—Mr. Kenneth says he
                        would wager his mare, that he'll outlive any man on this side Gimmerton, and
                        go to the grave a hoary sinner; unless, some happy chance out of the common
                        course befall him."</p>
                    <p>I went into the kitchen and sat down to lull my little lamb to sleep.
                        Heathcliff, as I thought, walked through to the barn. It turned out,
                        afterwards, that he only got as far as the other side the settle, when he
                        flung himself on a bench by the wall, removed from the fire, and remained
                        silent.</p>
                    <p>I was rocking Hareton on my knee, and humming a song that began;</p>

                    <p>"It was far in the night, and the bairnies grat, The mither beneath the mools
                        heard that."</p>

                    <p>when Miss Cathy, who had listened to the hubbub from her room, put her head
                        in, and whispered,</p>
                    <p>"Are you alone, Nelly?"</p>
                    <p><pb n="170"/>"Yes, Miss," I replied.</p>
                    <p>She entered and approached the hearth. I, supposing she was going to say
                        something, looked up. The expression of her face seemed disturbed and
                        anxious. Her lips were half asunder as if she meant to speak; and she drew a
                        breath, but it escaped in a sigh, instead of a sentence.</p>
                    <p>I resumed my song: not having forgotten her recent behaviour.</p>
                    <p>"Where's Heathcliff?" she said, interrupting me.</p>
                    <p>"About his work in the stable," was my answer.</p>
                    <p>He did not contradict me; perhaps, he had fallen into a dose.</p>
                    <p>There followed another long pause, during which I perceived a drop or two
                        trickle from Catherine's cheek to the flags.</p>
                    <p>Is she sorry for her shameful conduct? I asked myself. That will be a
                        novelty, but, she may come to the point as she will—I shan't help her!</p>
                    <p><pb n="171"/>No, she felt small trouble regarding any subject, save her own
                        concerns.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, dear!" she cried at last. "I'm very unhappy!"</p>
                    <p>"A pity," observed I, "you're hard to please—so many friends and so few
                        cares, and can't make yourself, content!"</p>
                    <p>"Nelly, will you keep a secret for me?" she pursued, kneeling down by me, and
                        lifting her winsome eyes to my face with that sort of look which turns off
                        bad temper, even, when one has all the right in the world to indulge it.</p>
                    <p>"Is it worth keeping?" I inquired less sulkily.</p>
                    <p>"Yes, and it worries me, and I must let it out! I want to know what I should
                        do—Today, Edgar Linton has asked me to marry him, and I've given him an
                        answer—Now, before I tell you whether it was a consent, or denial—you tell
                        me which it ought to have been."</p>
                    <p><pb n="172"/>"Really, Miss Catherine, how can I know?" I replied. "To be
                        sure, considering the exhibition you performed in his presence, this
                        afternoon, I might say it would be wise to refuse him—since he asked you
                        after that, he must either be hopelessly stupid, or a venturesome fool."</p>
                    <p>"If you talk so, I wont tell you any more," she returned, peevishly, rising
                        to her feet, "I accepted him, Nelly; be quick, and say whether I was
                        wrong!"</p>
                    <p>"You accepted him? then, what good is it discussing the matter? You have
                        pledged your word, and cannot retract."</p>
                    <p>"But, say whether I should have done so—do!" she exclaimed in an irritated
                        tone; chafing her hands together, and frowning.</p>
                    <p>"There are many things to be considered, before that question can be answered
                        properly." I said sententiously, "First and foremost, do you love Mr.
                        Edgar?"</p>
                    <p><pb n="173"/>"Who can help it? of course I do," she answered.</p>
                    <p>Then I put her through the following catechism—for a girl of twenty-two it
                        was not injudicious.</p>
                    <p>"Why do you love him, Miss Cathy?"</p>
                    <p>"Nonsense, I do—that's sufficient."</p>
                    <p>"By no means; you must say why?"</p>
                    <p>"Well, because he is handsome, and pleasant to be with."</p>
                    <p>"Bad," was my commentary.</p>
                    <p>"And because he is young and cheerful."</p>
                    <p>"Bad, still."</p>
                    <p>"And, because he loves me."</p>
                    <p>"Indifferent, coming there."</p>
                    <p>"And he will be rich, and I shall like to be the greatest woman of the
                        neighbourhood, and I shall be proud of having such a husband."</p>
                    <p>"Worst of all! And, now, say how you love him?"</p>
                    <p>"As every body loves—You're silly, Nelly."</p>
                    <p>"Not at all—Answer."</p>
                    <p><pb n="174"/>"I love the ground under his feet, and the air over his head,
                        and everything he touches, and every word he says—I love all his looks, and
                        all his actions, and him entirely, and altogether. There now!"</p>
                    <p>"And why?"</p>
                    <p>"Nay—you are making a jest of it; it is exceedingly ill-natured! It's no jest
                        to me!" said the young lady scowling, and turning her face to the fire.</p>
                    <p>"I'm very far from jesting, Miss Catherine," I replied, "you love Mr. Edgar,
                        because he is handsome, and young, and cheerful, and rich, and loves you.
                        The last, however, goes for nothing—You would love him without that,
                        probably, and with it, you wouldn't unless he possessed the four former
                        attractions."</p>
                    <p>"No, to be sure not—I should only pity him—hate him, perhaps, if he were
                        ugly, and a clown."</p>
                    <p>"But, there are several other handsome, rich young men in the world;
                        handsomer, possibly, <pb n="175"/>and richer than he is—What should hinder
                        you from loving them?"</p>
                    <p>"If there be any, they are out of my way—I've seen none like Edgar."</p>
                    <p>"You may see some; and he won't always be handsome, and young, and may not
                        always be rich."</p>
                    <p>"He is now; and I have only to do with the present—I wish you would speak
                        rationally."</p>
                    <p>"Well, that settles it—if you have only to do with the present, marry Mr.
                        Linton."</p>
                    <p>"I don't want your permission for that—I <hi>shall</hi> marry him; and yet,
                        you have not told me whether I'm right."</p>
                    <p>"Perfectly right; if people be right to marry only for the present. And now,
                        let us hear what you are unhappy about. Your brother will be pleased. . .The
                        old lady and gentleman will not object, I think—you will escape from a
                        disorderly, comfortless home into a wealthy respectable one; and you love
                        Edgar, <pb n="176"/>and Edgar loves you. All seems smooth and easy—where is
                        the obstacle?"</p>
                    <p>"<hi>Here!</hi> and <hi>here!</hi>" replied Catherine, striking one hand on
                        her forehead, and the other on her breast. "In whichever place the soul
                        lives—in my soul, and in my heart, I'm convinced I'm wrong!"</p>
                    <p>"That's very strange! I cannot make it out."</p>
                    <p>"It's my secret; but if you will not mock at me, I'll explain it; I can't do
                        it distinctly—but I'll give you a feeling of how I feel."</p>
                    <p>She seated herself by me again: her countenance grew sadder and graver, and
                        her clasped hands trembled.</p>
                    <p>"Nelly, do you never dream queer dreams?" she said, suddenly, after some
                        minutes' reflection."</p>
                    <p>"Yes, now and then," I answered.</p>
                    <p>"And so do I. I've dreamt in my life dreams that have stayed with me ever
                        after, and changed my ideas; they've gone through <pb n="177"/>and through
                        me, like wine through water, and altered the colour of my mind. And this is
                        one—I'm going to tell it—but take care not to smile at any part of it."</p>
                    <p>"Oh! don't. Miss Catherine!" I cried. "We're dismal enough without conjuring
                        up ghosts, and visions to perplex us. Come, come, be merry, and like
                        yourself! Look at little Hareton—<hi>he's</hi> dreaming nothing dreary. How
                        sweetly he smiles in his sleep!"</p>
                    <p>"Yes; and how sweetly his father curses in his solitude! You remember him, I
                        dare say, when he was just such another as that chubby thing—nearly as young
                        and innocent. However, Nelly, I shall oblige you to listen—it's not long;
                        and I've no power to be merry to-night."</p>
                    <p>"I wont hear it, I wont hear it!" I repeated, hastily.</p>
                    <p>I was superstitious about dreams then, and am still; and Catherine had an
                        unusual gloom in her aspect, that made me dread something <pb n="178"/>from
                        which I might shape a prophecy, and foresee a fearful catastrophe.</p>
                    <p>She was vexed, but she did not proceed. Apparently taking up another subject,
                        she re-commenced in a short time.</p>
                    <p>"If I were in heaven, Nelly, I should be extremely miserable."</p>
                    <p>"Because you are not fit to go there," I answered. "All sinners would be
                        miserable in heaven."</p>
                    <p>"But it is not for that. I dreamt, once, that I was there."</p>
                    <p>"I tell you I wont harken to your dreams, Miss Catherine! I'll go to bed," I
                        interrupted again.</p>
                    <p>She laughed, and held me down, for I made a motion to leave my chair.</p>
                    <p>"This is nothing," cried she; "I was only going to say that heaven did not
                        seem to be my home; and I broke my heart with weeping to come back to earth;
                        and the angels were so angry that they flung me out, into the middle <pb n="179"/>of the heath on the top of Wuthering Heights: where I woke
                        sobbing for joy. That will do to explain my secret, as well as the other.
                        I've no more business to marry Edgar Linton than I have to be in heaven; and
                        if the wicked man in there, had not brought Heathcliff so low I shouldn't
                        have thought of it. It would degrade me to marry Heathcliff, now; so he
                        shall never know how I love him; and that, not because he's handsome, Nelly,
                        but because he's more myself than I am. Whatever our souls are made of, his
                        and mine are the same, and Linton's is as different as a moonbeam from
                        lightning, or frost from fire."</p>
                    <p>Ere this speech ended I became sensible of Heathcliff's presence. Having
                        noticed a slight movement, I turned my head, and saw him rise from the
                        bench, and steal out, noiselessly. He had listened till he heard Catherine
                        say it would degrade her to marry him, and then he staid to hear no
                        farther.</p>
                    <p>My companion, sitting on the ground, was <pb n="180"/>prevented by the back
                        of the settle from remarking his presence or departure; but I started, and
                        bade her hush!</p>
                    <p>"Why?" she asked, gazing nervously round.</p>
                    <p>"Joseph is here," I answered, catching, opportunely, the roll of his
                        cartwheels up the road; "and Heathcliff will come in with him. I'm not sure
                        whether he were not at the door this moment."</p>
                    <p>"Oh, he couldn't overhear me at the door!" said she. "Give me Hareton, while
                        you get the supper, and when it is ready ask me to sup with you. I want to
                        cheat my uncomfortable conscience, and be convinced that Heathcliff has no
                        notion of these things—he has not, has be? He does not know what being in
                        love is?"</p>
                    <p>"I see no reason that he should not know, as well as you," I returned; "and
                        if <hi>you</hi> are his choice, he'll be the most unfortunate creature that
                        ever was born! As soon as you become Mrs. Linton, he loses friend, and love,
                        and all! Have you considered how you'll bear <pb n="181"/>the separation,
                        and how he'll bear to be quite deserted in the world? Because, Miss
                        Catherine—"</p>
                    <p>"He quite deserted! we separated!" she exclaimed, with an accent of
                        indignation. "Who is to separate us, pray? They'll meet the fate of Milo!
                        Not as long as I live, Ellen—for no mortal creature. Every Linton on the
                        face of the earth might melt into nothing, before I could consent to forsake
                        Heathcliff. Oh, that's not what I intend—that's not what I mean! I shouldn't
                        be Mrs. Linton were such a price demanded! He'll be as much to me as he has
                        been all his lifetime. Edgar must shake off his antipathy, and tolerate him,
                        at least. He will when he learns my true feelings towards him. Nelly, I see
                        now, you think me a selfish wretch, but, did it never strike you that, if
                        Heathcliff and I married, we should be beggars? whereas, if I marry Linton,
                        I can aid Heathcliff to rise, and place him out of my brother's power."</p>
                    <p><pb n="182"/>"With your husband's money, Miss Catherine?" I asked. "You'll
                        find him not so pliable as you calculate upon: and, though I'm hardly a
                        judge, I think that's the worst motive you've given yet for being the wife
                        of young Linton."</p>
                    <p>"It is not," retorted she, "it is the best! The others were the satisfaction
                        of my whims; and for Edgar's sake, too, to satisfy him. This is for the sake
                        of one who comprehends in his person my feelings to Edgar and myself. I
                        cannot express it; but surely you and every body have a notion that there
                        is, or should be an existence of yours beyond you. What were the use of my
                        creation if I were entirely contained here? My great miseries in this world
                        have been Heathcliff's miseries, and I watched and felt each from the
                        beginning; my great thought in living is himself. If all else perished, and
                            <hi>he</hi> remained, I should still continue to be; and, if all else
                        remained, and he were annihilated, the Universe would turn to <pb n="183"/>a
                        mighty stranger. I should not seem a part of it. My love for Linton is like
                        the foliage in the woods. Time will change it, I'm well aware, as winter
                        changes the trees—my love for Heathcliff resembles the eternal rocks
                        beneath—a source of little visible delight, but necessary. Nelly, I
                            <hi>am</hi> Heathcliff—he's always, always in my mind—not as a pleasure,
                        any more than I am always a pleasure to myself—but, as my own being—so,
                        don't talk of our separation again—it is impracticable; and—"</p>
                    <p>She paused, and hid her face in the folds of my gown; but I jerked it
                        forcibly away. I was out of patience with her folly!</p>
                    <p>"If I can make any sense of your nonsense, Miss," I said, "it only goes to
                        convince me that you are ignorant of the duties you undertake in marrying;
                        or else, that you are a wicked, unprincipled girl. But, trouble me with no
                        more secrets. I'll not promise to keep them."</p>
                    <p><pb n="184"/>"You'll keep that?" she asked, eagerly.</p>
                    <p>"No, I'll not promise," I repeated.</p>
                    <p>She was about to insist, when the entrance of Joseph finished our
                        conversation; and Catherine removed her seat to a corner, and nursed
                        Hareton, while I made the supper.</p>
                    <p>After it was cooked, my fellow servant and I began to quarrel who should
                        carry some to Mr. Hindley; and we didn't settle it till all was nearly cold.
                        Then we came to the agreement that we would let him ask, if he wanted any,
                        for we feared particularly to go into his presence when he had been sometime
                        alone.</p>
                    <p>"Und hah isn't that nowt comed in frough th' field, be this time? What is he
                        abaht? girt eedle seeght!" demanded the old man, looking round for
                        Heathcliff.</p>
                    <p>"I'll call him," I replied. "He's in the barn, I've no doubt."</p>
                    <p>I went and called, but got no answer. On returning, I whispered to Catherine
                        that he had heard a good part of what she said, I was <pb n="185"/>sure; and
                        told how I saw him quit the kitchen just as she complained of her brother's
                        conduct regarding him.</p>
                    <p>She jumped up in a fine fright—flung Hareton onto the settle, and ran to seek
                        for her friend herself, not taking leisure to consider why she was so
                        flurried, or how her talk would have affected him.</p>
                    <p>She was absent such a while that Joseph proposed we should wait no longer. He
                        cunningly conjectured they were staying away in order to avoid hearing his
                        protracted blessing. They were "ill eneugh for ony fahl manners," he
                        affirmed. And, on their behalf, he added, that night a special prayer to the
                        usual quarter of an hour's supplication before meat, and would have tacked
                        another to the end of the grace, had not his young mistress broken in upon
                        him with a hurried command, that he must run down the road, and, wherever
                        Heathcliff had rambled, find and make him re-enter directly!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="186"/>"I want to speak to him, and I <hi>must</hi>, before I go
                        up-stairs, she said. "And the gate is open, he is somewhere out of hearing;
                        for he would not reply, though I shouted at the top of the fold as loud as I
                        could."</p>
                    <p>Joseph objected at first; she was too much in earnest, however, to suffer
                        contradiction; and, at last, he placed his hat on his head, and walked
                        grumbling forth.</p>
                    <p>Meantime, Catherine paced up and down the floor, exclaiming—</p>
                    <p>"I wonder where he is—I wonder where he <hi>can</hi> be!" What did I say,
                        Nelly? I've forgotten. Was he vexed at my bad humour this afternoon? Dear!
                        tell me what I've said to grieve him? I do wish he'd come. I do wish be
                        would!"</p>
                    <p>"What a noise for nothing!" I cried, though rather uneasy myself. "What a
                        trifle scares you! It's surely no great cause of alarm that Heathcliff
                        should take a moonlight saunter on the moors, or, even lie too sulky to <pb n="187"/>speak to us, in the hay-loft. I'll engage he's lurking there.
                        See, if I don't ferret him out!"</p>
                    <p>I departed to renew my search; its result was disappointment, and Joseph's
                        quest ended in the same.</p>
                    <p>"Yon lad gets war un war!" observed he on re-entering. "He's left th' yate ut
                        t' full swing, and miss's pony has trodden dahn two rigs uh corn, un
                        plottered through, raight o'er intuh t' meadow! Hahsomdiver, t' maister 'ull
                        play t' divil to-morn, and he'll do weel. He's patience itsseln wi' sich
                        careless, offald craters—patience itsseln he is! Bud he'll nut be soa
                        allus—yah's see, all on ye! Yah mumn't drive him aht uf his heead fur
                        nowt!"</p>
                    <p>"Have you found Heathcliff, you ass?" interrupted Catherine. "Have you been
                        looking for him, as I ordered?"</p>
                    <p>"Aw sud more likker look for th' horse," he replied. "It 'ud be tuh more
                        sense. Bud, aw can look for norther horse, nur man uf a neeght loike this—as
                        black as t' chimbley! und <pb n="188"/>Hathecliff's noan t' chap tuh coom ut
                            <hi>maw</hi> whistle—happen he'll be less hard uh hearing wi'
                            <hi>ye</hi>!"</p>
                    <p>It <hi>was</hi> a very dark evening for summer: the clouds appeared inclined
                        to thunder, and I said we had better all sit down; the approaching rain
                        would be certain to bring him home without further trouble.</p>
                    <p>However, Catherine would not be persuaded into tranquillity. She kept
                        wandering to and fro, from the gate to the door, in a state of agitation,
                        which permitted no repose: and, at length, took up a permanent situation on
                        one side of the wall, near the road; where, heedless of my expostulations,
                        and the growling thunder, and the great drops that began to plash around
                        her, she remained calling, at intervals, and then listening, and then crying
                        outright. She beat Hareton, or any child, at a good, passionate fit of
                        crying.</p>
                    <p>About midnight, while we still sat up, the storm came rattling over the
                        Heights in full <pb n="189"/>fury. There was a violent wind, as well as
                        thunder, and either one or the other split a tree off at the corner of the
                        building; a huge bough fell across the roof, and knocked down a portion of
                        the east chimney-stack, sending a clatter of stones and soot into the
                        kitchen fire.</p>
                    <p>We thought a bolt had fallen in the middle of us, and Joseph swung onto his
                        knees, beseeching the Lord to remember the Patriarchs Noah and Lot; and, as
                        in former times, spare the righteous, though he smote the ungodly. I felt
                        some sentiment that it must be a judgment on us also. The Jonah, in my mind,
                        was Mr. Earnshaw, and I shook the handle of his den that I might ascertain
                        if he were yet living. He replied audibly enough, in a fashion which made my
                        companion vociferate more clamorously than before that a wide distinction
                        might be drawn between saints like himself, and sinners like his master.
                        But, the uproar passed away in twenty minutes, leaving <pb n="190"/>us all
                        unharmed, excepting Cathy, who got thoroughly drenched for her obstinacy in
                        refusing to take shelter, and standing bonnetless and shawlless to catch as
                        much water as she could with her hair and clothes.</p>
                    <p>She came in, and lay down on the settle, all soaked as she was, turning her
                        face to the back, and putting her hands before it.</p>
                    <p>"Well Miss!" I exclaimed, touching her shoulder. "You are not bent on getting
                        your death, are you? Do you know what o'clock it is? Half-past twelve. Come!
                        come to bed; there's no use waiting longer on that foolish boy—he'll be gone
                        to Gimmerton, and he'll stay there now. He guesses we should n't wake for
                        him till this late hour; at least, he guesses that only Mr. Hindley would be
                        up; and he'd rather avoid having the door opened by the master."</p>
                    <p>"Nay, nay, he's noan at Gimmerton!" said Joseph. "Aw's niver wonder, bud he's
                        at t' bothoin uf a bog-hoile. This visitation worn't <pb n="191"/>for nowt,
                        und aw wod hev ye tub look aht. Miss,—yah muh be t' next. Thank Hivin for
                        all! All warks togither for gooid tuh them as is chozzen, and piked aht
                        froo' th' rubbidge! Yah knaw whet t' Scripture ses—"</p>
                    <p>And he began quoting several texts; refering us to the chapters and verses,
                        where we might find them.</p>
                    <p>I having vainly begged the wilful girl to rise and remove her wet things,
                        left him preaching, and her shivering, and betook myself to bed with little
                        Hareton; who slept as fast as if every one had been sleeping round him.</p>
                    <p>I heard Joseph read on a while afterwards; then, I distinguished his slow
                        step on the ladder, and then I dropt asleep.</p>
                    <p>Coming down somewhat later than usual, I saw, by the sunbeams piercing the
                        chinks of the shutters. Miss Catherine still seated near the fire-place. The
                        house door was ajar, too light entered from its unclosed windows, <pb n="192"/>Hindley had come out, and stood on the kitchen hearth, haggard
                        and drowsy.</p>
                    <p>"What ails you, Cathy?" he was saying when I entered; "You look as dismal as
                        a drowned whelp—Why are you so damp and pale child?"</p>
                    <p>"I've been wet;" she answered reluctantly "and I'm cold, that's all."</p>
                    <p>"Oh, she is naughty!" I cried, perceiving the master to be tolerably sober;
                        "She got steeped in the shower of yesterday evening, and there she has sat,
                        the night through, and I couldn't prevail on her to stir."</p>
                    <p>Mr. Earnshaw stared at us in surprise. "The night through," he repeated.
                        "What kept her up, not fear of the thunder, surely? That was over, hours
                        since."</p>
                    <p>Neither of us wished to mention Heathcliff's absence, as long as we could
                        conceal it; so, I replied, I didn't know how she took it into her head to
                        sit up; and she said nothing.</p>
                    <p>The morning was fresh and cool; I threw <pb n="193"/>back the lattice, and
                        presently the room filled with sweet scents from the garden: but Catherine
                        called peevishly to me.</p>
                    <p>"Ellen, shut the window. I'm starving!" And her teeth chattered as she shrunk
                        closer to the almost extinguished embers.</p>
                    <p>"She's ill—" said Hindley, taking her wrist, "I suppose that's the reason she
                        would not go to bed—Damn it! I don't want to be troubled with more sickness,
                        here—What took you into the rain?"</p>
                    <p>"Running after t'lads, as usuald!" croaked Joseph, catching an opportunity,
                        from our hesitation, to thrust in his evil tongue.</p>
                    <p>"If Aw wur yah, maister, Aw'd just slam t'boards i' their faces all on 'em,
                        gentle and simple! Never a day ut yah're off, but yon cat uh Linton comes
                        sneaking hither—and Miss Nelly shoo's a fine lass! shoo sits watching for ye
                        i' t'kitchen; and as yah're in at one door, he's aht at t'other—Und, then,
                        wer grand lady goes a coorting uf hor side! It's bonny <pb n="194"/>behaviour, lurking amang t'flields, after twelve ut' night, wi that fahl,
                        flaysome divil uf a gipsy, Heathcliff,! They think <hi>Aw'm</hi> blind; but
                        Aw'm noan, now't ut t'soart! Aw seed young Linton, boath coming and going,
                        and Aw seed <hi>yah</hi> (directing his discourse to me.) Yah gooid fur
                        nowt, slattenly witch! nip up nud bolt intuh th' haks, t' minute yah heard
                        t'maister's horse fit clatter up t' road.</p>
                    <p>"Silence, eavesdropper!" cried Catherine, "None of your insolence, before
                        me!" Edgar Linton, came yesterday, by chance, Hindley: and it was <hi>I</hi>
                        who told him to be off: because, I knew you would not like to have met him
                        as you were."</p>
                    <p>"You lie, Cathy, no doubt," answered her brother, "and you are a confounded
                        simpleton! But, never mind Linton, at present—Tell me, were you not with
                        Heathcliff, last night? Speak the truth, now. You need not be afraid of
                        harming him—Though I hate him as much as ever, he did me a good turn, a
                        short <pb n="195"/>time since, that will make my conscience tender of
                        breaking his neck. To prevent it, I shall send him about his business, this
                        very morning; and after he's gone, I'd advise you all to look sharp, I shall
                        only have the more humour for you!"</p>
                    <p>"I never saw Heathcliff last night," answered Catherine, beginning to sob
                        bitterly: "and if yon do turn him out of doors, I'll go with him. But,
                        perhaps, you'll never have an opportunity—perhaps, he's gone." Here she
                        burst into uncontrollable grief, and the remainder of her words were
                        inarticulate.</p>
                    <p>Hindley lavished on her a torrent of scornful abuse, and bid her get to her
                        room immediately, or she shouldn't cry for nothing! I obliged her to obey;
                        and I shall never forget what a scene she acted, when we reached her
                        chamber. It terrified me—I thought she was going mad, and I begged Joseph to
                        run for the doctor.</p>
                    <p><pb n="196"/>It proved the commencement of delirium: Mr. Kenneth, as soon as
                        he saw her, pronounced her dangerously ill; she had a fever.</p>
                    <p>He bled her, and he told me to let her live on whey, and water gruel; and
                        take care she did not throw herself down stairs, or out of the window; and
                        then he left; for, he had enough to do in the parish where two or three
                        miles was the ordinary distance between cottage and cottage.</p>
                    <p>Though I cannot say I made a gentle nurse, and Joseph and the master were no
                        better; and, though our patient was as wearisome and headstrong as a patient
                        could be, she weathered it through.</p>
                    <p>Old Mrs. Linton paid us several visits, to be sure; and set things to rights,
                        and scolded and ordered us all; and when Catherine was convalescent, she
                        insisted on conveying her to Thrushcross Grange; for which deliverance we
                        were very grateful. But, the poor dame had reason to repent of her kindness;
                        she, and <pb n="197"/>her husband, both took the fever, and died within a
                        few days of each other.</p>
                    <p>Our young lady returned to us, saucier, and more passionate, and haughtier
                        than ever. Heathcliff had never been heard of since the evening of the
                        thunder-storm, and, one day, I had the misfortune, when she had provoked me
                        exceedingly, to lay the blame of his disappearance on her (where indeed it
                        belonged, as she well knew.) From that period for several months, she ceased
                        to hold any communication with me save in the relation of a mere servant.
                        Joseph fell under a ban also; he <hi>would</hi> speak his mind, and lecture
                        her all the same as if she were a little girl; and she esteemed herself a
                        woman, and our mistress; and thought that her recent illness gave her a
                        claim to be treated with consideration. Then the doctor had said that she
                        would not bear crossing much, she ought to have her own way; and it was
                        nothing less than murder, in <pb n="198"/>her eyes, for any one, to presume
                        to stand up and contradict her.</p>
                    <p>From Mr. Earnshaw, and his companions she kept aloof, and tutored by Kenneth,
                        and serious threats of a fit that often attended her rages, her brother
                        allowed her whatever she pleased to demand, and generally avoided
                        aggravating her fiery temper. He was rather too indulgent in humouring her
                        caprices; not from affection, but from pride; he wished earnestly to see her
                        bring honour to the family by an alliance with the Lintons, and, as long as
                        she let him alone, she might trample us like slaves for ought he cared!</p>
                    <p>Edgar Linton, as multitudes have been before, and will be after him, was
                        infatuated; and believed himself the happiest man alive on the day he led
                        her to Gimmerton chapel, three years subsequent to his father's death.</p>
                    <p>Much against my inclination, I was persuaded to leave Wuthering Heights and
                            <pb n="199"/>accompany her here. Little Hareton was nearly five years
                        old, and I had just began to teach him his letters: We made a sad parting,
                        but Catherine's tears were more powerful than ours—When I refused to go, and
                        when she found her entreaties did not move me, she went lamenting to her
                        husband, and brother. The former offered me munificent wages; the latter
                        ordered me to pack up—he wanted no women in the house, he said, now that
                        there was no mistress; and as to Hareton, the curate should take him in
                        hand, by and bye. And so, I had but one choice left, to do as I was
                        ordered—I told the master he got rid of all decent people only to run to
                        ruin a little faster; I kissed Hareton good bye; and, since then, he has
                        been a stranger, and it's very queer to think it, but I've no doubt, he has
                        completely forgotten all about Ellen Dean and that he was ever more than all
                        the world to her, and she to him!</p>
                    <p>At this point of the housekeeper's story she <pb n="200"/>chanced to glance
                        towards the time-piece over the chimney; and was in amazement, on seeing the
                        minute-hand measure half past one. She would not hear of staying a second
                        longer—In truth, I felt rather disposed to defer the sequel of her
                        narrative, myself: and now, that she is vanished to her rest, and I have
                        meditated for another hour or two, I shall summon courage to go, also, in
                        spite of aching laziness of head and limbs.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="201"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER X.</head>

                    <p>A charming introduction to a hermit's life! Four weeks' torture, tossing and
                        sickness! Oh, these bleak winds, and bitter, northern skies, and impassable
                        roads, and dilatory country surgeons! And, oh, this dearth of the human
                        physiognomy, and, worse than all, the terrible intimation of Kenneth that I
                        need not expect to be out of doors till spring!</p>
                    <p>Mr. Heathcliff has just honoured me with a call. About seven days ago he sent
                        me a brace of grouse—the last of the season. <pb n="202"/>Scoundrel! He is
                        not altogether guiltless in this illness of mine; and that I had a great
                        mind to tell him. But, alas! how could I offend a man who was charitable
                        enough to sit at my bedside a good hour, and talk on some other subject than
                        pills, and draughts, blisters, and leeches?</p>
                    <p>This is quite an easy interval. I am too weak to read, yet I feel as if I
                        could enjoy something interesting. Why not have up Mrs. Dean to finish her
                        tale? I can recollect its chief incidents, as far as she had gone. Yes, I
                        remember her hero had run off, and never been heard of for three years; and
                        the heroine was married. I'll ring; she'll be delighted to find me capable
                        of talking cheerfully.</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Dean came.</p>
                    <p>"It wants twenty minutes, sir, to taking the medicine," she commenced.</p>
                    <p>"Away, away with it!" I replied; "I desire to have—"</p>
                    <p><pb n="203"/>"The doctor says you must drop the powders."</p>
                    <p>"With all my heart! Don't interrupt me. Come and take your seat here. Keep
                        your fingers from that bitter phalanx of vials. Draw your knitting out of
                        your pocket—that will do—now continue the history of Mr. Heathcliff, from
                        where you left off, to the present day. Did he finish his education on the
                        Continent, and come back a gentleman? or did he get a sizer's place at
                        college? or escape to America, and earn honours by drawing blood from his
                        foster country? or make a fortune more promptly, on the English
                        highways?"</p>
                    <p>"He may have done a little in all these vocations, Mr. Lockwood; but I
                        couldn't give my word for any. I stated before that I didn't know how he
                        gained his money; neither am I aware of the means he took to raise his mind
                        from the savage ignorance into which it was sunk; but, with your leave, I'll
                        proceed in my own fashion, if you think it will amuse, <pb n="204"/>and not
                        weary you. Are you feeling better this morning?"</p>
                    <p>"Much."</p>
                    <p>"That's good news. I got Miss Catherine and myself to Thrushcross Grange: and
                        to my agreeable disappointment, she behaved infinitely better than I dared
                        to expect. She seemed almost over fond of Mr. Linton; and even to his
                        sister, she showed plenty of affection. They were both very attentive to her
                        comfort, certainly. It was not the thorn bending to the honeysuckles, but
                        the honeysuckles embracing the thorn. There were no mutual concessions; one
                        stood erect, and the others yielded; and who <hi>can</hi> be ill-natured,
                        and bad-tempered, when they encounter neither opposition, nor
                        indifference?</p>
                    <p>"I observed that Mr. Edgar had a deep-rooted fear of ruffling her humour. He
                        concealed it from her; but if ever he heard me answer sharply, or saw any
                        other servant grow cloudy at some imperious order of hers, he <pb n="205"/>would show his trouble by a frown of displeasure that never darkened on
                        his own account. He, many a time, spoke sternly to me about my pertness; and
                        averred that the stab of a knife could not inflict a worse pang than he
                        suffered at seeing his lady vexed.</p>
                    <p>"Not to grieve a kind master I learnt to be less touchy; and, for the space
                        of half a year, the gunpowder lay as harmless as sand, because no fire came
                        near to explode it. Catherine had seasons of gloom and silence, now and
                        then, they were respected with sympathizing silence by her husband, who
                        ascribed them to an alteration in her constitution, produced by her perilous
                        illness, as she was never subject to depression of spirits before. The
                        return of sunshine was welcomed by answering sunshine from him. I believe I
                        may assert that they were really in possession of deep and growing
                        happiness.</p>
                    <p>"It ended. Well, we <hi>must</hi> be for ourselves in the long run; the mild
                        and generous <pb n="206"/>are only more justly selfish than the
                        domineering—and it ended when circumstances caused each to feel that the
                        one's interest was not the chief consideration in the other's thoughts.</p>
                    <p>"On a mellow evening in September, I was coming from the garden with a heavy
                        basket of apples which I had been gathering. It had got dusk, and the moon
                        looked over the high wall of the court, causing undefined shadows to lurk in
                        the corners of the numerous projecting portions of the building. I set my
                        burden on the house steps by the kitchen door, and lingered to rest, and
                        draw in a few more breaths of the soft, sweet air; my eyes were on the moon,
                        and my back to the entrance, when I heard a voice behind me say—</p>
                    <p>"'Nelly, is that you?'</p>
                    <p>"It was a deep voice, and foreign in tone: yet, there was something in the
                        manner of pronouncing my name which made it sound familiar. I turned about
                        to discover who <pb n="207"/>spoke, fearfully, for the doors were shut, and
                        I had seen nobody on approaching the steps.</p>
                    <p>"Something stirred in the porch; and moving nearer, I distinguished a tall
                        man dressed in dark clothes, with dark face and hair. He leant against the
                        side, and held his fingers on the latch, as if intending to open for
                        himself.</p>
                    <p>"'Who can it be?' I thought. 'Mr. Earnshaw? Oh, no! The voice has no
                        resemblance to his.'</p>
                    <p>"'I have waited here an hour,' he resumed, while I continued staring; 'and
                        the whole of that time all round has been as still as death I dared not
                        enter. You do not know me? Look, I'm not a stranger!'</p>
                    <p>A ray fell on his features; the cheeks were sallow, and half covered with
                        black whiskers; the brows lowering, the eyes deep set and singular. I
                        remembered the eyes."</p>
                    <p>"What!" I cried, uncertain whether to regard him as a worldly visiter, and I
                        raised my <pb n="208"/>hands in amazement. "What! you come back? Is it
                        really you? Is it?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes, Heathcliff," he replied, glancing from me up to the windows which
                        reflected a score of glittering moons, but showed no lights from within.
                        "Are they at home—where is she? Nelly, you are not glad—you needn't be so
                        disturbed. Is she here? Speak! I want to have one word with her—your
                        mistress. Go, and say some person from Gimmerton desires to see her."</p>
                    <p>"How will she take it?" I exclaimed, "what will she do? The surprise
                        bewilders me—it will put her out of her head! And you <hi>are</hi>
                        Heathcliff? But altered! Nay, there's no comprehending it. Have you been for
                        a soldier?"</p>
                    <p>"Go, and carry my message," he interrupted impatiently; I'm in hell till you
                        do!"</p>
                    <p>He lifted the latch, and I entered; but when I got to the parlour where Mr.
                        and Mrs. <pb n="209"/>Linton were, I could not persuade myself to
                        proceed.</p>
                    <p>At length, I resolved on making an excuse to ask if they would have the
                        candles lighted, and I opened the door.</p>
                    <p>They sat together in a window whose lattice lay back against the wall, and
                        displayed beyond the garden trees, and the wild green park, the valley of
                        Gimmerton, with a long line of mist winding nearly to its top, (for very
                        soon after you pass the chapel, as you may have noticed, the sough that runs
                        from the marshes joins a beck which follows the bend of the glen), Wuthering
                        Heights rose above this silvery vapour,; but our old house was invisible—it
                        rather dips down on the other side.</p>
                    <p>Both the room, and its occupants, and the scene they gazed on, looked
                        wondrously peaceful. I shrank reluctantly from performing my errand: and was
                        actually going away, leaving it unsaid, after having put my <pb n="210"/>question about the candles, when a sense of my folly compelled me to
                        return, and mutter:</p>
                    <p>"A person from Gimmerton wishes to see you, ma'am."</p>
                    <p>"What does he want?" asked Mrs. Linton.</p>
                    <p>"I did not question him," I answered.</p>
                    <p>"Well, close the curtains, Nelly," she said; "and bring up tea. I'll be back
                        again directly."</p>
                    <p>She quitted the apartment; Mr. Edgar inquired carelessly, who it was?</p>
                    <p>"Some one the mistress does not expect," I replied. "That Heathcliff, you
                        recollect him, sir, who used to live at Mr. Earnshaw's."</p>
                    <p>"What, the gipsy—the plough-boy?" he cried. "Why did you not say so to
                        Catherine?"</p>
                    <p>"Hush! you must not call him by those names, master," I said. "She'd be sadly
                        grieved to hear you. She was nearly heartbroken when he ran off; I guess his
                        return will make a jubilee to her."</p>
                    <p><pb n="211"/>Mr. Linton walked to a window on the other side of the room that
                        overlooked the court. He unfastened it, and leant out. I suppose they were
                        below, for he exclaimed, quickly:—</p>
                    <p>"Don't stand there love! Bring the person in, if it be any one
                        particular."</p>
                    <p>Ere long, I heard the click of the latch, and Catherine flew up-stairs,
                        breathless and wild, too excited to show gladness; indeed, by her face, you
                        would rather have surmised an awful calamity.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, Edgar, Edgar!" she panted, flinging her arms round his neck. "Oh, Edgar,
                        darling! Heathcliff's come back—he is!" And she tightened her embrace to a
                        squeeze.</p>
                    <p>"Well, well," cried her husband, crossly, "don't strangle me for that! He
                        never struck me as such a marvellous treasure. There is no need to be
                        frantic!"</p>
                    <p>"I know you didn't like him," she answered, repressing a little the intensity
                        of her <pb n="212"/>delight. "Yet for my sake, you must be friends now.
                        Shall I tell him to come up?"</p>
                    <p>"Here," he said, "into the parlour?"</p>
                    <p>"Where else?" she asked.</p>
                    <p>He looked vexed, and suggested the kitchen as a more suitable place for
                        him.</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Linton eyed him with a droll expression—half angry, half laughing at his
                        fastidiousness.</p>
                    <p>"No," she added, after a while; "I cannot sit in the kitchen. Set two tables
                        here, Ellen; one for your master and Miss Isabella, being gentry; the other
                        for Heathcliff and myself, being of the lower orders. Will that please you,
                        dear? Or must I have a fire lighted elsewhere? If so, give directions. I'll
                        run down and secure my guest. I'm afraid the joy is too great to be
                        real!"</p>
                    <p>She was about to dart off again; but Edgar arrested her.</p>
                    <p>"<hi>You</hi> bid him step up," he said, addressing me; "and, Catherine, try
                        to be glad, without <pb n="213"/>being absurd! The whole household need not
                        witness the sight of your welcoming a runaway servant as a brother."</p>
                    <p>I descended and found Heathcliff waiting under the porch, evidently
                        anticipating an invitation to enter. He followed my guidance without waste
                        of words, and I ushered him into the presence of the master and mistress,
                        whose flushed cheeks betrayed signs of warm talking. But the lady's glowed
                        with another feeling when her friend appeared at the door; she sprang
                        forward, took both his hands, and led him to Linton; and then she seized
                        Linton's reluctant fingers and crushed them into his.</p>
                    <p>Now fully revealed by the fire and candlelight, I was amazed, more than ever,
                        to behold the transformation of Heathcliff. He had grown a tall, athletic,
                        well-formed man; beside whom, my master seemed quite slender and youth-like.
                        His upright carriage suggested the idea of his having been in the army. <pb n="214"/>His countenance was much older in expression, and decision of
                        feature than Mr. Linton's; it looked intelligent, and retained no marks of
                        former degradation. A half-civilized ferocity lurked yet in the depressed
                        brows, and eyes full of black fire, but it was subdued; and his manner was
                        even dignified, quite divested of roughness though too stern for grace.</p>
                    <p>My master's surprise equalled or exceeded mine: he remained for a minute at a
                        loss how to address the ploughboy, as he had called him; Heathcliff dropped
                        his slight hand, and stood looking at him coolly till he chose to speak.</p>
                    <p>"Sit down, sir," he said, at length. "Mrs. Linton, recalling old times, would
                        have me give you a cordial reception, and, of course, I am gratified when
                        anything occurs to please her."</p>
                    <p>"And I also," answered Heathcliff, "especially if it be anything in which I
                        have a part. I shall stay an hour or two willingly."</p>
                    <p><pb n="215"/>He took a seat opposite Catherine, who kept her gaze fixed on
                        him as if she feared he would vanish were she to remove it. He did not raise
                        his to her, often; a quick glance now and then sufficed; but it flashed
                        back, each time, more confidently, the undisguised delight he drank from
                        hers.</p>
                    <p>They were too much absorbed in their mutual joy to suffer embarrassment; not
                        so Mr. Edgar, he grew pale with pure annoyance, a feeling that reached its
                        climax when his lady rose—and stepping across the rug, seized Heathcliff's
                        hands again, and laughed like one beside herself.</p>
                    <p>"I shall think it a dream to-morrow!" she cried. "I shall not be able to
                        believe that I have seen, and touched, and spoken to you once more—and yet,
                        cruel Heathcliff! you don't deserve this welcome. To be absent and silent
                        for three years, and never to think of me!"</p>
                    <p>"A little more than you have thought of <pb n="216"/>me!" he murmured. "I
                        heard of your marriage, Cathy, not long since; and, while waiting in the
                        yard below, I meditated this plan—just to have one glimpse of your face—a
                        stare of surprise, perhaps, and pretended pleasure; afterwards settle my
                        score with Hindley; and then prevent the law by doing execution on myself.
                        Your welcome has put these ideas out of my mind; but beware of meeting me
                        with another aspect next time! Nay, you'll not drive me off again—you were
                        really sorry for me, were you? Well, there was cause. I've fought through a
                        bitter life since I last heard your voice, and you must forgive me, for I
                        struggled only for you!"</p>
                    <p>"Catherine, unless we are to have cold tea, please to come to the table,"
                        interrupted Linton, striving to preserve his ordinary tone, and a due
                        measure of politeness. "Mr. Heathcliff will have a long walk, wherever he
                        may lodge to-night; and I'm thirsty."</p>
                    <p><pb n="217"/>She took her post before the urn; and Miss Isabella came,
                        summoned by the bell; then, having handed their chairs forward, I left the
                        room.</p>
                    <p>The meal hardly endured ten minutes—Catherine's cup was never filled, she
                        could neither eat, nor drink. Edgar had made a slop in his saucer, and
                        scarcely swallowed a mouthful.</p>
                    <p>Their guest did not protract his stay, that evening, above an hour longer. I
                        asked, as he departed, if he went to Gimmerton?</p>
                    <p>"No, to Wuthering Heights," he answered, "Mr. Earnshaw invited me when I
                        called this morning."</p>
                    <p>Mr. Earnshaw invited <hi>him</hi>! and <hi>he</hi> called on Mr. Earnshaw! I
                        pondered this sentence painfully, after he was gone. Is he turning out a bit
                        of a hypocrite, and coming into the country to work mischief under a cloak?
                        I mused—I had a presentiment, in the bottom of my heart, that he had better
                        have remained away.</p>
                    <p><pb n="218"/>About the middle of the night, I was wakened from my first nap
                        by Mrs. Linton gliding into my chamber, taking a seat on my bed-side, and
                        pulling me by the hair to rouse me.</p>
                    <p>"I cannot rest, Ellen;" she said by way of apology. "And I want some living
                        creature to keep me company in my happiness! Edgar is sulky, because I'm
                        glad of a thing that does not interest him—He refuses to open his mouth,
                        except to utter pettish, silly speeches; and he affirmed I was cruel and
                        selfish for wishing to talk when he was so sick and sleepy. He always
                        contrives to be sick at the least cross! I gave a few sentences of
                        commendation to Heathcliff, and he, either for a headache or a pang of envy,
                        began to cry: so I got up and left him."</p>
                    <p>"What use is it praising Heathcliff to him?" I answered, "As lads they had an
                        aversion to each other, and Heathcliff would hate just as much to hear him
                        praised—it's human <pb n="219"/>nature. Let Mr. Linton alone about him,
                        unless you would like an open quarrel between them."</p>
                    <p>"But does it not show great weakness?" pursued she. "I'm not envious—I never
                        feel hurt at the brightness of Isabella's yellow hair, and the whiteness of
                        her skin; at her dainty elegance, and the fondness all the family exhibit
                        for her. Even you Nelly, if we have a dispute sometimes, you back Isabella,
                        at once; and I yield like a foolish mother—I call her a darling, and flatter
                        her into a good temper. It pleases her brother to see us cordial, and that
                        pleases me. But, they are very much alike they are spoiled children, and
                        fancy the world was made for their accommodation; and, though I humour both,
                        I think a smart chastisement might improve them, all the same."</p>
                    <p>"You're mistaken, Mrs. Linton," said I, "They humour you—I know what there
                        would be to do if they did not! You can well <pb n="220"/>afford to indulge
                        their passing whims, as long as their business is to anticipate all your
                        desires—You may, however, fall out, at last, over something of equal
                        consequence to both sides; and, then those you term weak are very capable of
                        being as obstinate as you!"</p>
                    <p>"And then we shall fight to the death, shan't we, Nelly?" she returned
                        laughing, "No! I tell you, I have such faith in Linton's love that I believe
                        I might kill him, and he wouldn't wish to retaliate."</p>
                    <p>I advised her to value him the more for his affection.</p>
                    <p>"I do," she answered, "but, he needn't resort to whining for trifles. It is
                        childish; and, instead of melting into tears, because I said that Heathcliff
                        was now worthy of any one's regard, and it would honour the first gentleman
                        in the country to be his friend; he ought to have said it for me, and been
                        delighted from sympathy—He must get accustomed to him, and he may as well
                        like him— <pb n="221"/>considering how Heathcliff has reason to object to
                        him, I'm sure he behaved excellently!"</p>
                    <p>"What do you think of his going to Wuthering Heights?" I inquired, "He is
                        reformed in every respect, apparently—quite a christian—offering the right
                        hand of fellowship to his enemies all round!"</p>
                    <p>"He explained it," she replied. "I wondered as much as you—He said he called
                        to gather information concerning me, from you, supposing you resided there
                        still; and Joseph told Hindley who came out, and fell to questioning him of
                        what he had been doing, and how he had been living: and finally, desired him
                        to walk in—There were some persons sitting at cards—Heathcliff joined them;
                        my brother lost some money to him; and, finding him plentifully supplied, he
                        requested that he would come again in the evening, to which he consented.
                        Hindley is too reckless to select his acquaintance prudently; he doesn't
                        trouble himself to reflect on the causes he might have <pb n="222"/>for
                        mistrusting one whom he has basely injured—But, Heathcliff affirms his
                        principal reason for resuming a connection with his ancient persecutor is a
                        wish to install himself in quarters at walking distance from the Grange, and
                        an attachment to the house where we lived together, and, likewise a hope
                        that I shall have more opportunities of seeing him there than I could have
                        if he settled in Gimmerton. He means to offer liberal payment for permission
                        to lodge at the Heights; and doubtless my brother's covetousness will prompt
                        him to accept the terms; he was always greedy, though what he grasps with
                        one hand, he flings away with the other."</p>
                    <p>"It's a nice place for a young man to fix his dwelling in!" said I, "Have you
                        no fear of the consequences, Mrs. Linton?"</p>
                    <p>"None for my friend," she replied, "his strong head will keep him from
                        danger—a little for Hindley; but, he can't be made morally worse than he is;
                        and I stand between <pb n="223"/>him and bodily harm—The event of this
                        evening has reconciled me to God, and humanity! I had risen in angry
                        rebellion against providence—Oh, I've endured very, very bitter misery.
                        Nelly! If that creature knew how bitter, he'd be ashamed to cloud its
                        removal with idle petulance—It was kindness for him which induced me to bear
                        it alone: had I expressed the agony I frequently felt, he would have been
                        taught to long for its alleviation as ardently as I—However, it's over, and
                        I'll take no revenge on his folly—I can afford to suffer anything,
                        hereafter! should the meanest thing alive slap me on the cheek, I'd not only
                        turn the other, but, I'd ask pardon for provoking it—and, as a proof, I'll,
                        go make my peace with Edgar instantly—Good night—I'm an angel!"</p>
                    <p>In this self-complacent conviction she departed; and the success of her
                        fulfi11ed resolution was obvious on the morrow—Mr. <pb n="224"/>Linton had
                        not only abjured, his peevishness (though his spirits seemed still subdued
                        by Catherine's exuberance of vivacity) but he ventured no objection to her
                        taking Isabella with her to Wuthering Heights, in the afternoon; and she
                        rewarded him with such a summer of sweetness and affection, in return, as
                        made the house a paradise for several days; both master, and servants
                        profiting from the perpetual sunshine.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff—Mr. Heathcliff I should say in future, used the liberty of
                        visiting at Thrushcross Grange cautiously, at first: he seemed estimating
                        how far its owner would bear his intrusion. Catherine also, deemed it
                        judicious to moderate her expressions of pleasure in receiving him; and he
                        gradually established his right to be expected.</p>
                    <p>He retained a great deal of the reserve for which his boyhood was remarkable,
                        and that served to repress all startling demonstrations <pb n="225"/>of
                        feeling. My master's uneasiness experienced a lull, and further
                        circumstances diverted it into another channel for a space.</p>
                    <p>His new source of trouble sprang from the not anticipated misfortune of
                        Isabella Linton evincing a sudden and irresistible attraction towards the
                        tolerated guest—She was at that time a charming young lady of eighteen;
                        infantile in manners, though possessed of keen wit, keen feelings, and a
                        keen temper, too, if irritated. Her brother, who loved her tenderly, was
                        appalled at this fantastic preference. Leaving aside the degradation of an
                        alliance with a nameless man, and the possible fact that his property, in
                        default of heirs male, might pass into such a one's power, he had sense to
                        comprehend Heathcliff's disposition—to know that, though his exterior was
                        altered, his mind was unchangeable, and unchanged. And he dreaded that mind;
                        it revolted him; he shrank forebodingly from the idea of committing Isabella
                        to its keeping.</p>
                    <p><pb n="226"/>He would have recoiled still more had he been aware that her
                        attachment rose unsolicited, and was bestowed where it awakened no
                        reciprocation of sentiment; for the minute he discovered its existence, he
                        laid the blame on Heathcliff's deliberate designing.</p>
                    <p>We had all remarked, during some time, that Miss Linton fretted and pined
                        over something. She grew cross and wearisome, snapping at and teazing
                        Catherine, continually, at the imminent risk of exhausting her limited
                        patience. We excused her to a certain extent, on the plea of ill health—she
                        was dwindling and fading before our eyes—But, one day "when she had been
                        peculiarly wayward, rejecting her breakfast, complaining that the servants
                        did not do what she told them; that the mistress would allow her to be
                        nothing in the house, and Edgar neglected her; that she had caught a cold
                        with the doors being left open, and we let the parlour fire go out on
                        purpose to vex her; with a hundred yet more <pb n="227"/>frivolous
                        accusations; Mrs. Linton peremptorily insisted that she should get to-bed;
                        and, having scolded her heartily, threatened to send for the doctor.</p>
                    <p>Mention of Kenneth, caused her to exclaim, instantly, that her health was
                        perfect, and it was only Catherine's harshness which made ber unhappy.</p>
                    <p>"How can you say I am harsh, you naughty fondling?" cried the mistress,
                        amazed at the unreasonable assertion. "You are surely losing your reason.
                        When have I been harsh, tell me?"</p>
                    <p>"Yesterday," sobbed Isabella, "and now!"</p>
                    <p>"Yesterday!" said her sister-in-law. "On what occasion?"</p>
                    <p>"In our walk along the moor; you told me to ramble where I pleased, while you
                        sauntered on with Mr. Heathcliff!"</p>
                    <p>"And that's your notion of harshness?" said Catherine, laughing. "It was no
                        hint that your company was superfluous; we didn't care <pb n="228"/>whether
                        you kept with us or not; I merely thought Heathcliff's talk would have
                        nothing entertaining for your ears."</p>
                    <p>"Oh, no," wept the young lady, "you wished me away, because you knew I liked
                        to be there!"</p>
                    <p>"Is she sane?" asked Mrs. Linton, appealing to me. "I'll repeat our
                        conversation, word for word, Isabella; and you point out any charm it could
                        have had for you."</p>
                    <p>"I don't mind the conversation," she answered: "I wanted to be with—"</p>
                    <p>"Well!" said Catherine, perceiving her hesitate to complete the sentence.</p>
                    <p>"With him; and I wont be always sent off!" she continued, kindling up. "You
                        are a dog in the manger, Cathy, and desire no one to be loved but
                        yourself!"</p>
                    <p>"You are an impertinent little monkey!" exclaimed Mrs. Linton, in surprise.
                        "But I'll not believe this idiocy! It is impossible that you can covet the
                        admiration of Heathcliff <pb n="229"/>—that you can consider him an
                        agreeable person! I hope I have misunderstood you, Isabella?</p>
                    <p>"No, you have not," said the infatuated girl. "I love him more than ever you
                        loved Edgar; and he might love me if you would let him!"</p>
                    <p>"I wouldn't be you for a kingdom, then!" Catherine declared, emphatically—and
                        she seemed to speak sincerely. "Nelly, help me to convince her of her
                        madness. Tell her what Heathcliff is—an unreclaimed creature, without
                        refinement—without cultivation; an arid wilderness of furze and whinstone.
                        I'd as soon put that little canary into the park on a winter's day as
                        recommend you to bestow your heart on him! It is deplorable ignorance of his
                        character, child, and nothing else, which makes that dream enter your head,
                        pray don't imagine that he conceals depths of benevolence and affection
                        beneath a stern exterior! He's not a rough diamond—a <pb n="230"/>pearl-containing oyster of a rustic; he's a fierce, pitiless, wolfish man.
                        I never say to him let this or that enemy alone, because it would be
                        ungenerous or cruel to harm them—I say let them alone, because <hi>I</hi>
                        should hate them to be wronged: and he'd crush you, like a sparrow's egg,
                        Isabella, if he found you a troublesome charge. I know he couldn't love a
                        Linton; and yet, he'd be quite capable of marrying your fortune, and
                        expectations. Avarice is growing with him a besetting sin. There's my
                        picture; and I'm his friend—so much so, that had he thought seriously to
                        catch you, I should, perhaps, have held my tongue, and let you fall into his
                        trap."</p>
                    <p>Miss Linton regarded her sister-in-law with indignation.</p>
                    <p>"For shame! for shame!" she repeated, angrily. "You are worse than twenty
                        foes, you poisonous friend!"</p>
                    <p>"Ah! you wont believe me, then?" said <pb n="231"/>Catherine. "You think I
                        speak from wicked selfishness?"</p>
                    <p>"I'm certain you do," retorted Isabella; "and I shudder at you!"</p>
                    <p>"Good!" cried the other. "Try for yourself, if that be your spirit; I have
                        done, and yield the argument to your saucy insolence."</p>
                    <p>"And I must suffer for her egotism!" she sobbed, as Mrs. Linton left the
                        room. "All, all is against me; she has blighted my single consolation. But
                        she uttered falsehoods, didn't she? Mr. Heathcliff is not a fiend; he has an
                        honourable soul, and a true one, or how could he remember her?"</p>
                    <p>"Banish him from your thoughts, miss," I said. "He's a bird of bad omen; no
                        mate for you. Mrs. Linton spoke strongly, and yet, I can't contradict her.
                        She is better acquainted with his heart than I, or any one besides; and she
                        never would represent him as worse than he is. Honest people don't hide
                        their deeds. How has he been living? how has he got rich? <pb n="232"/>why
                        is he staying at Wuthering Heights, the house of a man whom he abhors? They
                        say Mr. Earnshaw is worse and worse since he came. They sit up all night
                        together continually; and Hindley has been borrowing money on his land; and
                        does nothing but play and drink, I heard only a week ago; it was Joseph who
                        told me—I met him at Gimmerton."</p>
                    <p>"Nelly," he said, "we's hae a Crahnr's 'quest enah, at ahr folks. One on
                        'em's a' most getten his finger cut off wi' hauding t'other froo' sticking
                        hisseln loike a cawlf. That's maister, yah knaw, ut's soa up uh going tuh
                        t'grand 'sizes. He's noan feard uh t' Bench uh judges, norther Paul, nur
                        Peter, nur John, nor Mathew, nor noan on 'em, nut he! He fair like's he
                        langs tuh set his brazened face agean 'em! And yon bonny lad Heathcliff, yah
                        mind, he's a rare un! He can girn a laugh, as weel's onybody at a raight
                        divil's jest. Does he niver say nowt of his fine living amang us, when he
                        goas tuh t' <pb n="233"/>Grange? This is t' way on't—up at sun-dahn; dice,
                        brandy, cloised shutters, und can'le lught till next day, at nooin—then, t'
                        fooil gangs banning un raving tuh his cham'er, makking dacent fowks dig thur
                        fingers i' thur higs fur varry shaume; un' the' knave, wah he carn cahnt his
                        brass, un ate, un' sleep, un' off tuh his neighbour's tuh gossip wi' t'
                        wife. I' course, be tells Dame Catherine hah hor father's goold runs in tuh
                        bis pocket, and her fathur's son gallops dahn t' Broad road, while he flees
                        afore tuh oppen t' pikes?" Now, Miss Linton, Joseph is an old rascal, but no
                        liar; and, if his account of Heathcliff's conduct be true, you would never
                        think of desiring such a husband, would you?"</p>
                    <p>"You are leagued with the rest, Ellen!" she replied. "I'll not listen to your
                        slanders. What malevolence you must have to wish to convince me that there
                        is no happiness in the world!"</p>
                    <p>Whether she would have got over this fancy <pb n="234"/>if left to herself,
                        or persevered in nursing it perpetually, I cannot say; she had little time
                        to reflect. The day after, there was a justice-meeting at the next town; my
                        master was obliged to attend; and Mr. Heathcliff, aware of his absence,
                        called rather earlier than usual.</p>
                    <p>Catherine and Isabella were sitting in the library, on hostile terms, but
                        silent. The latter alarmed at her recent indiscretion, and the disclosure
                        she had made of her secret feelings in a transcient fit of passion; the
                        former, on mature consideration, really offended with her companion; and, if
                        she laughed again at her pertness, inclined to make it no laughing matter to
                            <hi>her</hi>.</p>
                    <p>She did laugh as she saw Heathcliff pass the window. I was sweeping the
                        hearth, and I noticed a mischievous smile on her lips. Isabella, absorbed in
                        her meditations, or a book, remained till the door opened, and it was too
                        late to attempt an escape, which she would gladly have done had it been
                        practicable.</p>
                    <p><pb n="235"/>"Come in, that's right!" exclaimed the mistress, gaily, pulling
                        a chair to the fire. "Here are two people sadly in need of a third to thaw
                        the ice between them; and you are the very one we should both of us choose.
                        Heathcliff, I'm proud to show you, at last, somebody that dotes on you more
                        than myself. I expect you to feel flattered—nay, it's not Nelly; don't look
                        at her! My poor little sister-in-law is breaking her heart by mere
                        contemplation of your physical and moral beauty. It lies in your own power
                        to be Edgar's brother! No, no, Isabella, you sha'n't run off," she
                        continued, arresting, with feigned playfulness, the confounded girl who had
                        risen indignantly. "We were quarrelling like cats about you, Heathcliff; and
                        I was fairly beaten in protestations of devotion, and admiration; and,
                        moreover, I was informed that if I would but have the manners to stand
                        aside, my rival, as she will have herself to be, would shoot a shaft into
                        your soul that would <pb n="236"/>fix you for ever, and send my image into
                        eternal oblivion!"</p>
                    <p>"Catherine," said Isabella, calling up her dignity, and disdaining to
                        struggle from the tight grasp that held her. "I'd thank you to adhere to the
                        truth and not slander me, even in joke! Mr. Heathcliff, be kind enough to
                        bid this friend of yours release me—she forgets that you and I are not
                        intimate acquaintances, and what amuses her is painful to me beyond
                        expression."</p>
                    <p>As the guest answered nothing, but took his seat, and looked thoroughly
                        indifferent what sentiments she cherished concerning him, she turned, and
                        whispered an earnest appeal for liberty to her tormentor.</p>
                    <p>"By no means!" cried Mrs. Linton in answer. "I wont be named a dog in the
                        manger again. You <hi>shall</hi> stay, now then! Heathcliff, why don't you
                        evince satisfaction at my pleasant news? Isabella swears that the love Edgar
                        has for me, is nothing to that <pb n="237"/>she entertains for you. I'm sure
                        she made some speech of the kind, did she not, Ellen? And she has fasted
                        ever since the day before yesterday's walk, from sorrow and rage that I
                        despatched her out of your society, under the idea of its being
                        unacceptable."</p>
                    <p>"I think you belie her," said Heathcliff, twisting his chair to face them.
                        "She wishes to be out of my society now, at any rate!"</p>
                    <p>And he stared hard at the object of discourse, as one might do at a strange
                        repulsive animal, a centipede from the Indies, for instance, which curiosity
                        leads one to examine in spite of the aversion it raises.</p>
                    <p>The poor thing couldn't bear that; she grew white and red in rapid
                        succession, and, while tears beaded her lashes, bent the strength of her
                        small fingers to loosen the firm clutch of Catherine, and perceiving that,
                        as fast as she raised one finger off her arm, another closed down, and she
                        could not remove the whole together, she began to <pb n="238"/>make use of
                        her nails, and their sharpness presently ornamented the detainer's with
                        crescents of red.</p>
                    <p>"There's a tigress!" exclaimed Mrs. Linton, setting her free, and shaking her
                        hand with pain. "Begone, for God's sake, and hide your vixen face! How
                        foolish to reveal those talons to <hi>him</hi>. Can't you fancy the
                        conclusions he'll draw? Look, Heathcliff! they are instruments that will do
                        execution—you must beware of your eyes."</p>
                    <p>"I'd wrench them off her fingers, if they ever menaced me," he answered,
                        brutally, when the door had closed after her. "But, what did you mean by
                        teasing the creature in that manner, Cathy? You were not speaking the truth,
                        were you?"</p>
                    <p>"I assure you I was," she returned. "She has been pining for your sake
                        several weeks; and raving about you this morning, and pouring forth a deluge
                        of abuse, because I represented your failings in a plain light for the <pb n="239"/>purpose of mitigating her adoration. But don't notice it
                        further. I wished to punish her sauciness, that's all—I like her too well,
                        my dear Heathcliff, to let you absolutely seize and devour her up."</p>
                    <p>"And I like her too ill to attempt it," said he, "except in a very ghoulish
                        fashion. You'd hear of odd things, if I lived alone with that mawkish, waxen
                        face; the most ordinary would be painting on its white the colours of the
                        rainbow, and turning the blue eyes, black, every day or two; they detestably
                        resemble Linton's."</p>
                    <p>"Delectably," observed Catherine. "They are dove's eyes—angel's!"</p>
                    <p>"She's her brother's heir, is she not?" he asked, after a brief silence.</p>
                    <p>"I should be sorry to think so," returned his companion. "Half-a-dozen
                        nephews shall erase her title, please Heaven! Abstract your mind from the
                        subject, at present—you are too prone to covet your neighbour's goods:
                        remember <hi>this</hi> neighbour's goods are mine."</p>
                    <p><pb n="240"/>"If they were <hi>mine</hi>, they would be none the less that,"
                        said Heathcliff, "but though Isabella Linton may be silly, she is scarcely
                        mad; and—in short we'll dismiss the matter as you advise."</p>
                    <p>From their tongues, they did dismiss it; and Catherine, probably, from her
                        thoughts. The other, I felt certain, recalled it often in the course of the
                        evening; I saw him smile to himself—grin rather—and lapse into ominous
                        musing whenever Mrs. Linton had occasion to be absent from the
                        apartment.</p>
                    <p>I determined to watch his movements. My heart invariably cleaved to the
                        master's, in preference to Catherine's side; with reason, I imagined, for he
                        was kind, and trustful, and honourable: and she—she could not be called the
                            <hi>opposite</hi>, yet, she seemed to allow herself such wide latitude,
                        that I had little faith in her principles, and still less sympathy for her
                        feelings. I wanted something to happen which might have the effect of
                        freeing both <pb n="241"/>Wuthering Heights and the Grange of Mr.
                        Heathcliff, quietly, leaving us as we had been prior to his advent. His
                        visits were a continual nightmare to me; and, I suspected, to my master
                        also. His abode at the Heights was an oppression past explaining. I felt
                        that God had forsaken the stray sheep there to its own wicked wanderings,
                        and an evil beast prowled between it and the fold, waiting his time to
                        spring and destroy.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="242"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XI.</head>

                    <p>Sometimes, while meditating on these things in solitude, I've got up in a
                        sudden terror, and put on my bonnet to go see how all was at the farm; I've
                        persuaded my conscience that it was a duty to warn him how people talked
                        regarding his ways; and then I've recollected his confirmed bad habits, and,
                        hopeless of benefiting him, have flinched from re-entering the dismal house,
                        doubting if I could bear to be taken at my word.</p>
                    <p>One time, I passed the old gate, going out of <pb n="243"/>my way, on a
                        journey to Gimmerton. It was about the period that my narrative has
                        reached—a bright, frosty afternoon; the ground bare, and the road hard and
                        dry.</p>
                    <p>I came to a stone where the highway branches off on to the moor at your left
                        hand; a rough sand-pillar, with the letters W. H. cut on its north side, on
                        the east, G., and on the south-west, T. G. It serves as guide-post to the
                        Grange, and Heights, and village.</p>
                    <p>The sun shone yellow on its grey head, reminding me of summer; and I cannot
                        say why, but all at once, a gush of child's sensations flowed into my heart.
                        Hindley and I held it a favourite spot twenty years before.</p>
                    <p>I gazed long at the weather-worn block; and, stooping down, perceived a hole
                        near the bottom still full of snail-shells and pebbles which we were fond of
                        storing there with more perishable things—and, as fresh as reality, it
                        appeared that I beheld my early play-mate seated on the withered turf; his
                        dark, <pb n="244"/>square head bent forward, and his little hand scooping
                        out the earth with a piece of slate.</p>
                    <p>"Poor Hindley!" I exclaimed, involuntarily.</p>
                    <p>I started—my bodily eye was cheated into a momentary belief that the child
                        lifted its face and stared straight into mine! It vanished in a twinkling;
                        but, immediately, I felt an irresistible yearning to be at the Heights.
                        Superstition urged me to comply with this impulse—supposing he should be
                        dead! I thought—or should die soon!—supposing it were a sign of death!</p>
                    <p>The nearer I got to the house the more agitated I grew: and on catching sight
                        of it, I trembled every limb. The apparition had outstripped me; it stood
                        looking through the gate. That was my first idea on observing an elf-locked,
                        brown-eyed boy setting his ruddy countenance against the bars. Further
                        reflection suggested this must be Hareton, <hi>my</hi> Hareton, not altered
                        greatly since I left him, ten months since.</p>
                    <p><pb n="245"/>"God bless thee, darling!" I cried, forgetting instantaneously
                        my foolish fears. "Hareton, it's Nelly—Nelly, thy nurse."</p>
                    <p>He retreated out of arm's length, and picked up a large flint.</p>
                    <p>"I am come to see thy father, Hareton," I added, guessing from the action
                        that Nelly, if she lived in his memory at all, was not recognised as one
                        with me.</p>
                    <p>He raised his missile to hurl it; I commenced a soothing speech, but could
                        not stay his hand. The stone struck my bonnet, and then ensued, from the
                        stammering lips of the little fellow, a string of curses which, whether he
                        comprehended them or not, were delivered with practised emphasis, and
                        distorted his baby features into a shocking expression of malignity.</p>
                    <p>You may be certain this grieved, more than angered me. Fit to cry, I took an
                        orange from my pocket, and offered it to propitiate him.</p>
                    <p><pb n="246"/>He hesitated, and then snatched it from my hold, as if he
                        fancied I only intended to tempt, and disappoint him.</p>
                    <p>I showed another keeping it out of his reach.</p>
                    <p>"Who has taught you those fine words, my barn," I inquired. "The curate?"</p>
                    <p>"Damn the curate, and thee! Gie me that," he replied.</p>
                    <p>"Tell us where you got your lessons, and you shall have it," said I. "Whose
                        your master?"</p>
                    <p>"Devil daddy," was his answer.</p>
                    <p>"And what do you learn from Daddy?" I continued.</p>
                    <p>He jumped at the fruit; I raised it higher. "What does he teach you?" I
                        asked.</p>
                    <p>"Naught," said he, "but to keep out of his gait—Daddy cannot bide me, because
                        I swear at him."</p>
                    <p>"Ah! and the devil teaches you to swear at Daddy?" I observed.</p>
                    <p>"Aye—nay," he drawled.</p>
                    <p><pb n="247"/>"Who then?"</p>
                    <p>"Heathcliff."</p>
                    <p>"I asked if he liked Mr. Heathcliff?</p>
                    <p>"Aye!" he answered again.</p>
                    <p>Desiring to have his reasons for liking him, I could only gather the
                        sentences. I known't—he pays Dad back what he gies to me—he curses Daddy for
                        cursing me—He says I mun do as I will."</p>
                    <p>"And the curate does not teach you to read and write, then?" I pursued.</p>
                    <p>"No, I was told the curate should have his ——— teeth dashed down his ———
                        throat, if he stepped over the threshold—Heathcliff, had promised that!"</p>
                    <p>I put the orange in his hand; and bade him tell his father that a woman
                        called Nelly Dean, was waiting to speak with him, by the garden gate.</p>
                    <p>He went up the walk, and entered the house; but, instead of Hindley,
                        Heathcliff appeared on the door stones, and I turned directly <pb n="248"/>and ran down the road as hard as ever I could race, making no halt till I
                        gained the guide post, and feeling as scared as if I had raised a
                        goblin.</p>
                    <p>This is not much connected with Miss Isabella's affair; except, that it urged
                        me to resolve further, on mounting vigilant guard, and doing my utmost to
                        check the spread of such bad influence at the Grange, even though I should
                        wake a domestic storm, by thwarting Mrs. Linton's pleasure.</p>
                    <p>The next time Heathcliff came, my young lady chanced to be feeding some
                        pigeons in the court. She had never spoken a word to her sister-in-law, for
                        three days; but, she had likewise dropped her fretful complaining, and we
                        found it a great comfort.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff had not the habit of bestowing a single unnecessary civility on
                        Miss Linton, I knew. Now, as soon as he beheld her, his first precaution was
                        to take a sweeping survey of the house-front. I was standing by the <pb n="249"/>kitchen window, but I drew out of sight. He then stept across
                        the pavement to her, and said something: she seemed embarrassed, and
                        desirous of getting away; to prevent it, he laid his hand on her arm: she
                        averted her face; he apparently put some question which she had no mind to
                        answer. There was another rapid glance at the house, and supposing himself
                        unseen, the scoundrel had the impudence to embrace her.</p>
                    <p>"Judas! Traitor!" I ejaculated "you are a hypocrite too, are you? A
                        deliberate deceiver."</p>
                    <p>"Who is Nelly?" said Catherine's voice at my elbow—I had been over-intent on
                        watching the pair outside to mark her entrance.</p>
                    <p>"Your worthless friend!" I answered warmly, "the sneaking rascal yonder—Ah,
                        he has caught a glimpse of us—he is coming in! I wonder will he have the art
                        to find a plausible excuse, for making love to Miss, when he told you he
                        hated her?"</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Linton saw Isabella tear herself free, <pb n="250"/>and run into the
                        garden; and a minute after, Heathcliff opened the door.</p>
                    <p>I couldn't withhold giving some loose to my indignation; but Catherine
                        angrily insisted on silence, and threatened to order me out of the kitchen,
                        if I dared be so presumptuous as to put in my insolent tongue.</p>
                    <p>"To hear you, people might think <hi>you</hi> were the mistress!" She cried.
                        "You want setting down in your right place! Heathcliff, what are you about,
                        raising this stir? I said you must let Isabella alone!—I beg you will unless
                        you are tired of being received here, and wish Linton to draw the bolts
                        against you!"</p>
                    <p>"God forbid that he should try!" answered the black villain—I detested him
                        just then. "God keep him meek and patient! Every day I grow madder after
                        sending him to heaven!"</p>
                    <p>"Hush!" said Catherine shutting the inner door! "Don't vex me. Why have you
                            <pb n="251"/>disregarded my request? Did she come across you on
                        purpose?"</p>
                    <p>"What is it to you?" he growled, "I have a right to kiss her, if she chooses,
                        and you have no right to object—I'm not <hi>your</hi> husband <hi>you</hi>
                        needn't be jealous of me!"</p>
                    <p>"I'm not jealous of you;" replied the mistress, I'm jealous for you. Clear
                        your face, you shan't scowl at me! If you like Isabella, you shall marry
                        her. But, do you like her, tell the truth, Heathcliff? There, you wont
                        answer. I'm certain you don't!"</p>
                    <p>"And would Mr. Linton approve of his sister marrying that man?" I
                        inquired.</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Linton should approve," returned my lady decisively.</p>
                    <p>"He might spare himself the trouble," said Heathcliff, "I could do as well
                        without his approbation—And, as to you, Catherine, I have a mind to speak a
                        few words, now, while we are at it—I want you to be aware that I
                            <hi>know</hi> you have treated me infernally— <pb n="252"/>infernally!
                        Do you hear? And, if you flatter yourself that I don't perceive it you are a
                        fool—and if you think I can be consoled by sweet words you are an idiot—and
                        if you fancy I'll suffer unrevenged, I'll convince you of the contrary, in a
                        very little while! Meantime, thank you for telling me your sister-in-law's
                        secret—I swear I'll make the most of it, and stand you aside!"</p>
                    <p>"What new phase of his character is this?" exclaimed Mrs. Linton, in
                        amazement. "I've treated you infernally—and you'll take revenge! How will
                        you take it, ungrateful brute? How have I treated you infernally?"</p>
                    <p>"I seek no revenge on you," replied Heathcliff less vehemently. "That's not
                        the plan—The tyrant grinds down his slaves and they don't turn against him,
                        they crush those beneath them—You are welcome to torture me to death for
                        your amusement, only, allow me me to amuse myself a little in the same
                        style—And refrain from insult, as much as you are <pb n="253"/>able. Having
                        levelled my palace, don't erect a hovel and complacently admire your own
                        charity in giving me that for a home. If I imagined you really wished me to
                        marry Isabella, I'd cut my throat!"</p>
                    <p>"Oh the evil is that I am <hi>not</hi> jealous, is it?" cried Catherine.
                        "Well, I won't repeat my offer of a wife—It is as bad as offering Satan a
                        lost soul—Your bliss lies, like his, in inflicting misery—You prove it—Edgar
                        is restored from the ill-temper he gave way to at your coming; I begin to be
                        secure and tranquil; and, you, restless to know us at peace, appear resolved
                        on exciting a quarrel—quarrel with Edgar if you please, Heathcliff, and
                        deceive his sister; you'll hit on exactly the most efficient method of
                        revenging yourself on me."</p>
                    <p>The conversation ceased—Mrs. Linton sat down by the fire, flushed and gloomy.
                        The spirit which served her was growing intractable: she could neither lay
                        nor control it. He <pb n="254"/>stood on the hearth, with folded arms
                        brooding on his evil thoughts; and in this position I left them, to seek the
                        master who was wondering what kept Catherine below so long.</p>
                    <p>"Ellen," said he, when I entered, "have you seen your mistress?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes, she's in the kitchen, sir," I answered. "She's sadly put out by Mr.
                        Heathcliff's behaviour: and, indeed, I do think it's time to arrange his
                        visits on another footing. There's harm in being too soft, and now it's come
                        to this—." And I related the scene in the court, and, as near as I dared,
                        the whole subsequent dispute. I fancied it could not be very prejucial to
                        Mrs. Linton, unless she made it so, afterwards, by assuming the defensive
                        for her guest.</p>
                    <p>Edgar Linton had difficulty in hearing me to the close—His first words
                        revealed that he did not clear his wife of blame.</p>
                    <p>"This is insufferable!" he exclaimed. "It is disgraceful that she should own
                        him for a <pb n="255"/>friend, and force his company on me! Call me two men
                        out of the hall, Ellen—Catherine shall linger no longer to argue with the
                        low ruffian—I have humoured her enough."</p>
                    <p>He descended, and, bidding the servants wait in the passage, went, followed
                        by me, to the kitchen. Its occupants had recommenced their angry discussion;
                        Mrs. Linton, at least, was scolding with renewed vigour; Heathcliff had
                        moved to the window, and hung his head somewhat cowed by her violent rating
                        apparently.</p>
                    <p>He saw the master first, and made a hasty motion that she should be silent;
                        which she obeyed, abruptly, on discovering the reason of his intimation.</p>
                    <p>"How is this?" said Linton, addressing her; "what notion of propriety must
                        you have to remain here, after the language which has been held to you by
                        that blackguard? I suppose, because it is his ordinary talk, you think
                        nothing of it—you are habituated to his baseness, <pb n="256"/>and, perhaps,
                        imagine I can get used to it too!"</p>
                    <p>"Have you been listening at the door, Edgar?" asked the mistress, in a tone
                        particularly calculated to provoke her husband, implying both carelessness
                        and contempt of his irritation.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff, who had raised his eyes at the former speech, gave a sneering
                        laugh at the latter, on purpose, it seemed, to draw Mr. Linton's attention
                        to him.</p>
                    <p>He succeeded; but Edgar did not mean to entertain him with any high flights
                        of passion.</p>
                    <p>"I have been so far forbearing with you, sir," he said, quietly; "not that I
                        was ignorant of your miserable, degraded character, but, I felt you were
                        only partly responsible for that; and Catherine, wishing to keep up your
                        acquaintance, I acquiesced—foolishly. Your presence is a moral poison that
                        would contaminate the most virtuous—for that cause, and to prevent worse
                        consequences, I shall deny <pb n="257"/>you, hereafter, admission into this
                        house, and give notice, now, that I require your instant departure. Three
                        minutes' delay will render it involuntary and ignominious."</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff measured the height and breadth of the speaker with an eye full of
                        derision.</p>
                    <p>"Cathy, this lamb of yours threatens like a bull!" he said. "It is in danger
                        of splitting its skull against my knuckles. By God, Mr. Linton, I'm mortally
                        sorry that you are not worth knocking down!"</p>
                    <p>My master glanced towards the passage, and signed me to fetch the men—he had
                        no intention of hazarding a personal encounter.</p>
                    <p>I obeyed the hint; but Mrs. Linton suspecting something, followed, and when I
                        attempted to call them, she pulled me back, slammed the door to, and locked
                        it.</p>
                    <p>"Fair means!" she said, in answer to her husband's look of angry surprise.
                        "If you have not the courage to attack him, make an apology, or allow
                        yourself to be beaten. It <pb n="258"/>will correct you of feigning more
                        valour than you possess. No, I'll swallow the key before you shall get it!
                        I'm delightfully rewarded for my kindness to each! After constant indulgence
                        of one's weak nature, and the other's bad one, I earn, for thanks, two
                        samples of blind ingratitude, stupid to absurdity! Edgar, I was defending
                        you, and yours; and I wish Heathcliff may flog you sick, for daring to think
                        an evil thought of me!"</p>
                    <p>It did not need the medium of a flogging to produce that effect on the
                        master. He tried to wrest the key from Catherine's grasp; and for safety she
                        flung it into the hottest part of the fire; whereupon Mr. Edgar was taken
                        with a nervous trembling, and his countenance grew deadly pale. For his life
                        he could not avert that access of emotion—mingled anguish and humiliation
                        overcame him completely. He leant on the back of a chair, and covered his
                        face.</p>
                    <p>"Oh! Heavens! In old days this would <pb n="259"/>win you knighthood!"
                        exclaimed Mrs. Linton. "We are vanquished, we are vanquished! Heathcliff
                        would as soon lift a finger at you as the king would march his army against
                        a colony of mice. Cheer up, you sha'n't be hurt! Your type is not a lamb,
                        it's a sucking leveret."</p>
                    <p>"I wish you joy of the milk-blooded coward, Cathy!" said her friend. "I
                        compliment you on your taste: and that is the slavering, shivering thing you
                        preferred to me! I would not strike him with my fist, but I'd kick him with
                        my foot, and experience considerable satisfaction. Is he weeping, or is he
                        going to faint for fear?"</p>
                    <p>The fellow approached and gave the chair on which Linton rested a push. He'd
                        better have kept his distance: my master quickly sprang erect, and struck
                        him full on the throat a blow that would have levelled a slighter man.</p>
                    <p>It took his breath for a minute; and, while he choked, Mr. Linton walked out
                        by the back <pb n="260"/>door into the yard, and from thence, to the front
                        entrance.</p>
                    <p>"There! you've done with coming here," cried Catherine. "Get away, now—he'll
                        return with a brace of pistols, and half-a-dozen assistants. If he did
                        overhear us, of course, he'd never forgive you. You've played me an ill
                        turn, Heathcliff! But, go—make haste! I'd rather see Edgar at bay than
                        you."</p>
                    <p>"Do you suppose I'm going with that blow burning in my gullet?" he thundered.
                        "By Hell, no! I'll crush his ribs in like a rotten hazel-nut, before I cross
                        the threshold! If I don't floor him now, I shall murder him sometime, so, as
                        you value his existence, let me get at him!"</p>
                    <p>"He is not coming." I interposed, framing a bit of a lie. "There's the
                        coachman, and the two gardeners; you'll surely not wait to be thrust into
                        the road by them! Each has a bludgeon, and master will, very likely, be <pb n="261"/>watching from the parlour windows to see that they fulfil his
                        orders."</p>
                    <p>The gardeners, and coachman <hi>were</hi> there; but Linton was with them.
                        They had already entered the court—Heathcliff, on second thoughts resolved
                        to avoid a struggle against three underlings; he seized the poker, smashed
                        the lock from the inner door, and made his escape as they tramped in.</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Linton who was very much excited, bid me accompany her up stairs. She
                        did not know my share in contributing to the disturbance, and I was anxious
                        to keep her in ignorance.</p>
                    <p>"I'm nearly distracted, Nelly!" she exclaimed, throwing herself on the sofa.
                        "A thousand smiths' hammers are beating in my head! Tell Isabella to shun
                        me—this uproar is owing to her; and should she or any one else aggravate my
                        anger at present, I shall get wild. And, Nelly, say to Edgar, if you see him
                        again to-night, that I'm in danger of being seriously ill—I wish it may
                        prove true. He <pb n="262"/>has startled and distressed me shockingly! I
                        want to frighten him. Besides, he might come and begin a string of abuse, or
                        complainings; I'm certain I should recriminate, and God knows where we
                        should end! Will you do so, my good Nelly? You are aware that I am no way
                        blameable in this matter. What possessed him to turn listener? Heathcliff's
                        talk was outrageous, after you left us; but I could soon have diverted him
                        from Isabella, and the rest meant nothing. Now, all is dashed wrong by the
                        fool's craving to hear evil of self that haunts some people like a demon!
                        Had Edgar never gathered our conversation, he would never have been the
                        worse for it. Really, when he opened on me in that unreasonable tone of
                        displeasure, after I had scolded Heathcliff till I was hoarse for
                            <hi>him</hi>; I did not care, hardly, what they did to each other,
                        especially as I felt that, however the scene closed, we should all be driven
                        asunder for nobody knows how long! Well, if I cannot keep Heathcliff for <pb n="263"/>my friend—if Edgar will be mean and jealous, I'll try to break
                        their hearts by breaking my own. That will be a prompt way of finishing all,
                        when I am pushed to extremity! But it's a deed to be reserved for a forlorn
                        hope—I'd not take Linton by surprise with it. To this this point he has been
                        discreet in dreading to provoke me; you must represent the peril of quitting
                        that policy; and remind him of my passionate temper, verging, when kindled,
                        on frenzy—I wish you could dismiss that apathy out of your countenance, and
                        look rather more anxious about me!"</p>
                    <p>The stolidity with which I received these instructions was, no doubt, rather
                        exasperating; for they were delivered in perfect sincerity, but I believed a
                        person who could plan the turning of her fits of passion to account,
                        beforehand, might, by exerting her will, manage to control herself tolerably
                        even while under their influence; and I did not wish to <pb n="264"/>"frighten" her husband, as she said, and multiply his annoyances for the
                        purpose of serving her selfishness.</p>
                    <p>Therefore I said nothing when I met the master coming towards the parlour;
                        but I took the liberty of turning back to listen whether they would resume
                        their quarrel together.</p>
                    <p>He began to speak first.</p>
                    <p>"Remain where you are, Catherine,' he said, without any anger in his voice,
                        but with much sorrowful despondency. "I shall not stay. I am neither come to
                        wrangle, nor be reconciled: but I wish just to learn whether, after this
                        evening's events, you intend to continue your intimacy with—"</p>
                    <p>"Oh, for mercy's sake," interrupted the mistress, stamping her foot, "for
                        mercy's sake, let us hear no more of it now! Your cold blood cannot be
                        worked into a fever—your veins are full of ice-water—but mine are boiling,
                        and the sight of such chillness makes them dance."</p>
                    <p><pb n="265"/>"To get rid of me—answer my question," persevered Mr. Linton.
                        "You <hi>must</hi> answer it; and that violence does not alarm me. I have
                        found that you can be as stoical as any one, when you please. Will you give
                        up Heathcliff hereafter, or will you give up me? It is impossible for you to
                        be <hi>my</hi> friend, and <hi>his</hi> at the same time; and I absolutely
                            <hi>require</hi> to know which you choose."</p>
                    <p>"I require to be let alone!" exclaimed Catherine, furiously. "I demand it!
                        Don't you see I can scarcely stand? Edgar, you—you leave me!"</p>
                    <p>She rung the bell till it broke with a twang: I entered leisurely. It was
                        enough to try the temper of a saint, such senseless, wicked rages! There she
                        lay dashing her head against the arm of the sofa, and grinding her teeth, so
                        that you might fancy she would crash them to splinters!</p>
                    <p>Mr. Linton stood looking at her in sudden <pb n="266"/>compunction and fear.
                        He told me to fetch some water. She had no breath for speaking.</p>
                    <p>I brought a glass full; and, as she would not drink, I sprinkled it on her
                        face. In a few seconds she stretched herself out stiff, and turned up her
                        eyes, while her cheeks, at once blanched and livid, assumed the aspect of
                        death.</p>
                    <p>Linton looked terrified.</p>
                    <p>"There is nothing in the world the matter," I whispered. I did not want him
                        to yield, though I could not help being afraid in my heart.</p>
                    <p>"She has blood on her lips!" he said, shuddering.</p>
                    <p>"Never mind!" I answered, tartly. And I told him how she had resolved,
                        previous to his coming, on exhibiting a fit of frenzy.</p>
                    <p>I incautiously gave the account aloud, and she heard me, for she started
                        up—her hair flying over her shoulders, her eyes flashing, the <pb n="267"/>muscles of her neck and arms standing out preternaturally. I made up my
                        mind for broken bones, at least; but she only glared about her, for an
                        instant, and then rushed from the room.</p>
                    <p>The master directed me to follow; I did, to her chamber door; she hindered me
                        from going farther by securing it against me.</p>
                    <p>As she never offered to descend to breakfast next morning, I went to ask
                        whether she would have some carried up.</p>
                    <p>"No!" she replied, peremptorily.</p>
                    <p>The same question was repeated at dinner, and tea; and again on the morrow
                        after, and received the same answer.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Linton, on his part, spent his time in the library, and did not inquire
                        concerning his wife's occupations. Isabella and he had had an hour's
                        interview, during which he tried to elicit from her some sentiment of proper
                        horror for Heathcliff's advances; but he could make nothing of her evasive
                        replies, and was obliged <pb n="268"/>to close the examination,
                        unsatisfactorily; adding, however, a solemn warning, that if she were so
                        insane as to encourage that worthless suitor, it would dissolve all bonds of
                        relationship between herself and him.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="269"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XII.</head>

                    <p>While Miss Linton moped about the park and garden, always silent, and almost
                        always in tears; and her brother shut himself up among books that he never
                        opened; wearying, I guessed, with a continual vague expectation that
                        Catherine, repenting her conduct, would come of her own accord to ask
                        pardon, and seek a reconciliation; and <hi>she</hi> fasted pertinaciously,
                        under the idea, probably, that at every meal, Edgar was ready to choke for
                        her absence, and pride alone held him from running <pb n="270"/>to cast
                        himself at her feet; I went about my household duties, convinced that the
                        Grange had but one sensible soul in its walls, and that lodged in my
                        body.</p>
                    <p>I wasted no condolences on miss, nor any expostulations on my mistress, nor
                        did I pay attention to the sighs of my master who yearned to hear his lady's
                        name, since he might not hear her voice.</p>
                    <p>I determined they should come about as they pleased for me; and though it was
                        a tiresomely slow process, I began to rejoice at length in a faint dawn of
                        its progress, as I thought at first.</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Linton, on the third day, unbarred her door; and having finished the
                        water in her pitcher and decanter, desired a renewed supply, and a basin of
                        gruel, for she believed she was dying. That I set down as a speech meant for
                        Edgar's ears, I believed no such thing, so I kept it to myself, and brought
                        her some tea and dry toast.</p>
                    <p><pb n="271"/>She eat and drank eagerly; and sank back on her pillow again
                        clenching her hands and groaning.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, I will die," she exclaimed, "since no one cares anything about me. I
                        wish I had not taken that."</p>
                    <p>Then a good while after I heard her murmur,</p>
                    <p>"No, I'll not die—he'd be glad—he does not love me at all—he would never miss
                        me!"</p>
                    <p>"Did you want anything, ma'am?" I enquired, still preserving my external
                        composure, in spite of her ghastly countenance, and strange exaggerated
                        manner.</p>
                    <p>"What is that apathetic being doing?" she demanded, pushing the thick
                        entangled locks from her wasted face. "Has he fallen into a lethargy, or is
                        he dead?"</p>
                    <p>"Neither," replied I; "if you mean Mr. Linton. He's tolerably well, I think,
                        though his studies occupy him rather more than they ought; he is continually
                        among his books, since he has no other society."</p>
                    <p><pb n="272"/>I should not have spoken so, if I had known her true condition,
                        but I could not get rid of the notion that she acted a part of her
                        disorder.</p>
                    <p>"Among his books!" she cried, confounded. "And I dying! I on the brink of the
                        grave! My God! does he know how I'm altered?" continued she, staring at her
                        reflection in a mirror, hanging against the opposite wall. "Is that
                        Catherine Linton? He imagines me in a pet—in play, perhaps. Cannot you
                        inform him that it is frightful earnest? Nelly, if it be not too late, as
                        soon as I learn how he feels, I'll choose between these two—either to
                        starve, at once, that would be no punishment unless he had a heart—or to
                        recover and leave the country. Are you speaking the truth about him now?
                        Take care. Is he actually so utterly indifferent for my life?"</p>
                    <p>"Why, ma'am," I answered, "the master has no idea of your being deranged;
                        and, of <pb n="273"/>course, he does not fear that you will let yourself die
                        of hunger."</p>
                    <p>"You think not? Cannot you tell him I will?" she returned; "persuade
                        him—speak of your own mind—say you are certain I will!"</p>
                    <p>"No, you forget, Mrs. Linton," I suggested, "that you have eaten some food
                        with a relish this evening, and to-morrow you will perceive its good
                        effects."</p>
                    <p>"If I were only sure it would kill him," she interrupted, "I'd kill myself
                        directly! These three awful nights, I've never closed my lids—and oh, I've
                        been tormented I I've been haunted, Nelly! But I begin to fancy you don't
                        like me. How strange! I thought, though everybody hated and despised each
                        other, they could not avoid loving me—and they have all turned to enemies in
                        a few hour?. <hi>They</hi> have, I'm positive; the people <hi>here</hi>. How
                        dreary to meet death, surrounded by their cold faces! Isabella, terrified
                        and repelled, <pb n="274"/>afraid to enter the room, it would be so dreadful
                        to watch Catherine go. And Edgar standing solemnly by to see it over; then
                        offering prayers of thanks to God for restoring peace to his house, and
                        going back to his <hi>books</hi>! What in the name of all that feels, has he
                        to do with <hi>books</hi>, when I am dying?"</p>
                    <p>She could not bear the notion which I had put into her head of Mr. Linton's
                        philosophical resignation. Tossing about, she increased her feverish
                        bewilderment to madness, and tore the pillow with her teeth, then raising
                        herself up all burning, desired that I would open the window. We were in the
                        middle of winter, the wind blew strong from the north-east, and I
                        objected.</p>
                    <p>Both the expressions flitting over her face, and the changes of her moods,
                        began to alarm me terribly; and brought to my recollection her former
                        illness, and the doctor's injunction that she should not be crossed.</p>
                    <p>A minute previously she was violent; now, <pb n="275"/>supported on one arm,
                        and not noticing my refusal to obey her, she seemed to find childish
                        diversion in pulling the feathers from the rents she had just made, and
                        ranging them on the sheet according to their different species: her mind had
                        strayed to other associations.</p>
                    <p>"That's a turkey's," she murmured to herself; "and this is a wild-duck's; and
                        this is a pigeon's. Ah, they put pigeons' feathers in the pillows—no wonder
                        I couldn't die! Let me take care to throw it on the floor when I lie down.
                        And here is a moor-cock's; and this—I should know it among a thousand—it's a
                        lapwing's. Bonny bird; wheeling over our heads in the middle of the moor. It
                        wanted to get to its nest, for the clouds touched the swells, and it felt
                        rain coming. This feather was picked up from the heath, the bird was not
                        shot—we saw its nest in the winter, full of little skeletons. Heathcliff set
                        a trap over it, and the old ones dare not come. I made him promise he'd
                        never shoot a lapwing, after that, <pb n="276"/>and he didn't. Yes, here are
                        more! Did he shoot my lapwings, Nelly? Are they red, any of them? Let me
                        look."</p>
                    <p>"Give over with that baby-work!" I interrupted, dragging the pillow away, and
                        turning the holes towards the mattress, for she was removing its contents by
                        handfuls. "Lie down and shut your eyes, you're wandering. There's a mess!
                        The down is flying about like snow!"</p>
                    <p>I went here and there collecting it.</p>
                    <p>"I see in you, Nelly," she continued, dreamily, "an aged woman—you have grey
                        hair, and bent shoulders. This bed is the fairy cave under Peniston Crag,
                        and you are gathering elf-bolts to hurt our heifers; pretending, while I am
                        near, that they are only locks of wool. That's what you'll come to fifty
                        years hence; I know you are not so now. I'm not wandering, you're mistaken,
                        or else I should believe you really <hi>were</hi> that withered hag, and I
                        should think I <hi>was</hi> under Penistone Crag, and I'm conscious it's
                        night, and there <pb n="277"/>are two candles on the table making the black
                        press shine like jet.</p>
                    <p>"The black press? where is that?" I asked. "You are talking in your
                        sleep!"</p>
                    <p>"It's against the wall, as it always is," she replied. "It <hi>does</hi>
                        appear odd—I see a face in it!"</p>
                    <p>"There is no press in the room, and never was," said I, resuming my seat, and
                        looping up the curtain that I might watch her.</p>
                    <p>"Don't <hi>you</hi> see that face?" she enquired, gazing earnestly at the
                        mirror.</p>
                    <p>And say what I could, I was incapable of making her comprehend it to be her
                        own; so I rose and covered it with a shawl.</p>
                    <p>"It's behind there still!" she pursued, anxiously. "And it stirred. Who is
                        it?" I hope it will not come out when you are gone! Oh! Nelly, the room is
                        haunted! I'm afraid of being alone!"</p>
                    <p>I took her hand in mine, and bid her be composed, for a succession of
                        shudders convulsed <pb n="278"/>her frame, and she <hi>would</hi> keep
                        straining her gaze towards the glass.</p>
                    <p>"There's nobody here!" I insisted. "It was <hi>yourself</hi>, Mrs. Linton;
                        you knew it a while since."</p>
                    <p>"Myself," she gasped, "and the clock is striking twelve! It's true then;
                        that's dreadful!"</p>
                    <p>Her fingers clutched the clothes, and gathered them over her eyes. I
                        attempted to steal to the door with an intention of calling her husband; but
                        I was summoned back by a piercing shriek. The shawl had dropped from the
                        frame.</p>
                    <p>"Why what <hi>is</hi> the matter?" cried I. "Who is coward now? Wake up! That
                        is the glass—the mirror, Mrs. Linton; and you see yourself in it, and there
                        am I too by your side."</p>
                    <p>Trembling and bewildered, she held me fast, but the horror gradually passed
                        from her countenance; its paleness gave place to a glow of shame.</p>
                    <p><pb n="279"/>"Oh, dear! I thought I was at home," she sighed. "I thought I
                        was lying in my chamber at Wuthering Heights. Because I'm weak, my brain got
                        confused, and I screamed unconsciously. Don't say anything; but stay with
                        me. I dread sleeping, my dreams appal me."</p>
                    <p>"A sound sleep would do you good, ma'am," I answered; "and I hope this
                        suffering will prevent your trying starving again."</p>
                    <p>"Oh, if I were but in my own bed in the old house!" she went on bitterly,
                        wringing her hands. "And that wind sounding in the firs by the lattice. Do
                        let me feel it—it comes straight down the moor—do let me have one
                        breath!"</p>
                    <p>To pacify her, I held the casement ajar, a few seconds. A cold blast rushed
                        through, I closed it, and returned to my post.</p>
                    <p>She lay still, now: her face bathed in tears—Exhaustion of body had entirely
                        subdued <pb n="280"/>her spirit; our fiery Catherine was no better than a
                        wailing child!</p>
                    <p>"How long is it since I shut myself in here?" she asked suddenly
                        reviving.</p>
                    <p>"It was Monday evening," I replied, "and this is Thursday night, or rather
                        Friday morning, at present."</p>
                    <p>"What! of the same week?" she exclaimed. "Only that brief time?"</p>
                    <p>"Long enough to live on nothing but cold water, and ill-temper," observed
                        I.</p>
                    <p>"Well, it seems a weary number of hours," she muttered doubtfully, "it must
                        be more—I remember being in the parlour, after they had quarrelled; and
                        Edgar being cruelly provoking, and me running into this room desperate—As
                        soon as ever I had barred the door, utter blackness overwhelmed me, and I
                        fell on the floor—I couldn't explain to Edgar how certain I felt of having a
                        fit, or going raging mad, if he persisted in teasing me! I had no command of
                        tongue, or brain, and he did not <pb n="281"/>guess my agony, perhaps; it
                        barely left me sense to try to escape from him and his voice—Before I
                        recovered, sufficiently to see, and hear, it began to be dawn; and Nelly,
                        I'll tell you what I thought, and what has kept recurring and recurring till
                        I feared for my reason—I thought as I lay there with my head against that
                        table leg, and my eyes dimly discerning the grey square of the window, that
                        I was enclosed in the oak-panelled bed at home; and my heart ached with some
                        great grief which, just waking, I could not recollect—I pondered, and
                        worried myself to discover what it could be; and most strangely, the whole
                        last seven years of my life grew a blank! I did not recall that they had
                        been at all. I was a child; my father was just buried, and my misery arose
                        from the separation that Hindley had ordered between me, and Heathcliff—I
                        was laid alone, for the first time, and rousing from a dismal dose after a
                        night of weeping—I lifted my hand to push the panels aside, it <pb n="282"/>struck the table-top! I swept it along the carpet, and then, memory burst
                        in—my late anguish was swallowed in a paroxysm of despair—I cannot say why I
                        felt so wildly wretched—it must have been temporary derangement for there is
                        scarcely cause—But, supposing at twelve years old, I had been wrenched from
                        the Heights, and every early association, and my all in all, as Heathcliff
                        was at that time, and been converted, at a stroke into Mrs. Linton, the lady
                        of Thrushcross Grange, and the wife of a stranger; an exile, and outcast,
                        thenceforth, from what had been my world—You may fancy a glimpse of the
                        abyss where I grovelled! Shake your head, as you will, Nelly, <hi>you</hi>
                        have helped to unsettle me! You should have spoken to Edgar, indeed you
                        should, and compelled him to leave me quiet! Oh, I'm burning! I wish I were
                        out of doors—I wish I were a girl again, half savage and hardy, and
                        free. . .and laughing at injuries, not maddening under them! Why am I so <pb n="283"/>changed? why does my blood rush into a hell of tumult at a few
                        words? I'm sure I should be myself were I once among the heather on those
                        hills. . .Open the window again wide, fasten it open! Quick, why don't you
                        move?"</p>
                    <p>"Because, I won't give you your death of cold," I answered.</p>
                    <p>"You won't give me a chance of life, you mean," she said sullenly. "However,
                        I'm not helpless yet, I'll open it myself."</p>
                    <p>And sliding from the bed before I could hinder her, she crossed the room,
                        walking very uncertainly, threw it back, and bent out, careless of the
                        frosty air that cut about her shoulders as keen as a knife.</p>
                    <p>I entreated, and finally attempted to force her to retire. But I soon found
                        her delirious strengh much surpassed mine; (she <hi>was</hi> delirious I
                        became convinced by her subsequent actions, and ravings.)</p>
                    <p>There was no moon, and every thing beneath lay in misty darkness; not a light
                            <pb n="284"/>gleamed from any house, far or near; all had been
                        extinguished long ago; and those at Wuthering Heights were never
                        visible. . .still she asserted she caught their shining.</p>
                    <p>"Look!" she cried eagerly, "that's my room, with the candle in it, and the
                        trees swaying before it. . .and the other candle is in Joseph's
                        garret. . .Joseph sits up late, doesn't he? He's waiting till I come home
                        that he may lock the gate. . .Well, he'll wait a while yet. It's a rough
                        journey, and a sad heart to travel it; and we must pass by Gimmerton Kirk,
                        to go that journey! We've braved it's ghosts often together, and dared each
                        other to stand among the graves and ask them to come. . .But Heathcliff, if
                        I dare you now, will you venture? If you do, I'll keep you. I'll not lie
                        there by myself; they may bury me twelve feet deep, and throw the church
                        down over me; but I won't rest till you are with me. . .I never will!"</p>
                    <p>She paused, and resumed with a strange <pb n="285"/>smile, "He's
                        considering. . .he'd rather I'd come to him! Find a way, then! not through
                        that Kirkyard. . .You are slow! Be content, you always followed me!"</p>
                    <p>Perceiving it vain to argue against her insanity, I was planning how I could
                        reach something to wrap about her, without quitting my hold of herself, for
                        I could not trust her alone by the gaping lattice; when to my consternation,
                        I heard the rattle of the door-handle, and Mr. Linton entered. He had only
                        then come from the library; and, in passing through the lobby, had noticed
                        our talking and been attracted by curiosity, or fear to examine what it
                        signified, at that late hour.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, sir!" I cried, checking the exclamation risen to his lips at the sight
                        which met him, and the bleak atmosphere of the chamber.</p>
                    <p>"My poor Mistress is ill, and she quite masters me; I cannot manage her at
                        all, pray, come and persuade her to go to bed. Forget <pb n="286"/>your
                        anger, for she's hard to guide any way but her own."</p>
                    <p>"Catherine ill?" he said hastening to us. "Shut the window, Ellen! Catherine!
                        why. . ."</p>
                    <p>He was silent; the haggardness of Mrs. Linton's appearance smote him
                        speechless, and he could only glance from her to me in horrified
                        astonishment.</p>
                    <p>"She's been fretting here," I continued, "and eating scarcely anything, and
                        never complaining, she would admit none of us till this evening, and so we
                        couldn't inform you of her state, as we were not aware of it ourselves," but
                        it is nothing."</p>
                    <p>I felt I uttered my explanations awkwardly; the master frowned. "It is
                        nothing is it, Ellen Dean?" he said sternly. "You shall account more clearly
                        for keeping me ignorant of this!" And he took his wife in his arms, and
                        looked at her with anguish.</p>
                    <p>At first she gave him no glance of <pb n="287"/>recognition. . .he was
                        invisible to her abstracted gaze. The delirium was not fixed, however;
                        having weaned her eyes from contemplating the outer darkness; by degrees,
                        she centred her attention on him, and discovered who it was that held
                        her.</p>
                    <p>"Ah! you are come, are you, Edgar Linton?" she said with angry
                        animation. . ."You are one of those things that are ever found when least
                        wanted, and when you are wanted never! I suppose we shall have plenty of
                        lamentations, now. . .I see we shall. . .but they can't keep me from my
                        narrow home out yonder—My resting place where I'm bound before Spring is
                        over! There it is, not among the Lintons, mind, under the chapel-roof; but
                        in the open air with a head-stone, and you may please yourself, whether you
                        go to them, or come to me!"</p>
                    <p>"Catherine, what have you done?" commenced the master. "Am I nothing to you,
                            <pb n="288"/>any more? Do you love that wretch, Heath—"</p>
                    <p>"Hush!" cried Mrs. Linton. "Hush, this moment! You mention that name and I
                        end the matter, instantly, by a spring from the window! What you touch at
                        present, you may have; but my soul will be on that hill-top before you lay
                        hands on me again. I don't want you, Edgar; I'm past wanting you. . .Return
                        to your books. . .I'm glad you possess a consolation, for all you had in me
                        is gone."</p>
                    <p>"Her mind wanders, sir," I interposed. "She has been talking nonsense the
                        whole evening; but, let her have quiet and proper attendance, and she'll
                        rally. . .Hereafter, we must be cautious how we vex her."</p>
                    <p>"I desire no further advice from you," answered Mr. Linton. "You knew your
                        mistress's nature, and you encouraged me to harass her. And not to give me
                        one hint of how she has been these three days! It was <pb n="289"/>heartless! months of sickness could not cause such a change!"</p>
                    <p>I began to defend myself, thinking it too bad to be blamed for another's
                        wicked waywardness!</p>
                    <p>"I knew Mrs. Linton's nature to be headstrong and domineering," cried I; "but
                        I didn't know that you wished to foster her fierce temper! I didn't know
                        that, to humour her, I should wink at Mr. Heathcliff. I performed the duty
                        of a faithful servant in telling you, and I have got a faithful servant's
                        wages! Well, it will teach me to be careful next time. Next time you may
                        gather intelligence for yourself!"</p>
                    <p>"The next time you bring a tale to me, you shall quit my service, Ellen
                        Dean," he replied.</p>
                    <p>"You'd rather hear nothing about it, I suppose, then, Mr. Linton?" said I.
                        "Heathcliff has your permission to come a courting to Miss and to drop in at
                        every opportunity your <pb n="290"/>absence offers, on purpose to poison the
                        mistress against you?"</p>
                    <p>Confused as Catherine was, her wits were alert at applying our
                        conversation.</p>
                    <p>"Ah! Nelly has played traitor," she exclaimed, passionately. "Nelly is my
                        hidden enemy—you witch! So you do seek elf-bolts to hurt us! Let me go, and
                        I'll make her rue! I'll make her howl a recantation!"</p>
                    <p>A maniac's fury kindled under her brows; she struggled desperately to
                        disengage herself from Linton's arms. I felt no inclination to tarry the
                        event; and resolving to seek medical aid on my own responsibility, I quitted
                        the chamber.</p>
                    <p>In passing the garden to reach the road, at a place where a bridle hook is
                        driven into the wall, I saw something white moved irregularly evidently by
                        another agent than the wind. Notwithstanding my hurry, I staid to examine
                        it, lest ever after I should have the conviction <pb n="291"/>impressed on
                        my imagination that it was a creature of the other world.</p>
                    <p>My surprise and perplexity were great to discover, by touch more than vision,
                        Miss Isabella's springer Fanny, suspended to a handkerchief, and nearly at
                        its last gasp.</p>
                    <p>I quickly released the animal, and lifted it into the garden. I had seen it
                        follow its mistress up-stairs, when she went to bed, and wondered much how
                        it could have got out there, and what mischievous person had treated it
                        so.</p>
                    <p>While untying the knot round the hook, it seemed to me that I repeatedly
                        caught the beat of horses' feet gallopping at some distance; but there were
                        such a number of things to occupy my reflections that I hardly gave the
                        circumstance a thought, though it was a strange sound, in that place, at two
                        o'clock in the morning.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Kenneth was fortunately just issuing from his house to see a patient in
                        the village as I came up the street; and my account of <pb n="292"/>Catherine Linton's malady induced him to accompany me back
                        immediately.</p>
                    <p>He was a plain, rough man; and he made no scruple to speak his doubts of her
                        surviving this second attack; unless she were more submissive to his
                        directions than she had shown herself before.</p>
                    <p>"Nelly Dean," said he, "I can't help fancying there's an extra cause for
                        this. What has there been to do at the Grange? We've odd reports up here. A
                        stout, hearty lass like Catherine does not fall ill for a trifle; and that
                        sort of people should not either. It's hard work bringing them through
                        fevers, and such things. How did it begin?"</p>
                    <p>"The master will inform you," I answered; "but you are acquainted with the
                        Earnshaw's violent dispositions, and Mrs. Linton caps them all. I may say
                        this; it commenced in a quarrel. She was struck during a tempest of passion
                        with a kind of fit. That's her account, at least; for she flew off in the
                        height of it, and locked <pb n="293"/>herself up. Afterwards, she refused to
                        eat, and now she alternately raves, and remains in a half dream, knowing
                        those about her, but having her mind filled with all sorts of strange ideas
                        and illusions."</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Linton will be sorry?" observed Kenneth, interrogatively.</p>
                    <p>"Sorry? he'll break his heart should anything happen!" I replied. "Don't
                        alarm him more than necessary."</p>
                    <p>"Well, I told him to beware," said my companion, "and he must bide the
                        consequences of neglecting my warning! Hasn't he been thick with Mr.
                        Heathcliff lately?"</p>
                    <p>"Heathcliff frequently visits at the Grange," answered I, "though more on the
                        strength of the mistress having known him when a boy, than because the
                        master likes his company. At present, he's discharged from the trouble of
                        calling; owing to some presumptuous aspirations after Miss Linton which he
                        manifested. I hardly think he'll be taken in again."</p>
                    <p><pb n="294"/>"And does Miss Linton turn a cold shoulder on him?" was the
                        doctor's next question.</p>
                    <p>"I'm not in her confidence," returned I, reluctant to continue the
                        subject.</p>
                    <p>"No, she's a sly one," he remarked, shaking his head. "She keeps her own
                        counsel! But she's a real little fool. I have it from good authority, that,
                        last night, and a pretty night it was! she and Heathcliff were walking in
                        the plantation at the back of your house, above two hours; and he pressed
                        her not to go in again, but just mount his horse and away with him! My
                        informant said she could only put him off by pledging her word of honour to
                        be prepared on their first meeting after that, when it was to be, he didn't
                        hear, but you urge Mr. Linton to look sharp!"</p>
                    <p>This news filled me with fresh fears; I outstripped Kenneth, and ran most of
                        the way back. The little dog was yelping in the garden yet. I spared a
                        minute to open the gate <pb n="295"/>for it, but instead of going to the
                        house door, it coursed up and down snuffing the grass, and would have
                        escaped to the road, had I not seized and conveyed it in with me.</p>
                    <p>On ascending to Isabella's room, my suspicions were confirmed; it was empty.
                        Had I been a few hours sooner, Mrs. Linton's illness might have arrested her
                        rash step. But what could be done now? There was a bare possibility of
                        overtaking them if pursued instantly. <hi>I</hi> could not pursue them,
                        however; and I dare not rouse the family, and fill the place with confusion;
                        still less unfold the business to my master, absorbed as he was in his
                        present calamity, and having no heart to spare for a second grief!</p>
                    <p>I saw nothing for it, but to hold my tongue, and suffer matters to take their
                        course: and Kenneth being arrived, I went with a badly composed countenance
                        to announce him.</p>
                    <p>Catherine lay in a troubled sleep; her husband had succeeded in soothing the
                        access of <pb n="296"/>frenzy; he now hung over her pillow, watching every
                        shade, and every change of her painfully expressive features.</p>
                    <p>The doctor, on examining the case for himself, spoke hopefully to him of its
                        having a favourable termination, if we could only preserve around her
                        perfect and constant tranquillity. To me, he signified the threatening
                        danger was, not so much death, as permanent alienation of intellect.</p>
                    <p>I did not close my eyes that night, nor did Mr. Linton; indeed, we never went
                        to bed: and the servants were all up long before the usual hour, moving
                        through the house with stealthy tread, and exchanging whispers as they
                        encountered each other in their vocations. Every one was active, but Miss
                        Isabella; and they began to remark how sound she slept—her brother too asked
                        if she had risen, and seemed impatient for her presence, and hurt that she
                        showed so little anxiety for her sister-in-law.</p>
                    <p><pb n="297"/>I trembled lest he should send me to call her; but I was spared
                        the pain of being the first proclaimant of her flight. One of the maids, a
                        thoughtless girl, who had been on an early errand to Gimmerton, came panting
                        up stairs, open-mouthed, and dashed into the chamber, crying.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, dear, dear! What mun we have next? Master, master, our young lady—"</p>
                    <p>"Hold your noise!" cried I hastily, enraged at her clamorous manner.</p>
                    <p>"Speak lower, Mary—What is the matter?" said Mr. Linton. "What ails your
                        young lady?"</p>
                    <p>"She's gone, she's gone! Yon' Heathcliff's run off wi' her!" gasped the
                        girl.</p>
                    <p>"That is not true!" exclaimed Linton, rising in agitation. "It cannot be—how
                        has the idea entered your head? Ellen Dean, go and seek her—it is
                        incredible—it cannot be."</p>
                    <p>As he spoke he took the servant to the door, <pb n="298"/>and, then, repeated
                        his demand to know her reasons for such an assertion.</p>
                    <p>"Why, I met on the road a lad that fetches milk here," she stammered, "and he
                        asked whether we wern't in trouble at the Grange—I thought he meant for
                        Missis's sickness, so I answered, yes. Then says he, they's somebody gone
                        after 'em, I guess?" I stared. He saw I knew naught about it, and he told
                        how a gentleman and lady had stopped to have a horse's shoe fastened at a
                        blacksmith's shop, two miles out of Gimmerton, not very long after midnight!
                        and how the blacksmith's lass had got up to spy who they were: she knew them
                        both directly—And she noticed the man, Heathcliff it was, she felt certain,
                        nob'dy could mistake him, besides—put a sovereign in her father's hand for
                        payment. The lady had a cloak about her face; but having desired a sup of
                        water, while she drank, it fell back, and she saw her very plain—Heathcliff
                        held <pb n="299"/>both bridles as they rode on, and they set their faces
                        from the village, and went as fast as the rough roads would let them. The
                        lass said nothing to her father, but she told it al over Gimmerton this
                        morning."</p>
                    <p>I ran and peeped, for form's sake into Isabella's room: confirming, when I
                        returned, the servant's statement—Mr. Linton had resumed his seat by the
                        bed; on my re-entrance, he raised his eyes, read the meaning of my blank
                        aspect, and dropped them without giving an order, or uttering a word.</p>
                    <p>"Are we to try any measures for overtaking and bringing her back," I
                        inquired. "How should we do?"</p>
                    <p>"She went of her own accord," answered the master; "she had a right to go if
                        she pleased—Trouble me no more about her—Hereafter she is only my sister in
                        name; not because I disown her, but because she has disowned me."</p>
                    <p>And that was all he said on the subject; he <pb n="300"/>did not make a
                        single inquiry further, or mention her in any way, except directing me to
                        send what property she had in the house to her fresh home, wherever it was,
                        when I knew it.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="301"/>
                    <head>CHAPTER XIII</head>
                    <p>For two months the fugitives remained absent, in those two months, Mrs.
                        Linton encountered and conquered the worst shock of what was denominated a
                        brain fever. No mother could have nursed an only child more devotedly than
                        Edgar tended her. Day and night, he was watching, and patiently enduring all
                        the annoyances that irritable nerves and a shaken reason could inflict: and,
                        though Kenneth remarked that what he saved from the grave <pb n="302"/>would
                        only recompense his care by forming the source of constant future anxiety,
                        in fact, that his health and strength were being sacrificed to preserve a
                        mere ruin of humanity, he knew no limits in gratitude and joy, when
                        Catherine's life was declared out of danger; and hour after hour, he would
                        sit beside her, tracing the gradual return to bodily health, and flattering
                        his too sanguine hopes with the illusion that her mind would settle back to
                        its right balance also, and she would soon be entirely her former self.</p>
                    <p>The first time she left her chamber, was at the commencement of the following
                        March. Mr. Linton had put on her pillow, in the morning, a handful of golden
                        crocuses; her eye, long stranger to any gleam of pleasure, caught them in
                        waking, and shone delighted as she gathered them eagerly together.</p>
                    <p>"These are the earliest flowers at the Heights!" she exclaimed. "They remind
                        me of soft thaw winds, and warm sunshine, and <pb n="303"/>nearly melted
                        snow—Edgar, is there not a south wind, and is not the snow almost gone?"</p>
                    <p>"The snow is quite gone; down here, darling!" replied her husband, "and I
                        only see two white spots on the whole range of moors—The sky is blue, and
                        the larks are singing, and the becks and brooks are all brim full.
                        Catherine; last spring at this time, I was longing to have you under this
                        roof—now, I wish you were a mile or two up those hills, the air blows so
                        sweetly, I feel that it would cure you."</p>
                    <p>"I shall never be there, but once more!" said the invalid; "and then you'll
                        leave me, and I shall remain, for ever. Next spring you'll long again to
                        have me under this roof, and you'll look back and think you were happy
                        to-day."</p>
                    <p>Linton lavished on her the kindest caresses, and tried to cheer her by the
                        fondest words; but vaguely regarding the flowers, she let the tears collect
                        on her lashes, and stream down her cheeks unheeding.</p>
                    <p><pb n="304"/>We knew she was really better, and therefore, decided that long
                        confinement to a single place produced much of this despondency, and it
                        might be partially removed by a change of scene.</p>
                    <p>The master told me to light a fire in the many-week's deserted parlour, and
                        to set an easy-chair in the sunshine by the window; and then he brought her
                        down, and she sat a long while enjoying the genial heat, and, as we
                        expected, revived by the objects round her, which, though familiar, were
                        free from the dreary associations investing her hated sick-chamber. By
                        evening, she seemed greatly exhausted; yet no arguments could persuade her
                        to return to that apartment, and I had to arrange the parlour sofa for her
                        bed, till another room could be prepared.</p>
                    <p>To obviate the fatigue of mounting and descending the stairs, we fitted up
                        this, where you lie at present; on the same floor with the parlour: and she
                        was soon strong enough to <pb n="305"/>move from one to the other, leaning
                        on Edgar's arm.</p>
                    <p>Ah, I thought myself, she might recover, so waited on as she was. And there
                        was double cause to desire it, for on her existence depended that of
                        another; we cherished the hope that in a little while, Mr. Linton's heart
                        would be gladdened, and his lands secured from a stranger's gripe, by the
                        birth of an heir.</p>
                    <p>I should mention that Isabella sent to her brother, some six weeks from her
                        departure a short note, announcing her marriage with Heathcliff. It appeared
                        dry and cold; but at the bottom, was dotted in with pencil, an obscure
                        apology, and an entreaty for kind remembrance, and reconciliation, if her
                        proceeding had offended him; asserting that she could not help it then, and
                        being done, she had now no power to repeal it.</p>
                    <p>Linton did not reply to this, I believe; and, in a fortnight more, I got a
                        long letter which I considered odd coming from the pen of a <pb n="306"/>bride just out of the honeymoon. I'll read it, for I keep it yet. Any
                        relic of the dead is precious, if they were valued living.</p>
                    <p>"Dear Ellen," it begins.</p>
                    <p>"I came, last night, to Wuthering Heights, and heard, for the first time,
                        that Catherine has been, and is yet, very ill. I must not write to her I
                        suppose, and my brother is either too angry, or too distressed to answer
                        what I send him. Still, I must write to somebody, and the only choice left
                        me is you.</p>
                    <p>Inform Edgar that I'd give the world to see his face again—that my heart
                        returned to Thrushcross Grange in twenty-four hours after I left it, and is
                        there at this moment, full of warm feelings for him, and Catherine! <hi>I
                            can't follow it though</hi>—(those words are underlined) they need not
                        expect me, and they may draw what conclusions they please; taking care
                        however, to lay nothing at the door of my weak will, or deficient
                        affection.</p>
                    <p><pb n="307"/>The remainder of the letter is for yourself, alone. I want to
                        ask you two questions: the first is,</p>
                    <p>How did you contrive to preserve the common sympathies of human nature when
                        you resided here? I cannot recognise any sentiment which those around, share
                        with me.</p>
                    <p>The second question, I have great interest in; it is this—</p>
                    <p>Is Mr. Heathcliff a man? If so, is he mad? And if not, is he a devil? I
                        shan't tell my reasons for making this inquiry; but, I beseech you to
                        explain, if you can, what I have married—that is, when you call to see me;
                        and you must call Ellen, very soon. Don't write, but come, and bring me
                        something from Edgar.</p>
                    <p>Now, you shall hear how I have been received in my new home, as I am led to
                        imagine the Heights will be. It is to amuse myself that I dwell on such
                        subjects as the lack of external comforts; they never occupy my <pb n="308"/>thoughts, except at the moment when I miss them—I should laugh and dance
                        for joy, if I found their absence was the total of my miseries, and the rest
                        was an unnatural dream!</p>
                    <p>The sun set behind the Grange, as we turned on to the moors; by that, I
                        judged it to be six o'clock; and my companion halted half-an-hour, to
                        inspect the park, and the gardens, and, probably, the place itself, as well
                        as he could; so it was dark when we dismounted in the paved yard of the
                        farmhouse, and your old fellow-servant, Joseph, issued out to receive us by
                        the light of a dip candle. He did it with a courtesy that redounded to his
                        credit. His first act was to elevate his torch to a level with my face,
                        squint malignantly, project his under lip, and turn away.</p>
                    <p>Then he took the two horses, and led them into the stables; reappearing for
                        the purpose of locking the outer gate, as if we lived in an ancient
                        castle.</p>
                    <p><pb n="309"/>Heathcliff stayed to speak to him, and I entered the kitchen—a
                        dingy, untidy hole; I dare say you would not know it, it is so changed since
                        it was in your charge.</p>
                    <p>By the fire stood a ruffianly child, strong in limb, and dirty in garb, with
                        a look of Catherine in his eyes, and about his mouth.</p>
                    <p>"This is Edgar's legal nephew," I reflected—"mine in a manner; I must shake
                        hands, and—yes—I must kiss him. It is right to establish a good
                        understanding at the beginning."</p>
                    <p>I approached, and, attempting to take his chubby fist, said—</p>
                    <p>"How do you do, my dear?"</p>
                    <p>He replied in a jargon I did not comprehend.</p>
                    <p>"Shall you and I be friends, Hareton?" was my next essay at conversation.</p>
                    <p>An oath, and a threat to set Throttler on me if I did not "frame off"
                        rewarded my perseverance.</p>
                    <p>"Hey, Throttler, lad!" whispered the little <pb n="310"/>wretch, rousing a
                        half-bred bull-dog from its lair in a corner. "Now, wilt tuh be ganging?" he
                        asked authoritatively.</p>
                    <p>Love for my life urged a compliance; I stepped over the threshold to wait
                        till the others should enter. Mr. Heathcliff was nowhere visible; and
                        Joseph, whom I followed to the stables, and requested to accompany me in,
                        after staring and muttering to himself, screwed up his nose and replied—</p>
                    <p>"Mim! mim! mim! Did iver Christian body hear owt like it? Minching un'
                        munching! Hah can Aw tell whet ye say?"</p>
                    <p>"I say, I wish you to come with me into the house!" I cried, thinking him
                        deaf, yet highly disgusted at his rudeness.</p>
                    <p>"Nor nuh me! Aw getten summut else to do," he answered, and continued his
                        work, moving his lantern jaws meanwhile, and surveying my dress and
                        countenance (the former a great deal too fine, but the latter, I'm sure, as
                        sad as he could desire) with sovereign contempt.</p>
                    <p><pb n="311"/>I walked round the yard, and through a wicket, to another door,
                        at which I took the liberty of knocking, in hopes some more civil servant
                        might shew himself.</p>
                    <p>After a short suspense it was opened by a tall, gaunt man, without
                        neckerchief, and otherwise extremely slovenly; his features were lost in
                        masses of shaggy hair that hung on his shoulders; and <hi>his</hi> eyes,
                        too, were like a ghostly Catherine's, with all their beauty annihilated.</p>
                    <p>"What's your business here?" he demanded, grimly. "Who are you?"</p>
                    <p>"My name <hi>was</hi> Isabella Linton," I replied. "You've seen me before,
                        sir. I'm lately married to Mr. Heathcliff; and he has brought me here—I
                        suppose by your permission."</p>
                    <p>"Is he come back, then?" asked the hermit, glaring like a hungry wolf.</p>
                    <p>"Yes—we came just now," I said; "but he left me by the kitchen door; and when
                        I would have gone in, your little boy played <pb n="312"/>sentinel over the
                        place, and frightened me off by the help of a bull-dog."</p>
                    <p>"It's well the hellish villain has kept his word!" growled my future host,
                        searching the darkness beyond me in expectation of discovering Heathcliff,
                        and then he indulged in a soliloquy of execrations, and threats of what he
                        would have done had the "fiend" deceived him.</p>
                    <p>I repented having tried this second entrance; and was almost inclined to slip
                        way before he finished cursing, but ere I could execute that intention, he
                        ordered me in, and shut and re-fastened the door.</p>
                    <p>There was a great fire, and that was all the light in the huge apartment,
                        whose floor had grown a uniform grey; and the once brilliant pewter dishes
                        which used to attract my gaze when I was a girl partook of a similar
                        obscurity, created by tarnish and dust.</p>
                    <p>I inquired whether I might call the maid, and be conducted to a bed-room? Mr.
                            <pb n="313"/>Earnshaw vouchsafed no answer. He walked up and down, with
                        his hands in his pockets, apparently quite forgetting my presence; and his
                        abstraction was evidently so deep, and his whole aspect so misanthropical,
                        that I shrank from disturbing him again.</p>
                    <p>"You'll not be surprised, Ellen, at my feeling particularly cheerless, seated
                        in worse than solitude, on that inhospitable hearth, and remembering that
                        four miles distant lay my delightful home, containing the only people I
                        loved on earth: and there might as well be the Atlantic to part us, instead
                        of those four miles, I could not overpass them!</p>
                    <p>I questioned with myself—where must I turn for comfort? and—mind you don't
                        tell Edgar, or Catherine—above every sorrow beside, this rose
                        pre-eminent—despair at finding nobody who could or would be my ally against
                        Heathcliff!</p>
                    <p>I had sought shelter at Wuthering Heights, almost gladly, because I was
                        secured by that <pb n="314"/>arrangement from living alone with him; but he
                        knew the people we were coming amongst, and he did not fear their
                        intermeddling.</p>
                    <p>I sat and thought a doleful time; the clock struck eight, and nine, and still
                        my companion paced to and fro, his head bent on his breast, and perfectly
                        silent, unless a groan, or a bitter ejaculation forced itself out at
                        intervals.</p>
                    <p>I listened to detect a woman's voice in the house, and filled the interim
                        with wild regrets, and dismal anticipations, which, at last, spoke audibly
                        in irrepressible sighing, and weeping.</p>
                    <p>I was not aware how openly I grieved, till Earnshaw halted opposite, in his
                        measured walk, and gave me a stare of newly awakened surprise. Taking
                        advantage of his recovered attention, I exclaimed—</p>
                    <p>"I'm tired with my journey, and I want to go to bed! Where is the
                        maid-servant? Direct me to her, as she wont come to to me!"</p>
                    <p>"We have none," he answered; "you must wait on yourself!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="315"/>"Where must I sleep, then?" I sobbed—I was beyond regarding
                        self-respect, weighed down by fatigue and wretchedness.</p>
                    <p>Joseph will show you Heathcliff's chamber," said he; "open that door—he's in
                        there."</p>
                    <p>"I was going to obey, but he suddenly arrested me, and added in the strangest
                        tone—</p>
                    <p>"Be so good as to turn your lock, and draw your bolt—don't omit it!"</p>
                    <p>"Well!" I said. "But why, Mr. Earnshaw?" I did not relish the notion of
                        deliberately fastening myself in with Heathcliff.</p>
                    <p>"Look here!" he replied, pulling from his waistcoat a curiously constructed
                        pistol, having a double edged spring knife attached to the barrel. "That's a
                        great tempter to a desperate man, is it not? I cannot resist going up with
                        this, every night, and trying his door, if once I find it open he's done
                        for! I do it invariably, even though the minute before I have been recalling
                        a hundred reasons that should make me refrain—it is some devil that <pb n="316"/>urges me to thwart my own schemes by killing him—you fight
                        against that devil, for love, as as long as you may; when the time comes,
                        not all the angels in heaven shall save him!</p>
                    <p>I surveyed the weapon inquisitively; a hideous notion struck me. How powerful
                        I should be possessing such an instrument! I took it from his hand, and
                        touched the blade. He looked astonished at the expression my face assumed
                        during a brief second. It was not horror, it was covetousness. He snatched
                        the pistol back, jealously; shut the knife, and returned it to its
                        concealment.</p>
                    <p>"I don't care if you tell him," said he. Put him on his guard, and watch for
                        him. You know the terms we are on, I see; his danger does not shock
                        you."</p>
                    <p>"What has Heathcliff done to you?" I asked. "In what has he wronged you to
                        warrant this appalling hatred? Wouldn't it be wiser to bid him quit the
                        house?"</p>
                    <p>"No," thundered Earnshaw, "should he <pb n="317"/>offer to leave me, he's a
                        dead man, persuade him to attempt it, and you are a murderess! Am I to lose
                            <hi>all</hi> without a chance of retrieval? Is Hareton to be a beggar?
                        Oh, damnation! I <hi>will</hi> have it back; and I'll have <hi>his</hi> gold
                        too; and then his blood; and hell shall have his soul! It will be ten times
                        blacker with that guest than ever it was before!"</p>
                    <p>"You've acquainted me, Ellen, with your old master's habits. He is clearly on
                        the verge of madness—he was so last night, at least. I shuddered to be near
                        him, and thought on the servant's ill-bred moroseness as comparatively
                        agreeable.</p>
                    <p>He now recommenced his moody walk, and I raised the latch, and escaped into
                        the kitchen.</p>
                    <p>Joseph was bending over the fire, peering into a large pan that swung above
                        it; and a wooden bowl of oatmeal stood on the settle close by. The contents
                        of the pan began to boil, and he turned to plunge his hand into the bowl; I
                        conjectured that this preparation was <pb n="318"/>probably for our supper,
                        and, being hungry, I resolved it should be eatable—so crying out,
                            sharply—"<hi>I'll</hi> make the porridge!" I removed the vessel out of
                        his reach, and proceeded to take off my hat and riding habit. "Mr.
                        Earnshaw," I continued, "directs me to wait on myself—I will—I'm not going
                        to act the lady among you, for fear I should starve."</p>
                    <p>"Gooid Lord!" he muttered, sitting down, and stroking his ribbed stockings
                        from the knee to the ankle. "If they's tuh be fresh ortherings—just when Aw
                        getten used tuh two maisters, if aw mun hev a <hi>mistress</hi> set o'er my
                        heead, it's loike time tuh be flitting. Aw niver <hi>did</hi> think tuh say
                        t' day ut aw mud lave th' owld place—but aw daht it's nigh at hend!"</p>
                    <p>This lamentation drew no notice from me; I went briskly to work; sighing to
                        remember a period when it would have been all merry fun; but compelled
                        speedily to drive off the remembrance. It racked me to recall past <pb n="319"/>happiness, and the greater peril there was of conjuring up its
                        apparition, the quicker the thible ran round, and the faster the handfuls of
                        meal fell into the water.</p>
                    <p>Joseph beheld my style of cookery with growing indignation.</p>
                    <p>"Thear!" he ejaculated. "Hareton, thah willut sup thy porridge tuh neeght;
                        they'll be nowt bud lumps as big as maw nave. Thear, agean! Aw'd fling in
                        bowl un all, if aw wer yah! Thear, pale t' guilp off, un' then yah'll hae
                        done wi't. Bang, bang. It's a marcy t' bothom isn't deaved aht!"</p>
                    <p>It <hi>was</hi> rather a rough mess, I own, when poured into the basins; four
                        had been provided, and a gallon pitcher of new milk was brought from the
                        dairy, which Hareton seized and commenced drinking and spilling from the
                        expansive lip.</p>
                    <p>I expostulated, and desired that he should have his in a mug; affirming that
                        I could not taste the liquid treated so dirtily. The old <pb n="320"/>cynic
                        chose to be vastly offended at this nicety; assuring me, repeatedly, that
                        "the barn was every bit as gooid" as I, "and every bit as wollsome," and
                        wondering how I could fashion to be so conceited; meanwhile, the infant
                        ruffian continued sucking; and glowered up at me defyingly, as he slavered
                        into the jug.</p>
                    <p>"I shall have my supper in another room," I said. "Have you no place you call
                        a parlour?"</p>
                    <p>"<hi>Parlour!</hi>" he echoed, sneeringly, "<hi>parlour!</hi> Nay, we've noa
                            <hi>parlours</hi>. If yah dunnut loike wer company, they's maister's;
                        un' if yah dunnut loike maister, they's us."</p>
                    <p>"Then I shall go up-stairs," I answered; "shew me a chamber!"</p>
                    <p>I put my basin on a tray, and went myself to fetch some more milk.</p>
                    <p>With great grumblings, the fellow rose, and preceded me in my ascent: we
                        mounted to the garrets; he opening a door, now and then, to look into the
                        apartments we passed.</p>
                    <p><pb n="321"/>"Here's a rahm," he said, at last, flinging back a cranky board
                        on hinges. "It's weel eneugh tuh ate a few porridge in. They's a pack uh
                        corn i' t' corner, thear, meeterly clane; if yah're feared uh muckying yer
                        grand silk cloes, spread yer hankerchir ut t' top on't."</p>
                    <p>The "rahm" was a kind of lumber-hole smelling strong of malt and grain;
                        various sacks of which articles were piled around, leaving a wide, bare
                        space in the middle.</p>
                    <p>"Why, man!" I exclaimed, facing him angrily, "this is not a place to sleep
                        in. I wish to see my bed-room."</p>
                    <p>"<hi>Bed-rume</hi>!" he repeated, in a tone of mockery. "Yah's see all t'
                            <hi>bed-rumes</hi> thear is—yon's mine."</p>
                    <p>He pointed into the second garret, only differing from the first in being
                        more naked about the walls, and having a large, low, curtainless bed, with
                        an indigo-coloured quilt, at one end.</p>
                    <p>"What do I want with yours?" I retorted. <pb n="322"/>"I suppose Mr.
                        Heathcliff does not lodge at the top of the house, does he?"</p>
                    <p>"Oh! it's Maister <hi>Hathecliff's</hi> yah're wenting?" cried he, as if
                        making a new discovery. "Couldn't ye uh said soa, at onst? un then, aw mud
                        uh telled ye, baht all this wark, ut that's just one yah cannut sea—he allas
                        keeps it locked, un' nob'dy iver mells on't but hisseln."</p>
                    <p>"You've a nice house, Joseph," I could not refrain from observing, "and
                        pleasant inmates; and I think the concentrated essence of all the madness in
                        the world took up its abode in my brain the day I linked my fate with
                        theirs! However that is not to the present purpose—there are other rooms.
                        For heaven's sake, be quick, and let me settle somewhere!"</p>
                    <p>He made no reply to this adjuration; only plodding doggedly down the wooden
                        steps, and halting before an apartment which, from that halt, and the
                        superior quality of its furniture, I conjectured to be the best one.</p>
                    <p><pb n="323"/>There was a carpet, a good one; but the pattern was obliterated
                        by dust; a fire-place hung with cut paper dropping to pieces; a handsome
                        oak-bedstead with ample crimson curtains of rather expensive material, and
                        modern make. But they had evidently experienced rough usage, the valances
                        hung in festoons, wrenched from their rings; and the iron rod supporting
                        them was bent in an arc, on one side, causing the drapery to trail upon the
                        floor. The chairs were also damaged, many of them severely; and deep
                        indentations deformed the panels of the walls.</p>
                    <p>I was endeavouring to gather resolution for entering, and taking possession,
                        when my fool of a guide announced—</p>
                    <p>"This here is t' maister's."</p>
                    <p>My supper by this time was cold, my appetite gone, and my patience exhausted.
                        I insisted on being provided instantly with a place of refuge, and means of
                        repose.</p>
                    <p>"Whear the divil," began the religious <pb n="324"/>elder. "The Lord bless
                        us! The Lord forgie us! Whear the <hi>hell</hi>, wold ye gang? ye marred,
                        wearisome nowt! Yah seen all bud Hareton's bit uf a cham'er. They's nut
                        another hoile tuh lig dahn in i' th' hahse!"</p>
                    <p>I was so vexed, I flung my tray, and its contents on the ground; and then
                        seated myself at the stairs-head, hid my face in my hands, and cried.</p>
                    <p>"Ech! ech!" exclaimed Joseph. "Weel done, Miss Cathy! weel done, Miss Cathy!
                        Hahsiver, t' maister sall just tum'le o'er them brocken pots; un' then we's
                        hear summut; we's hear hah it's tuh be. Gooid-fur-nowt madling! yah desarve
                        pining froo this tuh Churstmas, flinging t' precious gifts uh God under
                        fooit i' yer flaysome rages! Bud, aw'm mista'en if yah shew yer sperrit
                        lang. Will Hathecliff bide sich bonny ways, think ye? Aw nobbut wish he muh
                        cotch ye i' that plisky. Aw nobbut wish he may."</p>
                    <p>And so he went scolding to his den beneath, <pb n="325"/>taking the candle
                        with him, and I remained in the dark.</p>
                    <p>The period of reflection succeeding this silly action, compelled me to admit
                        the necessity of smothering my pride, and choking my wrath, and bestirring
                        myself to remove its effects.</p>
                    <p>An unexpected aid presently appeared in the shape of Throttler, whom I now
                        recognised as a son of our old Skulker; it had spent its whelphood at the
                        Grange, and was given by my father to Mr. Hindley. I fancy it knew me—it
                        pushed its nose against mine by way of salute, and then hastened to devour
                        the porridge, while I groped from step to step, collecting the shattered
                        earthenware, and drying the spatters of milk from the bannister with my
                        pocket-handherchief.</p>
                    <p>Our labours were scarcely over when I heard Earnshaw's tread in the passage;
                        my assistant tucked in his tail, and pressed to the wall; I stole into the
                        nearest doorway. The dog's endeavour to avoid him was unsuccessful; as I <pb n="326"/>guessed by a scutter down stairs, and a prolonged, piteous
                        yelping. I had better luck. He passed on, entered his chamber, and shut the
                        door.</p>
                    <p>Directly after Joseph came up with Hareton, to put him to bed. I had found
                        shelter in Hareton's room, and the old man on seeing me, said—</p>
                    <p>"They's rahm fur boath yah, un yer pride, nah, aw sud think i' th hahse. It's
                        empty; yah muh hev it all tuh yerseln, un Him as allas maks a third, i' sich
                        ill company!"</p>
                    <p>Gladly did I take advantage of this intimation; and the minute I flung myself
                        into a chair, by the fire, I nodded, and slept.</p>
                    <p>My slumber was deep, and sweet; though over far too soon. Mr. Heathcliff
                        awoke me; he had just come in, and demanded, in his loving manner, what I
                        was doing there?</p>
                    <p>I told him the cause of my staying up so late—that he had the key of our room
                        in his pocket.</p>
                    <p><pb n="327"/>The adjective <hi>our</hi> gave mortal offence. He swore it was
                        not, nor ever should be mine; and he'd—but I'll not repeat his language, nor
                        describe his habitual conduct; he is ingenious and unresting in seeking to
                        gain my abhorrence! I sometimes wonder at him with an intensity that deadens
                        my fear: yet, I assure you, a tiger, or a venomous serpent could not rouse
                        terror in me equal to that which he wakens. He told me of Catherine's
                        illness, and accused my brother of causing it; promising that I should be
                        Edgar's proxy in suffering, till he could get a hold of him.</p>
                    <p>⁠"I do hate him—I am wretched—I have been a fool! Beware of uttering one
                        breath of this to any one at the Grange. I shall expect you every day—don't
                        disappoint me!</p>
                    <p>"ISABELLA."</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="328"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XIV.</head>

                    <p>As soon as I had perused this epistle, I went to the master, and informed him
                        that his sister had arrived at the Heights, and sent me a a letter
                        expressing her sorrow for Mrs. Linton's situation, and her ardent desire to
                        see him; with a wish that he would transmit to her, as early as possible,
                        some token of forgiveness by me.</p>
                    <p>"Forgiveness?" said Linton. "I have nothing to forgive her, Ellen—you may
                        call at Wuthering Heights this afternoon, if you like, <pb n="329"/>and say
                        that I am not <hi>angry</hi>, but I'm <hi>sorry</hi> to have lost her:
                        especially as I can never think she'll be happy. It is out of the question
                        my going to see her, however; we are eternally divided; and should she
                        really wish to oblige me, let her persuade the villain she has married to
                        leave the country."</p>
                    <p>"And you wont write her a little note, sir?" I asked, imploringly.</p>
                    <p>"No," he answered. "It is needless. My communication with Heathcliff's family
                        shall be as sparing as his with mine. It shall not exist!"</p>
                    <p>Mr. Edgar's coldness depressed me exceedingly; and all the way from the
                        Grange, I puzzled my brains how to put more heart into what he said, when I
                        repeated it; and how to soften his refusal of even a few lines to console
                        Isabella.</p>
                    <p>I dare say she had been on the watch for me since morning: I saw her looking
                        through the lattice, as I came up the garden causeway <pb n="330"/>and I
                        nodded to her; but she drew back, as if afraid of being observed.</p>
                    <p>I entered without knocking. There never was such a dreary, dismal scene as
                        the formerly cheerful house presented! I must confess that, if I had been in
                        the young lady's place, I would, at least, have swept the hearth, and wiped
                        the tables with a duster. But she already partook of the pervading spirit of
                        neglect which encompassed her. Her pretty face was wan and listless; her
                        hair uncurled; some locks hanging lankly down, and some carelessly twisted
                        round her head. Probably she had not touched her dress since yester
                        evening.</p>
                    <p>Hindley was not there. Mr. Heathcliff sat at a table, turning over some
                        papers in his pocket-book; but he rose when I appeared, asked me how I did,
                        quite friendly, and offered me a chair.</p>
                    <p>He was the only thing there that seemed decent, and I thought he never looked
                        better. So much had circumstances altered their <pb n="331"/>positions, that
                        he would certainly have struck a stranger as a born and bred gentleman, and
                        his wife as a thorough little slattern!</p>
                    <p>She came forward eagerly to greet me; and held out one hand to take the
                        expected letter.</p>
                    <p>I shook my head. She wouldn't understand the hint, but followed me to a
                        sideboard, where I went to lay my bonnet, and importuned me in a whisper to
                        give her directly what I had brought.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff guessed the meaning of her manœuvres, and said—</p>
                    <p>"If you have got anything for Isabella, as no doubt you have, Nelly, give it
                        to her. You needn't make a secret of it; we have no secrets between us."</p>
                    <p>"Oh, I have nothing," I replied, thinking it best to speak the truth at once.
                        "My master bid me tell his sister that she must not expect either a letter
                        or a visit from him at present. He sends his love, ma'am, and his wishes for
                        your happiness, and his pardon for <pb n="332"/>the grief you have
                        occasioned; but he thinks that after this time, his household, and the
                        household here, should drop intercommunication; as nothing good could come
                        of keeping it up.</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Heathcliff's lip quivered slightly, and she returned to her seat in the
                        window. Her husband took his stand on the hearthstone, near me, and began to
                        put questions concerning Catherine.</p>
                    <p>I told him as much as I thought proper of her illness, and he extorted from
                        me, by cross-examination, most of the facts connected with its origin.</p>
                    <p>I blamed her, as she deserved, for bringing it all on herself; and ended by
                        hoping that he would follow Mr. Linton's example, and avoid future
                        interference with his family, for good or evil.</p>
                    <p>"Mrs Linton is now just recovering," I said, "she'll never be like she was,
                        but her life is spared, and if you really have a regard for her, you'll shun
                        crossing her way again. <pb n="333"/>Nay you'll move out of this country
                        entirely; and that you may not regret it, I'll inform you Catherine Linton
                        is as different now, from your old friend Catherine Earnshaw, as that young
                        lady is different from me! Her appearance is changed greatly, her character
                        much more so; and the person, who is compelled, of necessity, to be her
                        companion, will only sustain his affection hereafter, by the remembrance of
                        what she once was, by common humanity, and a sense of duty!"</p>
                    <p>"That is quite possible," remarked Heathcliff forcing himself to seem calm,
                        "quite possible that your master should have nothing but common humanity,
                        and a sense of duty to fall back upon. But do you imagine that I shall leave
                        Catherine to his <hi>duty</hi> and <hi>humanity?</hi> and can you compare my
                        feelings respecting Catherine, to his? Before you leave this house, I must
                        exact a promise from you, that you'll get me an interview with her—consent,
                        or refuse, I <hi>will</hi> see her! What do you say?"</p>
                    <p>"I say Mr. Heathcliff," I replied, "you <pb n="334"/>must not—you never shall
                        through my means. Another encounter between you and the master, would kill
                        her altogether!"</p>
                    <p>"With your aid that may be avoided;" he continued, "and should there be
                        danger of such an event—should he be the cause of adding a single trouble
                        more to her existence—Why, I think, I shall be justified in going to
                        extremes! I wish you had sincerity enough to tell me whether Catherine would
                        suffer greatly from his loss. The fear that she would restrains me: and
                        there you see the distinction between our feelings—Had he been in my place,
                        and I in his, though I hated him with a hatred that turned my life to gall,
                        I never would have raised a hand against him. You may look incredulous, if
                        you please! I never would have banished him from her society, as long as she
                        desired his. The moment her regard ceased, I would have torn his heart out,
                        and drank his blood! But, till then, if you don't believe me, you don't know
                        me—till then, <pb n="335"/>I would have died by inches before I touched a
                        single hair of his head!"</p>
                    <p>"And yet, I interrupted, you have no scruples in completely ruining all hopes
                        of her perfect restoration, by thrusting yourself in to her remembrance,
                        now, when she has nearly forgotten you, and involving her in a new tumult of
                        discord, and distress."</p>
                    <p>"You suppose she has nearly forgotten me?" he said. "Oh Nelly! you know she
                        has not! You know as well as I do, that for every thought she spends on
                        Linton, she spends a thousand on me! At a most miserable period of my life,
                        I had a notion of the kind, it haunted me on my return to the neighbourhood,
                        last summer, but only her own assurance, could make me admit the horrible
                        idea again. And then, Linton would be nothing, nor Hindley, nor all the
                        dreams that ever I dreamt. Two words would comprehend my future
                            <hi>death</hi> and <hi>hell</hi>—existence, after losing her would be
                        hell.</p>
                    <p><pb n="336"/>"Yet I was a fool to fancy for a moment that she valued Edgar
                        Linton's attachment more than mine—If he loved with all the powers of his
                        puny being, he couldn't love as much in eighty years, as I could in a day.
                        And Catherine has a heart as deep as I have; the sea could be as readily
                        contained in that horse-trough, as her whole affection be monopolized by
                        him—Tush! He is scarcely a degree dearer to her than her dog, or her
                        horse—It is not in him to be loved like me, how can she love in him what he
                        has not?</p>
                    <p>"Catherine and Edgar are as fond of each other, as any two people can be!"
                        cried Isabella with sudden vivacity. "No one has a right to talk in that
                        manner, and I won't hear my brother depreciated in silence!"</p>
                    <p>"Your brother is wondrous fond of you too, isn't he?" observed Heathcliff
                        scornfully. "He turns you adrift on the world with surprising alacrity."</p>
                    <p>"He is not aware of what I suffer," she replied. "I didn't tell him
                        that."</p>
                    <p><pb n="337"/>"You have been telling him something, then—you have written,
                        have you?"</p>
                    <p>"To say that I was married, I did write—you saw the note."</p>
                    <p>"And nothing since?"</p>
                    <p>"No."</p>
                    <p>"My young lady is looking sadly the worse, for her change of condition," I
                        remarked. "Somebody's love comes short in her case, obviously—whose I may
                        guess; but, perhaps, I shouldn't say."</p>
                    <p>"I should guess it was her own," said Heathcliff. "She degenerates into a
                        mere slut! She is tired of trying to please me, uncommonly early—You'd
                        hardly credit it, but the very morrow of our wedding, she was weeping to go
                        home. However, she'll suit this house so much the better for not being over
                        nice, and I'll take care she does not disgrace me by rambling abroad."</p>
                    <p>"Well, sir;" returned I, "I hope you'll consider that Mrs. Heathcliff is
                        accustomed to <pb n="338"/>be looked after, and waited on; and that she has
                        been brought up like an only daughter whom every one was ready to serve—You
                        must let her have a maid to keep things tidy about her, and you must treat
                        her kindly—Whatever be your notion of Mr. Edgar, you cannot doubt that she
                        has a capacity for strong attachments or she wouldn't have abandoned the
                        elegancies, and comforts, and friends of her former home, to fix
                        contentedly, in such a wilderness as this, with you."</p>
                    <p>"She abandoned them under a delusion;" he answered, "picturing in me a hero
                        of romance, and expecting unlimited indulgences from my chivalrous devotion.
                        I can hardly regard her in the light of a rational creature, so obstinately
                        has she persisted in forming a fabulous notion of my character, and acting
                        on the false impressions she cherished. But at last, I think she begins to
                        know me—I don't perceive the silly smiles and grimaces that provoked me, at
                        first; and the senseless <pb n="339"/>incapability of discerning that I was
                        in earnest when I gave her my opinion of her infatuation, and herself—It was
                        a marvellous effort of perspicacity to discover that I did not love her. I
                        believed at one time, no lessons could teach her that! aud yet it is poorly
                        learnt; for this morning she announced, as a piece of appalling
                        intelligence, that I had actually succeeded in making her hate me! A
                        positive labour of Hercules, I assure you! If it be achieved, I have cause
                        to return thanks—Can I trust your assertion, Isabella, are you sure you hate
                        me? If I let you alone for half-a-day, won't you come sighing and wheedling
                        to me again? I dare say she would rather I had seemed all tenderness before
                        you; it wounds her vanity to have the truth exposed. But, I don't care who
                        knows that the passion was wholly on one side, and I never told her a lie
                        about it. She cannot accuse me of showing a bit of deceitful softness. The
                        first thing she saw me do, on coming out of the Grange, was to hang <pb n="340"/>up her little dog, and when she pleaded for it the first words
                        I uttered, were a wish that I had the hanging of every being belonging to
                        her, except one: possibly, she took that exception for herself—But no
                        brutality disgusted her—I suppose, she has an innate admiration of it, if
                        only her precious person were secure from injury! Now, was it not the depth
                        of absurdity—of genuine idiocy, for that pitiful slavish, mean-minded brach
                        to dream that I could love her? Tell your master, Nelly, that I never, in
                        all my life, met with such an abject thing as she is—She even disgraces the
                        name of Linton; and I've sometimes relented, from pure lack of invention, in
                        my experiments on what she could endure, and still creep shamefully cringing
                        back! But tell him also, to set his fraternal and magisterial heart at ease,
                        that I keep strictly within the limits of the law—I have avoided, up to this
                        period, giving her the slightest right to claim a separation; and what's
                        more, she'd thank nobody for dividing <pb n="341"/>us—if she desired to go
                        she might—the nuisance of her presence outweighs the gratification to be
                        derived from tormenting her!"</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Heathcliff," said I, "this is the talk of a madman, and your wife, most
                        likely is convinced you are mad; and, for that reason, she has borne with
                        you hitherto: but now that you say she may go, she'll doubtless avail
                        herself of the permission—You are not so bewitched ma'am, are you, as to
                        remain with him, of your own accord?"</p>
                    <p>"Take care, Ellen!" answered Isabella, her eyes sparkling irefully—there was
                        no misdoubting by their expression, the full success of her partner's
                        endeavours to make himself detested, "Don't put faith in a single word he
                        speaks. He's a lying fiend, a monster, and not a human being! I've been told
                        I might leave him before; and I've made the attempt, but I dare not repeat
                        it! Only Ellen, promise you'll not mention a syllable of <pb n="342"/>his
                        infamous conversation to my brother or Catherine—whatever he may pretend, he
                        wishes to provoke Edgar to desperation—he says he has married me on purpose
                        to obtain power over him; and he shan't obtain it—I'll die first! I just
                        hope, I pray that he may forget his diabolical prudence, and kill me! The
                        single pleasure I can imagine is, is to die, or to see him dead!"</p>
                    <p>"There—that will do for the present!" said Heathcliff. "If you are called
                        upon in a court of law, you'll remember her language, Nelly! And take a good
                        look at that countenance—she's near the point which would suit me. No,
                        you're not fit to be your own guardian, Isabella now; and I, being your
                        legal protector, must retain you in my custody, however distasteful the
                        obligation may be—Go up stairs; I have something to say to Ellen Dean, in
                        private. That's not the way—up-stairs, I tell you! Why this is the road
                        up-stairs, child!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="343"/>He seized, and thrust her from the room; and returned
                        muttering,</p>
                    <p>"I have no pity! I have no pity! The worms writhe, the more I yearn to crush
                        out their entrails! It is a moral teething, and I grind with greater energy,
                        in proportion to the increase of pain."</p>
                    <p>"Do you understand what the word pity means?" I said hastening to resume my
                        bonnet. "Did you ever feel a touch of it in your life?"</p>
                    <p>"Put that down!" he interrupted, perceiving my intention to depart. "You are
                        not going yet—Come here now, Nelly—I must either persuade, or compel you to
                        aid me in fulfilling my determination to see Catherine, and that without
                        delay—I swear that I meditate no harm; I don't desire to cause any
                        disturbance, or to exasperate, or insult Mr. Linton; I only wish to hear
                        from herself how she is, and why she has been ill; and to ask, if anything
                        that I could do would be of use to her. Last <pb n="344"/>night, I was in
                        the Grange garden six hours, and I'll return there to-night; and every night
                        I'll haunt the place, and every day, till I find an opportunity of entering.
                        If Edgar Linton meets me, I shall not hesitate to knock him down, and give
                        him enough to ensure his quiescence while I stay—If his servants oppose me,
                        I shall threaten them off with these pistols—But wouldn't it be better to
                        prevent my coming in contact with them, or their master. And you could do it
                        so easily! I'd warn you when I came, and then you might let me in
                        unobserved, as soon as she was alone, and watch till I departed—your
                        conscience quite calm, you would be hindering mischief."</p>
                    <p>I protested against playing that treacherous part in my employer's house; and
                        besides, I urged the cruelty, and selfishness of his destroying Mrs.
                        Linton's tranquillity, for his satisfaction.</p>
                    <p>"The commonest occurrence startles her painfully," I said. "She's all nerves,
                        and she <pb n="345"/>couldn't bear the surprise, I'm positive—Don't persist,
                        sir! or else, I shall be obliged to inform my master of your designs, and
                        he'll take measures to secure his house and its inmates from any such
                        unwarrantable intrusions!</p>
                    <p>In that case, I'll take measures to secure you, woman!" exclaimed Heathcliff,
                        "you shall not leave Wuthering Heights till to-morrow morning. It is a
                        foolish story to assert that Catherine could not bear to see me; and as to
                        surprising her, I don't desire it, you must prepare her—ask her if I may
                        come. You say she never mentions my name, and that I am never mentioned to
                        her. To whom should she mention me if I am a forbidden topic in the house?
                        She thinks you are all spies for her husband—Oh, I've no doubt she's in hell
                        among you! I guess, by her silence as much as any thing, what she feels. You
                        say she is often restless, and anxious looking—is that a proof of
                        tranquillity? You talk of her mind, being unsettled—How the devil could it
                        be <pb n="346"/>otherwise, in her frightful isolation. And that insipid,
                        paltry creature attending her from <hi>duty</hi> and <hi>humanity</hi>! From
                            <hi>pity</hi> and <hi>charity</hi>. He might as well plant an oak in a
                        flower-pot, and expect it to thrive, as imagine he can restore her to vigour
                        in the soil of his shallow cares! Let us settle it at once; will you stay
                        here, and am I to fight my way to Catherine over Linton, and his footmen? Or
                        will you be my friend, as you have been hitherto, and do what I request?
                        Decide! because there is no reason for my lingering another minute, if you
                        persist in your stubborn ill-nature!"</p>
                    <p>Well, Mr. Lockwood, I argued, and complained, and flatly refused him fifty
                        times; but in the long run he forced me to an agreement—I engaged to carry a
                        letter from him to my mistress; and should she consent, I promised to let
                        him have intelligence of Linton's next absence from home, when he might
                        come, and get in as he was able—I wouldn't be there, <pb n="347"/>and my
                        fellow servants should be equally out of the way.</p>
                    <p>Was it right, or wrong? I fear it was wrong, though expedient. I thought I
                        prevented another explosion by my compliance; and I thought too, it might
                        create a favourable crisis in Catherine's mental illness: and then I
                        remembered Mr. Edgar's stern rebuke of my carrying tales; and I tried to
                        smooth away all disquietude on the subject, by affirming, with frequent
                        iteration, that, that betrayal of trust, if it merited so harsh an
                        appellation, should be the last.</p>
                    <p>Notwithstanding my journey homeward was sadder than my journey thither; and
                        many misgivings I had, ere I could prevail on myself to put the missive into
                        Mrs. Linton's hand.</p>
                    <p>But here is Kenneth—I'll go down, and tell him how much better you are. My
                        history is <hi>dree</hi>' as we say, and will serve to wile away another
                        morning.</p>
                    <p><pb n="348"/>Dree, and dreary! I reflected as the good woman descended to
                        receive the doctor; and not exactly of the kind which I should have chosen
                        to amuse me; but never mind! I'll extract wholesome medicines from Mrs.
                        Dean's bitter herbs; and firstly, let me beware of the fascination that
                        lurks in Catherine Heathcliff's brilliant eyes. I should be in a curious
                        taking if I surrendered my heart to that young person, and the daughter
                        turned out a second edition of the mother!</p>
                </div>
            </div>
            <div type="group">
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="1"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER I.</head>

                    <p>Another week over—and I am so many days nearer health, and spring! I have now
                        heard all my neighbour's history, at different sittings, as the housekeeper
                        could spare time from more important occupations. I'll continue it in her
                        own words, only a little condensed. She is, on the whole, a very fair
                        narrator and I don't think I could improve her style.</p>
                    <p><pb n="2"/>"In the evening," she said, "the evening of my visit to the
                        Heights, I knew as well as if I saw him, that Mr. Heathcliff was about the
                        place; and I shunned going out, because I still carried his letter in my
                        pocket, and didn't want to be threatened, or teased any more.</p>
                    <p>I had made up my mind not to give it till my master went somewhere; as I
                        could not guess how its receipt would affect Catherine. The consequence was,
                        that it did not reach her before the lapse of three days. The fourth was
                        Sunday, and I brought it into her room, after the family were gone to
                        church.</p>
                    <p>There was a man servant left to keep the house with me, and we generally made
                        a practice of locking the doors during the hours of service; but on that
                        occasion, the weather was so warm and pleasant that I set them wide open;
                        and to fulfil my engagement, as I knew who would be coming, I told my
                        companion that the mistress wished very much for some oranges, and he must
                        run over to the village, <pb n="3"/>and get a few, to be paid for on the
                        morrow. He departed, and I went up-stairs.</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Linton sat in a loose, white dress, with a light shawl over her
                        shoulders, in the recess of the open window, as usual. Her thick, long hair
                        had been partly removed at the beginning of her illness; and now, she wore
                        it simply combed in its natural tresses over her temples and neck. Her
                        appearance was altered, as I had told Heathcliff, but when she was calm,
                        there seemed unearthly beauty in the change.</p>
                    <p>The flash of her eyes had been succeeded by a dreamy and melancholy softness;
                        they no longer gave the impression of looking at the objects around her;
                        they appeared always to gaze beyond, and far beyond—you would have said out
                        of this world—Then, the paleness of her face, its haggard aspect having
                        vanished as she recovered flesh, and the peculiar expression arising from
                        her mental state, though painfully suggestive of their causes, added to <pb n="4"/>the touching interest, which she wakened, and invariably to me, I
                        know, and to any person who saw her, I should think, refuted more tangible
                        proofs of convalescence and stamped her as one doomed to decay.</p>
                    <p>A book lay spread on the sill before her, and the scarcely perceptible wind
                        fluttered its leaves at intervals. I believe Linton had laid it there, for
                        she never endeavoured to divert herself with reading, or occupation of any
                        kind; and he would spend many an hour in trying to entice her attention to
                        some subject which had formerly been her amusement.</p>
                    <p>She was conscious of his aim, and in her better moods, endured his efforts
                        placidly; only showing their uselessness by now and then suppressing a
                        wearied sigh, and cheeking him at last, with the saddest of smiles and
                        kisses. At other times, she would turn petulantly away, and hide her face in
                        her hands, or even push him off angrily; and then he took care to let her
                        alone, for he was certain of doing no good.</p>
                    <p><pb n="5"/>Gimmerton chapel bells were still ringing: and the full, mellow
                        flow, of the beck in the valley, came soothingly on the ear. It was a sweet
                        substitute for the yet absent murmur of the summer foliage which drowned
                        that music about the Grange, when the trees were in leaf. At Wuthering
                        Heights it always sounded on quiet days, following a great thaw, or a season
                        of steady rain—and, of Wuthering Heights, Catherine was thinking as she
                        listened; that is, if she thought, or listened, at all; but she had the
                        vague, distant look, I mentioned before, which expressed no recognition of
                        material things either by ear or eye.</p>
                    <p>"There's a letter for you, Mrs. Linton," I said, gently inserting it in one
                        hand that rested on her knee. "You must read it immediately, because it
                        wants an answer. Shall I break the seal?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes," she answered, without altering the direction of her eyes.</p>
                    <p>I opened it—it was very short.</p>
                    <p><pb n="6"/>"Now," I continued, "read it."</p>
                    <p>She drew away her hand, and let it fall. I replaced it in her lap, and stood
                        waiting till it should please her to glance down; but that movement was so
                        long delayed that at last I resumed—</p>
                    <p>"Must I read it, ma'am? It is from Mr. Heathcliff."</p>
                    <p>There was a start, and a troubled gleam of recollection, and a struggle to
                        arrange her ideas. She lifted the letter, and seemed to peruse it; and when
                        she came to the signature she sighed; yet still I found she had not gathered
                        its import; for upon my desiring to hear her reply she merely pointed to the
                        name, and gazed at me with mournful and questioning eagerness.</p>
                    <p>"Well, he wishes to see you," said I, guessing her need of an interpreter.
                        "He's in the garden by this time, and impatient to know what answer I shall
                        bring."</p>
                    <p>As I spoke, I observed a large dog lying on <pb n="7"/>the sunny grass
                        beneath, raise its ears, as if about to bark; and then smoothing them back,
                        announce by a wag of the tail that some one approached whom it did not
                        consider a stranger.</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Linton bent forward, and listened breathlessly. The minute after a step
                        traversed the hall; the open house was too tempting for Heathcliff to resist
                        walking in: most likely he supposed that I was inclined to shirk my promise,
                        and so resolved to trust to his own audacity.</p>
                    <p>With straining eagerness Catherine gazed towards the entrance of her chamber.
                        He did not hit the right room directly; she motioned me to admit him; but he
                        found it out, ere I could reach the door, and in a stride or two was at her
                        side, and had her grasped in his arms.</p>
                    <p>He neither spoke, nor loosed his hold, for some five minutes, during which
                        period he bestowed more kisses than ever he gave in his <pb n="8"/>life
                        before, I dare say; but then my mistress had kissed him first, and I plainly
                        saw that he could hardly bear, for downright agony, to look into her face!
                        The same conviction had stricken him as me, from the instant he beheld her,
                        that there was no prospect of ultimate recovery there—she was fated, sure to
                        die.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, Cathy! Oh my life! how can I bear it?" was the first sentence he
                        uttered, in a tone that did not seek to disguise his despair.</p>
                    <p>And now he stared at her so earnestly that I thought the very intensity of
                        his gaze would bring tears into his eyes; but they burned with anguish, they
                        did not melt.</p>
                    <p>"What now?" said Catherine, leaning back, and returning his look with a
                        suddenly clouded brow—her humour was a mere vane for constantly varying
                        caprices. "You and Edgar have broken my heart, Heathcliff! And you both come
                        to bewail the deed to me, as if you were the people to be pitied! I shall
                        not pity you, not I. You have killed me—and <pb n="9"/>thriven on it, I
                        think. How strong you are! How many years do you mean to live after I am
                        gone?"</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff had knelt on one knee to embrace her; he attempted to rise, but
                        she seized his hair, and kept him down.</p>
                    <p>"I wish I could hold you," she continued, bitterly, "till we were both dead!
                        I shouldn't care what you suffered. I care nothing for your sufferings. Why
                        shouldn't you suffer? I do! Will you forget me—will you be happy when I am
                        in the earth? Will you say twenty years hence, 'That's the grave of
                        Catherine Earnshaw. I loved her long ago, and was wretched to lose her; but
                        it is past. I've loved many others since—my children are dearer to me that
                        she was, and, at death, I shall not rejoice that I am going to her, I shall
                        be sorry that I must leave them!' Will you say so, Heathcliff?"</p>
                    <p>"Don't torture me till I'm as mad as <pb n="10"/>yourself," cried he,
                        wrenching his head free, and grinding his teeth.</p>
                    <p>The two, to a cool spectator, made a strange and fearful picture. Well might
                        Catherine deem that Heaven would be a land of exile to her, unless, with her
                        mortal body, she cast away her mortal character also. Her present
                        countenance had a wild vindictiveness in its white cheek, and a bloodless
                        lip, and scintillating eye; and she retained, in her closed fingers, a
                        portion of the locks she had been grasping. As to her companion, while
                        raising himself with one hand, he had taken her arm with the other; and so
                        inadequate was his stock of gentleness to the requirements of her condition,
                        that on his letting go, I saw four distinct impressions left blue in the
                        colourless skin.</p>
                    <p>"Are you possessed with a devil," he pursued, savagely, "to talk in that
                        manner to me, when you are dying? Do you reflect that all those words will
                        be branded in my memory, <pb n="11"/>and eating deeper eternally, after you
                        have left me? You know you lie to say I have killed you; and, Catherine, you
                        know that I could as soon forget you, as my existence! Is it not sufficient
                        for your infernal selfishness, that while you are at peace I shall writhe in
                        the torments of hell?"</p>
                    <p>"I shall not be at peace," moaned Catherine, recalled to a sense of physical
                        weakness by the violent, unequal throbbing of her heart, which beat visibly,
                        and audibly under this excess of agitation.</p>
                    <p>She said nothing further till the paroxysm was over; then she continued, more
                        kindly—</p>
                    <p>"I'm not wishing you greater torment than I have, Heathcliff! I only wish us
                        never to be parted—and should a word of mine distress you hereafter, think I
                        feel the same distress underground, and for my own sake, forgive me! Come
                        here and kneel down again! You never harmed me in your life. Nay, if you
                        nurse anger, that will be worse to remember <pb n="12"/>than my harsh words!
                        Wont you come here again? Do!"</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff went to the back of her chair, and leant over, but not so far as
                        to let her see his face, which was livid with emotion. She bent round to
                        look at him; he would not permit it; turning abruptly, he walked to the
                        fire-place, where he stood, silent, with his back towards us.</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Linton's glance followed him suspiciously: every movement woke a new
                        sentiment in her. After a pause, and a prolonged gaze, she resumed,
                        addressing me in accents of indignant disappointment.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, you see, Nelly! he would not relent a moment, to keep me out of the
                        grave! <hi>That</hi> is how I'm loved! Well, never mind! That is not
                            <hi>my</hi> Heathcliff. I shall love mine yet; and take him with me—he's
                        in my soul. And," added she, musingly, "the thing that irks me most is this
                        shattered prison, after all. I'm tired, tired of being enclosed here. I'm
                            <pb n="13"/>wearying to escape into that glorious world, and to be
                        always there; not seeing it dimly through tears, and yearning for it through
                        the walls of an aching heart; but really with it, and in it. Nelly, you
                        think you are better and more fortunate than I; in full health and
                        strength—you are sorry for me—very soon that will be altered. I shall be
                        sorry for <hi>you</hi>. I shall be incomparably beyond and above you all. I
                            <hi>wonder</hi> he wont be near me!" She went on to herself. "I thought
                        he wished it. Heathcliff dear! you should not be sullen now. Do come to me,
                        Heathcliff."</p>
                    <p>In her eagerness she rose, and supported herself on the arm of the chair. At
                        that earnest appeal, he turned to her, looking absolutely desperate. His
                        eyes wide, and wet, at last, flashed fiercely on her; his breast heaved
                        convulsively. An instant they held asunder; and then how they met I hardly
                        saw, but Catherine made a spring, and he caught her, and they were locked in
                        an embrace from <pb n="14"/>which I thought my mistress would never be
                        released alive. In fact, to my eyes, she seemed directly insensible. He
                        flung himself into the nearest seat, and on my approaching hurriedly to
                        ascertain if she had fainted, he gnashed at me, and foamed like a mad dog,
                        and gathered her to him with greedy jealousy. I did not feel as if I were in
                        the company of a creature of my own species; it appeared that he would not
                        understand, though I spoke to him; so, I stood off, and held my tongue, in
                        great perplexity.</p>
                    <p>A movement of Catherine's relieved me a little presently: she put up her hand
                        to clasp his neck, and bring her cheek to his, as he held her: while he, in
                        return, covering her with frantic caresses, said wildly—</p>
                    <p>"You teach me now how cruel you've been—cruel and false. <hi>Why</hi> did you
                        despise me? <hi>Why</hi> did you betray your own heart, Cathy? I have not
                        one word of comfort—you deserve this. You have killed yourself. Yes, you <pb n="15"/>may kiss me, and cry; and wring out my kisses and tears. They'll
                        blight you—they'll damn you, You loved me—then what <hi>right</hi> had you
                        to leave me? What right—answer me—for the poor fancy you felt for Linton?
                        Because misery, and degradation, and death, and nothing that God or satan
                        could inflict would have parted us, <hi>you</hi>, of your own will, did it.
                        I have not broken your heart—<hi>you</hi> have broken it—and in breaking it,
                        you have broken mine. So much the worse for me, that I am strong. Do I want
                        to live? What kind of living will it be when you—oh God! would <hi>you</hi>
                        like to live with your soul in the grave?"</p>
                    <p>"Let me alone. Let me alone," sobbed Catherine. "If I've done wrong, I'm
                        dying for it. It is enough! You left me too; but I wont upbraid you! I
                        forgive you. Forgive me!"</p>
                    <p>"It is hard to forgive, and to look at those eyes, and feel those wasted
                        hands," he <pb n="16"/>answered. "Kiss me again; and don't let me see your
                        eyes! I forgive what you have done to me. I love <hi>my</hi> murderer—but
                            <hi>yours</hi>! How can I?"</p>
                    <p>They were silent—their faces hid against each other, and washed by each
                        other's tears. At least, I suppose the weeping was on both sides; as it
                        seemed Heathcliff <hi>could</hi> weep on a great occasion like this.</p>
                    <p>I grew very uncomfortable, meanwhile; for the afternoon wore fast away, the
                        man whom I had sent off returned from his errand, and I could distinguish,
                        by the shine of the westering sun up the valley, a concourse thickening
                        outside Gimmerton chapel porch.</p>
                    <p>"Service is over," I announced. "My master will be here in half-an-hour."</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff groaned a curse, and strained Catherine closer—she never
                        moved.</p>
                    <p>Ere long I perceived a group of the servants passing up the road towards the
                        kitchen wing. Mr. Linton was not far behind; he opened the <pb n="17"/>gate
                        himself, and sauntered slowly up, probably enjoying the lovely afternoon
                        that breathed as soft as summer.</p>
                    <p>"Now he is here," I exclaimed. "For Heaven's sake, hurry down! You'll not
                        meet any one on the front stairs. Do be quick; and stay among the trees till
                        he is fairly in."</p>
                    <p>"I must go, Cathy," said Heathcliff, seeking to extricate himself from his
                        companion's arms. "But, if I live, I'll see you again before you are asleep.
                        I wont stray five yards from your window."</p>
                    <p>"You must not go!" she answered, holding him as firmly as her strength
                        allowed. "You shall not, I tell you."</p>
                    <p>"For one hour," he pleaded, earnestly.</p>
                    <p>"Not for one minute," she replied.</p>
                    <p>"I <hi>must</hi>—Linton will be up immediately," persisted the alarmed
                        intruder.</p>
                    <p>He would have risen, and unfixed her fingers by the act—she clung fast
                        gasping; there was mad resolution in her face.</p>
                    <p><pb n="18"/>"No!" she shrieked. "Oh, don't, don't go. It is the last time!
                        Edgar will not hurt us. Heathcliff, I shall die! I shall die!"</p>
                    <p>"Damn the fool. There he is," cried Heathcliff, sinking back into his seat.
                        "Hush, my darling! Hush, hush, Catherine! I'll stay. If he shot me so, I'd
                        expire with a blessing on my lips."</p>
                    <p>And there they were fast again. I heard my master mounting the stairs—the
                        cold sweat ran from my forehead; I was horrified.</p>
                    <p>"Are you going to listen to her ravings?" I said, passionately. "She does not
                        know what she says. Will you ruin her, because she has not wit to help
                        herself? Get up! you could be free instantly. That is the most diabolical
                        deed that ever you did. We are all done for—master, mistress, and
                        servant."</p>
                    <p>I wrung my hands, and cried out; and Mr. Linton hastened his step at the
                        noise. In the midst of my agitation, I was sincerely glad to <pb n="19"/>observe that Catherine's arms had fallen relaxed, and her head hung
                        down.</p>
                    <p>"She's fainted or dead," I thought, "so much the better. Far better that she
                        should be dead, than lingering a burden, and a misery-maker to all about
                        her."</p>
                    <p>Edgar sprang to his unbidden guest, blanched with astonishment and rage. What
                        he meant to do, I cannot tell; however, the other stopped all
                        demonstrations, at once, by placing the lifeless-looking form in his
                        arms.</p>
                    <p>"Look there," he said, "unless you be a fiend, help her first—then you shall
                        speak to me!"</p>
                    <p>He walked into the parlour, and sat down. Mr. Linton summoned me, and, with
                        great difficulty, and after resorting to many means, we managed to restore
                        her to sensation; but she was all bewildered; she sighed, and moaned, and
                        knew nobody. Edgar, in his anxiety for her, forgot her hated friend. I did
                        not. I went, at the earliest opportunity, and <pb n="20"/>besought him to
                        depart, affirming that Catherine was better, and he should hear from me in
                        the morning, how she passed the night.</p>
                    <p>"I shall not refuse to go out of doors," he answered; "but I shall stay in
                        the garden; and, Nelly, mind you keep your word to-morrow. I shall be under
                        those larch trees, mind! or I pay another visit, whether Linton be in or
                        not."</p>
                    <p>He sent a rapid glance through the half-open door of the chamber, and
                        ascertaining that what I stated was apparently true, delivered the house of
                        his luckless presence.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="21"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER II.</head>

                    <p>About twelve o'clock, that night, was born the Catherine you saw at Wuthering
                        Heights, a puny, seven months' child; and two hours after the mother died,
                        having never recovered sufficient consciousness to miss Heathcliff, or know
                        Edgar.</p>
                    <p>The latter's distraction at his bereavement is a subject too painful to be
                        dwelt on; its after effects showed how deep the sorrow sunk.</p>
                    <p>A great addition, in my eyes, was his being left without an heir. I bemoaned
                        that, as I <pb n="22"/>gazed on the feeble orphan; and I mentally abused old
                        Linton for, what was only natural partiality, the securing his estate to his
                        own daughter, instead of his son's.</p>
                    <p>An unwelcomed infant it was, poor thing! It might have wailed out of life,
                        and nobody cared a morsel, during those first hours of existence. We
                        redeemed the neglect afterwards; but it's beginning was as friendless as its
                        end is likely to be.</p>
                    <p>Next morning—bright and cheerful out of doors—stole softened in through the
                        blinds of the silent room, and suffused the couch and its occupant with a
                        mellow, tender glow.</p>
                    <p>Edgar Linton had his head laid on the pillow, and his eyes shut. His young
                        and fair features were almost as death-like as those of the form beside him,
                        and almost as fixed; but <hi>his</hi> was the hush of exhausted anguish, and
                            <hi>her's</hi> of perfect peace. Her brow smooth, her lids closed, her
                        lips wearing the expression of a smile. No angel in heaven could be more <pb n="23"/>beautiful than she appeared; and I partook of the infinite calm
                        in which she lay. My mind was never in a holier frame, than while I gazed on
                        that untroubled image of Divine rest. I instinctively echoed the words she
                        had uttered, a few hours before. "Incomparably beyond, and above us all!
                        Whether still on earth or now in Heaven her spirit is at home with God!"</p>
                    <p>I don't know if it be a peculiarity in me, but I am seldom otherwise than
                        happy while watching in the chamber of death, should no frenzied or
                        despairing mourner share the duty with me. I see a repose that neither earth
                        nor hell can break; and I feel an assurance of the endless and shadowless
                        hereafter—the Eternity they have entered—where life is boundless in its
                        duration, and love in its sympathy, and joy in its fulness. I noticed on
                        that occasion how much selfishness there is even in a love like Mr.
                        Linton's, when he so regretted Catherine's blessed release!</p>
                    <p><pb n="24"/>To be sure one might have doubted, after the wayward and
                        impatient existence she had led, whether she merited a haven of peace at
                        last. One might doubt in seasons of cold reflection, but not then, in the
                        presence of her corpse. It asserted its own tranquillity, which seemed a
                        pledge of equal quiet to its former inhabitants.</p>
                    <p>"Do you believe such people <hi>are</hi> happy in the other world, sir? I'd
                        give a great deal to know."</p>
                    <p>I declined answering Mrs. Dean's question, which struck me as something
                        heterodox. She proceeded:</p>
                    <p>"Retracing the course of Catherine Linton I fear we have no right to think
                        she is: but we'll leave her with her Maker."</p>
                    <p>The master looked asleep, and I ventured soon after sunrise to quit the room
                        and steal out to the pure, refreshing air. The servants thought me gone to
                        shake off the drowsiness of my protracted watch; in reality my chief motive
                            <pb n="25"/>motive was seeing Mr. Heathcliff. If he had remained among
                        the larches all night he would have heard nothing of the stir at the Grange,
                        unless, perhaps, he might catch the gallop of the messenger going to
                        Gimmerton. If he had come nearer he would probably be aware, from the lights
                        flitting to and fro, and the opening and shutting of the outer doors, that
                        all was not right within.</p>
                    <p>I wished yet feared to find him. I felt the terrible news must be told, and I
                        longed to get it over, but <hi>how</hi> to do it I did not know.</p>
                    <p>He was there—at least a few yards further in the park; leant against an old
                        ash tree, his hat off, and his hair soaked with the dew that had gathered on
                        the budded branches, and fell pattering round him. He had been standing a
                        long time in that position, for I saw a pair of ousels passing and
                        repassing, scarcely three feet from him, busy in building their nest, and
                        regarding his proximity no more than that <pb n="26"/>of a piece of timber.
                        They flew off at my approach, and he raised his eyes and spoke:</p>
                    <p>"She's dead!" he said; "I've not waited for you to learn that. Put your
                        handkerchief away—don't snivel before me. Damn you all! she wants none of
                            <hi>your</hi> tears!"</p>
                    <p>I was weeping as much for him as her: we do sometimes pity creatures that
                        have none of the feeling either for themselves or others; and when I first
                        looked into his face I perceived that he had got intelligence of the
                        catastrophe; and a foolish notion struck me that his heart was quelled, and
                        he prayed, because his lips moved, and his gaze was bent on the ground.</p>
                    <p>"Yes, she's dead!" I answered, checking my sobs, and drying my cheeks. "Gone
                        to to heaven, I hope, where we may, everyone, join her, if we take due
                        warning, and leave our evil ways to follow good!"</p>
                    <p>"Did <hi>she</hi> take due warning, then?" asked Heathcliff, attempting a
                        sneer. "Did she die <pb n="27"/>like a saint? Come, give me a true history
                        of the event. How did—"</p>
                    <p>He endeavoured to pronounce the name, but could not manage it; and
                        compressing his mouth, he held a silent combat with his inward agony,
                        defying, meanwhile, my sympathy with an unflinching, ferocious stare.</p>
                    <p>"How did she die?" he resumed, at last—fain, notwithstanding his hardihood,
                        to have a support behind him, for, after the struggle, he trembled, in spite
                        of himself, to his very finger-ends.</p>
                    <p>"Poor wretch!" I thought; "you have a heart and nerves the same as your
                        brother men! Why should you be so anxious to conceal them? Your pride cannot
                        blind God! You tempt him to wring them, till he forces a cry of
                        humiliation!"</p>
                    <p>"Quietly as a lamb!" I answered, aloud. "She drew a sigh, and stretched
                        herself, like a child reviving, and sinking again to sleep; <pb n="28"/>and
                        five minutes after I felt one little pulse at her heart, and nothing
                        more!"</p>
                    <p>"And—and did she ever mention me?" he asked, hesitating, as if he dreaded the
                        answer to his question would introduce details that he could not bear to
                        hear.</p>
                    <p>"Her senses never returned—she recognised nobody from the time you left her,"
                        I said. "She lies with a sweet smile on her face; and her latest ideas
                        wandered back to pleasant early days. Her life closed in a gentle dream—may
                        she wake as kindly in the other world!"</p>
                    <p>"May she wake in torment?" he cried, with frightful vehemence, stamping his
                        foot, and groaning in a sudden paroxysm of ungovernable passion. "Why, she's
                        a liar to the end! Where is she? Not <hi>there</hi>—not in heaven—not
                        perished—where? Oh! you said you cared nothing for my sufferings! And I pray
                        one prayer—I repeat it till my tongue stiffens—Catherine Earnshaw, may you
                        not rest, as long as I am living! You said I killed you— <pb n="29"/>haunt
                        me then! The murdered <hi>do</hi> haunt their murderers. I believe—I know
                        that ghosts <hi>have</hi> wandered on earth. Be with me always—take any
                        form—drive me mad! only <hi>do</hi> not leave me in this abyss, where I
                        cannot find you! Oh, God! it is unutterable! I <hi>cannot</hi> live without
                        my life! I <hi>cannot</hi> live without my soul!"</p>
                    <p>He dashed his head against the knotted trunk; and, lifting up his eyes,
                        howled, not like a man, but like a savage beast getting goaded to death with
                        knives and spears.</p>
                    <p>I observed several splashes of blood about the bark of the tree, and his band
                        and forehead were both stained; probably the scene I witnessed was a
                        repetition of others acted during the night. It hardly moved my
                        compassion—it appalled me; still I felt reluctant to quit him so. But the
                        moment he recollected himself enough to notice me watching, he thundered a
                        command for me to go, and I obeyed. He was beyond my skill to quiet or
                        console!</p>
                    <p><pb n="30"/>Mrs. Linton's funeral was appointed to take place on the Friday
                        following her decease; and till then her coffin remained uncovered, and
                        strewn with flowers and scented leaves, in the great drawing-room. Linton
                        spent his days and nights there, a sleepless guardian; and—a circumstance
                        concealed from all but me—Heathcliff spent his nights, at least, outside,
                        equally a stranger to repose.</p>
                    <p>I held no communication with him; still I was conscious of his design to
                        enter, if he could; and on the Tuesday, a little after dark, when my master
                        from sheer fatigue, had been compelled to retire a couple of hours, I went
                        and opened one of the windows, moved by his perseverance to give him a
                        chance of bestowing on the fading image of his idol one final adieu.</p>
                    <p>He did not omit to avail himself of the opportunity, cautiously and briefly;
                        too cautiously to betray his presence by the slightest noise; indeed, I
                        shouldn't have discovered that <pb n="31"/>he had been there, except for the
                        disarrangement of the drapery about the corpse's face, and for observing on
                        the floor a curl of light hair, fastened with a silver thread, which, on
                        examination, I ascertained to have been taken from a locket hung round
                        Catherine's neck. Heathcliff had opened the trinket, and cast out its
                        contents, replacing them by a black lock of his own. I twisted the two, and
                        enclosed them together.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Earnshaw was, of course, invited to attend the remains of his sister to
                        the grave; and he sent no excuse, but he never came; so that besides her
                        husband, the mourners were wholly composed of tenants and servants. Isabella
                        was not asked.</p>
                    <p>The place of Catherine's interment, to the surprise of the villagers, was
                        neither in the chapel, under the carved monument of the Lintons', nor yet by
                        the tombs of her own relations, outside. It was dug on a green slope, in a
                        corner of the kirkyard, where the <pb n="32"/>wall is so low that heath and
                        bilberry plants have climbed over it from the moor; and peat mould almost
                        buries it. Her husband lies in the same spot, now; and they have each a
                        simple headstone, above, and a plain grey block at their feet, to mark the
                        graves.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="33"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER III.</head>

                    <p>That Friday made the last of our fine days, for a month. In the evening, the
                        weather broke; the wind shifted from south to north-east, and brought rain,
                        first, and then sleet, and snow.</p>
                    <p>On the morrow one could hardly imagine that there had been three weeks of
                        summer: the primroses and crocuses were hidden under wintry drifts: the
                        larks were silent, the young leaves of the early trees smitten and
                        blackened—And dreary, and chill, and dismal that <pb n="34"/>morrow did
                        creep over! My master kept his room—I took possession of the lonely parlour,
                        converting it into a nursery; and there I was sitting, with the moaning doll
                        of a child laid on my knee; rocking it to and fro, and watching, meanwhile
                        the still driving flakes build up the uncurtained window, when the door
                        opened, and some person entered out of breath, and laughing!"</p>
                    <p>My anger was greater than my astonishment for a minute; I supposed it one of
                        the maids, and I cried,</p>
                    <p>"Have done! How dare you show your giddiness, here? What would Mr. Linton say
                        if he heard you?"</p>
                    <p>"Excuse me!" answered a familiar voice, "but I know Edgar is in bed, and I
                        cannot stop myself."</p>
                    <p>With that, the speaker came forward to the fire, panting and holding her
                        hand, to her side.</p>
                    <p>"I have run the whole way from Wuthering Heights!" she continued, after a
                        pause. " <pb n="35"/>Except where I've flown—I couldn't count the number of
                        falls I've had—Oh, I'm aching all over! Don't be alarmed—There shall be an
                        explanation as soon as I can give it—only just have the goodness to step
                        out, and order the carriage to take me on to Gimmerton, and tell a servant
                        to seek up a few clothes in my wardrobe."</p>
                    <p>The intruder was Mrs. Heathcliff—she certainly seemed in no laughing
                        predicament: her hair streamed on her shoulders dripping with snow and
                        water; she was dressed in the girlish dress she commonly wore, befitting her
                        age more than her position; a low frock, with short sleeves, and nothing on
                        either head, or neck. The frock was of light silk, and clung to her with
                        wet; and her feet were protected merely by thin slippers; add to this a deep
                        cut under one ear, which only the cold prevented from bleeding profusely, a
                        white face scratched and bruised, and a frame hardly able to support itself
                        through fatigue, and you <pb n="36"/>may fancy my first fright was not much
                        allayed when I had leisure to examine her.</p>
                    <p>"My dear young lady," I exclaimed "I'll stir no-where, and hear nothing, till
                        you have removed every article of your clothes, and put on dry things; and
                        certainly you shall not go to Gimmerton to-night; so it is needless to order
                        the carriage."</p>
                    <p>"Certainly, I shall;" she said; "walking or riding—yet I've no objection to
                        dress myself decently; and—ah, see how it flows down my neck now! the fire
                        does make it smart."</p>
                    <p>She insisted on my fulfilling her directions, before she would let me touch
                        her; and not till after the coachman had been instructed to get ready, and a
                        maid set to pack up some necessary attire, did I obtain her consent for
                        binding the wound, and helping to change her garments.</p>
                    <p>"Now Ellen," she said when my task was finished, and she was seated in an
                        easy chair on the hearth, with a cup of tea before her, <pb n="37"/>"You sit
                        down opposite me, and put poor Catherine's baby away—I don't like to see it!
                        You mustn't think I care little for Catherine, because I behaved so
                        foolishly on entering—I've cried too, bitterly—yes, more than any one else
                        has reason to cry—we parted unreconciled, you remember, and I shan't forgive
                        myself. But for all that, I was not going to sympathise with him—the brute
                        beast! O give me the poker! This is the last thing of his I have about me,"
                        she slipped the gold ring from her third finger, and threw it on the floor.
                        "I'll smash it!" she continued striking with childish spite. "And then I'll
                        burn it!" and she took and dropped the misused article among the coals.
                        "There! he shall buy another, if he gets me back again. He'd be capable of
                        coming to seek me, to tease Edgar—I dare not stay, lest that notion should
                        possess his wicked head! And besides, Edgar has not been kind, has he? And I
                        won't come suing for his assistance; nor will I bring him into <pb n="38"/>more trouble—Necessity compelled me to seek shelter here; though if I had
                        not learnt he was out of the way, I'd have halted at the kitchen, washed my
                        face, warmed myself, got you to bring what I wanted, and departed again to
                        anywhere out of the reach of my accursed—of that incarnate goblin! Ah, he
                        was in such a fury—if he had caught me! It's a pity, Earnshaw is not his
                        match in strength—I wouldn't have run, till I'd seen him all but demolished,
                        had Hindley been able to do it!"</p>
                    <p>"Well, don't talk so fast, Miss!" I interrupted, "you'll disorder the
                        handkerchief I have tied round your face, and make the cut bleed again—Drink
                        your tea, and take breath and give over laughing—Laughter is sadly out of
                        place under this roof, and in your condition!"</p>
                    <p>"An undeniable truth," she replied, "Listen to that child! It maintains a
                        constant wail—send it out of my hearing, for an hour; I shan't stay any
                        longer."</p>
                    <p><pb n="39"/>I rang the bell, and committed it to a servant's care; and then I
                        inquired what had urged her to escape from Wuthering Heights in such an
                        unlikely plight—and where she meant to go, as she refused remaining with
                        us?"</p>
                    <p>"I ought, and I wish to remain;" answered she; "to cheer Edgar, and take care
                        of the baby, for two things, and because the Grange is my right home—but I
                        tell you, he wouldn't let me! Do you think he could bear to see me grow fat,
                        and merry; and could bear to think that we were tranquil, and not resolve on
                        poisoning our comfort? Now, I have the satisfaction of being sure that he
                        detests me to the point of its annoying him seriously to have me within ear
                        shot, or eye-sight—I notice, when I enter his presence, the muscles of his
                        countenance are involuntarily distorted into an expression of hatred; partly
                        arising from his knowledge of the good causes I have <pb n="40"/>to feel
                        that sentiment for him, and partly from original aversion—It is strong
                        enough to make me feel pretty certain that he would not chase me over
                        England, supposing I contrived a clear escape; and therefore I must get
                        quite away. I've recovered from my first desire to be killed by him. I'd
                        rather he'd kill himself! He has extinguished my love effectually, and so
                        I'm at my ease. I can recollect yet how I loved him; and can dimly imagine
                        that I could still be loving him, if—No, no! Even, if he had doted on me,
                        the devilish nature would have revealed its existence, somehow. Catherine
                        had an awfully perverted taste to esteem him so dearly, knowing him so
                        well—Monster! would that he could be blotted out of creation, and out of my
                        memory!"</p>
                    <p>"Hush, hush! He's a human being," I said. "Be more charitable; there are
                        worse men than he is yet!"</p>
                    <p>"He's not a human being:" she retorted; <pb n="41"/>"and he has no claim on
                        my charity—I gave him my heart, and he took and pinched it to death; and
                        flung it back to me—people feel with their hearts, Ellen, and since he has
                        destroyed mine, I have not power to feel for him, and I would not, though he
                        groaned from this, to his dying day; and wept tears of blood for Catherine!
                        No, indeed, indeed, I wouldn't!" And here Isabella began to cry; but,
                        immediately dashing the water from her lashes, she recommenced.</p>
                    <p>"You asked, what has driven me to flight at last? I was compelled to attempt
                        it, because, I had succeeded in rousing his rage a pitch above his
                        malignity. Pulling out the nerves with red hot pincers, requires more
                        coolness than knocking on the head. He was worked up to forget the fiendish
                        prudence he boasted of, and proceeding to murderous violence: I experienced
                        pleasure in being able to exasperate him: the sense of pleasure woke my
                        instinct of self-preservation; so, I fairly broke <pb n="42"/>free, and if
                        ever I come into his hands again he is welcome to a signal revenge.</p>
                    <p>"Yesterday, you know, Mr. Earnshaw should have been at the funeral. He kept
                        himself sober, for the purpose—tolerably sober; not going to-bed mad, at six
                        o'clock and getting up drunk, at twelve. Consequently, he rose, in suicidal
                        low spirits; as fit for the church, as for a dance; and instead, he sat down
                        by the fire, and swallowed gin or brandy by tumblerfuls.</p>
                    <p>"Heathcliff—I shudder to name him! has been a stranger in the house from last
                        Sunday till to-day—Whether the angels have fed him, or his kin beneath, I
                        cannot tell; but, he has not eaten a meal with us for nearly a week—He has
                        just come home at dawn, and gone up-stairs to his chamber; locking himself
                        in—as if anybody dreamt of coveting his company! There he has continued,
                        praying like a methodist; only the deity he implored is senseless dust and
                        ashes; and God, when addressed, was <pb n="43"/>curiously confounded with
                        his own black father! After concluding these precious orisons and they
                        lasted generally till he grew hoarse, and his voice was strangled in his
                        throat, he would be off again; always straight down to the Grange! I wonder
                        Edgar did not send for a constable, and give him into custody! For me,
                        grieved as I was about Catherine, it was impossible to avoid regarding this
                        season of deliverance from degrading oppression as a holiday.</p>
                    <p>"I recovered spirits sufficient to hear Joseph's eternal lectures without
                        weeping; and to move up and down the house, less with the foot of a
                        frightened thief, than formerly. You wouldn't think that I should cry at
                        anything Joseph could say, but he and Hareton are detestable companions. I'd
                        rather sit with Hindley, and hear his awful talk, than with 't' little
                        maister,' and his staunch supporter, that odious old man!</p>
                    <p>"When Heathcliff is in, I'm often obliged to <pb n="44"/>seek the kitchen,
                        and their society, or starve among the damp, uninhabited chambers; when he
                        is not, as was the case this week, I establish a table, and chair, at one
                        corner of the house fire, and never mind how Mr. Earnshaw may occupy
                        himself; and he does not interfere with my arrangements: he is quieter, now,
                        than he used to be, if no one provokes him; more sullen and depressed, and
                        less furious. Joseph affirms he's sure he's an altered man; that the Lord
                        has touched his heart, and he is saved "so as by fire." I'm puzzled to
                        detect signs of the favourable change, but it is not my business.</p>
                    <p>"Yester-evening, I sat in my nook reading some old books, till late on
                        towards twelve. It seemed so dismal to go up-stairs, with the wild snow
                        blowing outside, and my thoughts continually reverting to the kirkyard, and
                        the new made grave! I dared hardly lift my eyes from the page before me,
                        that melancholy scene so instantly usurped its place.</p>
                    <p><pb n="45"/>"Hindley sat opposite; his head leant on his hand, perhaps
                        meditating on the same subject. He had ceased drinking at a point below
                        irrationality, and had neither stirred, nor spoken during two or three
                        hours. There was no sound through the house, but the moaning wind which
                        shook the windows every now and then: the faint crackling of the coals; and
                        the click of my snuffers as I removed at intervals the long wick of the
                        candle. Hareton and Joseph were probably fast asleep in bed. It was very,
                        very sad, and while I read, I sighed, for it seemed as if all joy had
                        vanished from the world, never to be restored.</p>
                    <p>The doleful silence was broken, at length, by the sound of the kitchen
                        latch—Heathcliff had returned from his watch earlier than usual, owing, I
                        suppose, to the sudden storm.</p>
                    <p>"That entrance was fastened; and we heard him coming round to get in by the
                        other. I rose with an irrepressible expression of what I felt on my lips,
                        which induced my companion, <pb n="46"/>who had been staring towards the
                        door, to turn and look at me.</p>
                    <p>"I'll keep him out five minutes." He exclaimed. "You won't object?"</p>
                    <p>"No, you may keep him out the whole night, for me," I answered. "Do! put the
                        key in the lock, and draw the bolts."</p>
                    <p>Earnshaw accomplished this, ere his guest reached the front; he then came,
                        and brought his chair to the other side of my table; leaning over it, and
                        searching in my eyes, a sympathy with the burning hate that gleamed from
                        his: as he both looked, and felt like an assassin, he couldn't exactly find
                        that; but he discovered enough to encourage him to speak.</p>
                    <p>"You, and I," he said, "have each a great debt to settle with the man out
                        yonder! If we were neither of us cowards, we might combine to discharge it.
                        Are you as soft as your brother? Are you willing to endure to the last, and
                        not once attempt a repayment?"</p>
                    <p>"I'm weary of enduring now;" I replied, <pb n="47"/>"and I'd be glad of a
                        retaliation that wouldn't recoil on myself; but treachery, and violence, are
                        spears pointed at both ends—they wound those who resort to them, worse than
                        their enemies."</p>
                    <p>"Treachery and violence are a just return for treachery and violence!" cried
                        Hindley. "Mrs. Heathcliff, I'll ask you to do nothing, but sit still, and be
                        dumb—Tell me now, can you? I'm sure you would have as much pleasure as I, in
                        witnessing the conclusion of the fiend's existence, he'll be <hi>your</hi>
                        death unless you overreach him—and he'll be <hi>my</hi> ruin—Damn the
                        hellish villain! He knocks at the door, as if he were master here, already!
                        Promise to hold your tongue, and before that clock strikes—it wants three
                        minutes of one—you're a free woman!"</p>
                    <p>He took the implements which I described to you in my letter from his breast,
                        and would have turned down the candle—I snatched it away, however, and
                        seized his arm.</p>
                    <p><pb n="48"/>"I'll not hold my tongue!" I said, "You mustn't touch him. . .Let
                        the door remain shut and be quiet!"</p>
                    <p>"No! I've formed my resolution, and by God, I'll execute it!" cried the
                        desperate being, "I'll do you a kindness, in spite of yourself, and Hareton
                        justice! And you needn't trouble your head to screen me, Catherine is
                        gone—Nobody alive would regret me, or be ashamed though I cut my throat,
                        this minute—and it's time to make an end!"</p>
                    <p>I might as well have struggled with a bear; or reasoned with a lunatic. The
                        only resource left me was to run to a lattice, and warn his intended victim
                        of the fate which awaited him.</p>
                    <p>"You'd better seek shelter somewhere else to-night!" I exclaimed in a rather
                        triumphant tone. "Mr. Earnshaw has a mind to shoot you, if you persist in
                        endeavouring to enter."</p>
                    <p>"You'd better open the door, you—" he answered, addressing me by some elegant
                        term that I don't care to repeat.</p>
                    <p><pb n="49"/>"I shall not meddle in the matter," I retorted again, "Come in,
                        and get shot, if you please! I've done my duty."</p>
                    <p>With that I shut the window, and returned to my place by the fire; having too
                        small a stock of hypocrisy at my command to pretend any anxiety for the
                        danger that menaced him.</p>
                    <p>Earnshaw swore passionately at me; affirming that I loved the villain yet:
                        and calling me all sorts of names for the base spirit I evinced. And I, in
                        my secret heart, (and conscience never reproached me) thought what a
                        blessing it would be for <hi>him</hi>, should Heathcliff put him out of
                        misery: and what a blessing for <hi>me</hi>, should he send Heathcliff to
                        his right abode! As I sat nursing these reflections, the casement behind me,
                        was banged on to the floor by a blow from the latter individual; and his
                        black countenance looked blightingly through. The stanchions stood too close
                        to suffer his shoulders to follow; and I smiled, exulting in my fancied
                        security. His hair and <pb n="50"/>clothes were whitened with snow, and his
                        sharp cannibal teeth, revealed by cold and wrath, gleamed through the
                        dark.</p>
                    <p>"Isabella let me in, or I'll make you repent!" he 'girned', as Joseph calls
                        it.</p>
                    <p>"I cannot commit murder;" I replied "Mr. Hindley stands sentinel with a
                        knife, and loaded pistol."</p>
                    <p>"Let me in by the kitchen door!" he said.</p>
                    <p>"Hindley will be there before me," I answered. And that's a poor love of
                        yours, that cannot bear a shower of snow! We were left at peace in our beds,
                        as long as the summer moon shone, but the moment a blast of winter returns,
                        you must run for shelter! Heathcliff, if I were you, I'd go stretch myself
                        over her grave, and die like a faithful dog. . .The world is surely not
                        worth living in now, is it? You had distinctly impressed on me, the idea
                        that Catherine was the whole joy of your life—I can't imagine how you think
                        of surviving her loss."</p>
                    <p><pb n="51"/>"He's there. . .is he?" exclaimed my companion, rushing to the
                        gap. "If I can get my arm out I can hit him!"</p>
                    <p>"I'm afraid Ellen, you'll set me down, as really wicked—but you don't know
                        all, so don't judge! I wouldn't have aided or abetted an attempt on even
                            <hi>his</hi> life, for anything—Wish that he were dead, I must; and
                        therefore, I was fearfully disappointed, and unnerved by terror for the
                        consequences of my taunting speech when he flung himself on Earnshaw's
                        weapon and wrenched it from his grasp.</p>
                    <p>The charge exploded, and the knife, in springing back, closed into its
                        owner's wrist. Heathcliff pulled it away by main force, slitting up the
                        flesh as it passed on, and thrust it dripping into his pocket. He then took
                        a stone, struck down the division between two windows and sprung in. His
                        adversary had fallen senseless with excessive pain, and the flow of blood
                        that gushed from an artery, or a large vein.</p>
                    <p><pb n="52"/>The ruffian kicked and trampled on him, and dashed his head
                        repeatedly against the flags; holding me with one hand, meantime, to prevent
                        me summoning Joseph.</p>
                    <p>He exerted preter-human self denial in abstaining from finishing him,
                        completely; but getting out of breath, he finally desisted, and dragged the
                        apparently inanimate body onto the settle.</p>
                    <p>There he tore off the sleeve of Earnshaw's coat, and bound up the wound with
                        brutal roughness, spitting and cursing, during the operation, as
                        energetically as he had kicked before.</p>
                    <p>Being at liberty, I lost no time in seeking the old servant; who, having
                        gathered by degrees the purport of my hasty tale, hurried below, gasping, as
                        he descended the steps two at once.</p>
                    <p>"Whet is thur tuh do, nah? whet is thur tuh do, nah?"</p>
                    <p>"There's this to do," thundered Heathcliff, <pb n="53"/>"that your master's
                        mad; and should he last another month, I'll have him to an asylum. And how
                        the devil did you come to fasten me out, you toothless hound? Don't stand
                        muttering and mumbling there. Come, I'm not going to nurse him. Wash that
                        stuff away: and mind the sparks of your candle—it is more than half
                        brandy!"</p>
                    <p>"Und soa, yah been murthering on him?" exclaimed Joseph, lifting his hands
                        and eyes in horror. "If iver Aw seed a seeght loike this! May the Lord—"</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff gave him a push onto his knees, in the middle of the blood; and
                        flung a towel to him; but instead of proceeding to dry it up, he joined his
                        hands, and began a prayer which excited my laughter from its odd
                        phraseology. I was in the condition of mind to be shocked at nothing; in
                        fact, I was as reckless as some malefactors show themselves at the foot of
                        the gallows.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, I forgot you," said the tyrant, "you <pb n="54"/>shall do that. Down
                        with you. And you conspire with him against me, do you, viper? There, that
                        is work fit for you!"</p>
                    <p>He shook me till my teeth rattled, and pitched me beside Joseph, who steadily
                        concluded his supplications, and then rose, vowing he would set off for the
                        Grange directly. Mr. Linton was a magistrate, and though he had fifty wives
                        dead, he should inquire into this.</p>
                    <p>He was so obstinate in his resolution that Heathcliff deemed it expedient to
                        compel, from my lips, a recapitulation of what had taken place; standing
                        over me, heaving with malevolence, as I reluctantly delivered the account in
                        answer to his questions.</p>
                    <p>It required a great deal of labour to satisfy the old man that he was not the
                        aggressor; especially with my hardly wrung replies. However, Mr. Earnshaw
                        soon convinced him that he was alive still; he hastened to administer a dose
                        of spirits, and by their succour his <pb n="55"/>master presently regained
                        motion and consciousness.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff, aware that he was ignorant of the treatment received while
                        insensible, called him deliriously intoxicated; and said he should not
                        notice his atrocious conduct further; but advised him to get to bed. To my
                        joy, he left us after giving this judicious counsel, and Hindley stretched
                        himself on the hearth-stone. I departed to my own room, marvelling that I
                        had escaped so easily.</p>
                    <p>This morning, when I came down, about half-an-hour before noon, Mr. Earnshaw
                        was sitting by the fire, deadly sick; his evil genius almost as guant and
                        ghastly, leant against the chimney. Neither appeared inclined to dine; and
                        having waited till all was cold on the table, I commenced alone.</p>
                    <p>Nothing hindered me from eating heartily; and I experienced a certain sense
                        of satisfaction and superiority, as, at intervals, I cast a <pb n="56"/>look
                        towards my silent companions, and felt the comfort of a quiet conscience
                        within me.</p>
                    <p>After I had done, I ventured on the unusual liberty of drawing near the fire;
                        going round Earnshaw's seat, and kneeling in the corner beside him.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff did not glance my way, and I gazed up, and contemplated his
                        features, almost as confidently as if they had been turned to stone. His
                        forehead, that I once thought so manly, and that I now think so diabolical,
                        was shaded with a heavy cloud; his basilisk eyes were nearly quenched by
                        sleeplessness—and weeping, perhaps, for the lashes were wet then: his lips
                        devoid of their ferocious sneer, and sealed in an expression of unspeakable
                        sadness. Had it been another,, I would have covered my face, in the presence
                        of such grief. In <hi>his</hi> case, I was gratified: and ignoble as it
                        seems to insult a fallen enemy, I couldn't miss this chance of sticking in a
                        dart; his weakness <pb n="57"/>was the only time when I could taste the
                        delight of paying wrong for wrong.</p>
                    <p>"Fie, fie, Miss!" I interrupted. "One might suppose you had never opened a
                        Bible in your life. If God afflict your enemies, surely that ought to
                        suffice you. It is both mean and presumptuous to add your torture to
                        his!"</p>
                    <p>"In general, I'll allow that it would be, Ellen," she continued. "But what
                        misery laid on Heathcliff could content me, unless I have a hand in it? I'd
                        rather he suffered <hi>less</hi>, if I might cause his sufferings, and he
                        might <hi>know</hi> that I was the cause. Oh, I owe him so much. On only one
                        condition can I hope to forgive him. It is, if I may take an eye for an eye,
                        a tooth for a tooth, for every wrench of agony, return a wrench, reduce him
                        to my level. As he was the first to injure, make him the first to implore
                        pardon; and then—why then, Ellen, I might show you some generosity. But it
                        is utterly impossible I can <pb n="58"/>ever be revenged, and therefore I
                        cannot forgive him. Hindley wanted some water, and I handed him a glass, and
                        asked him how he was."</p>
                    <p>"Not as ill as I wish," he replied. "But leaving out my arm, every inch of me
                        is as sore as if I had been fighting with a legion of imps!"</p>
                    <p>"Yes, no wonder," was my next remark. "Catherine used to boast that she stood
                        between you and bodily harm—she meant that certain persons would not hurt
                        you, for fear of offending her. It's well people don't <hi>really</hi> rise
                        from their grave, or, last night, she might have witnessed a repulsive
                        scene! Are not you bruised, and cut over your chest and shoulders?"</p>
                    <p>"I can't say," he answered; "but what do you mean? Did he dare to strike me
                        when I was down?"</p>
                    <p>"He trampled on, and kicked you, and dashed you on the ground," I whispered.
                        "And his mouth watered to tear you with his <pb n="59"/>teeth; because, he's
                        only half a man—not so much."</p>
                    <p>Mr. Earnshaw looked up, like me, to the countenance of our mutual foe; who,
                        absorbed in his anguish, seemed insensible to anything around him; the
                        longer he stood, the plainer his reflections revealed their blackness
                        through his features.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, if God would but give me strength to strangle him in my last agony, I'd
                        go to hell with joy," groaned the impatient man writhing to rise, and
                        sinking back in despair, convinced of his inadequacy for the struggle.</p>
                    <p>"Nay, it's enough that he has murdered one of you," I observed aloud. "At the
                        Grange, every one knows your sister would have been living now, had it not
                        been for Mr. Heathcliff. After all, it is preferable to be hated, than loved
                        by him. When I recollect how happy we were—how happy Catherine was before he
                        came—I'm fit to curse the day."</p>
                    <p>Most likely, Heathcliff noticed more the <pb n="60"/>truth of what was said,
                        than the spirit of the person who said it. His attention was roused, I saw,
                        for his eyes rained down tears among the ashes, and he drew his breath in
                        suffocating sighs.</p>
                    <p>I stared full at him, and laughed scornfully. The clouded windows of hell
                        flashed, a moment towards me; the fiend which usually looked out, however,
                        was so dimmed and drowned that I did not fear to hazard another sound of
                        derision.</p>
                    <p>"Get up, and begone out of my sight," said the mourner.</p>
                    <p>I guessed he uttered those words, at least, though his voice was hardly
                        intelligible.</p>
                    <p>"I beg your pardon," I replied. "But I loved Catherine too; and her brother
                        requires attendance which, for her sake, I shall supply. Now that she's
                        dead, I see her in Hindley; Hindley has exactly her eyes, if you had not
                        tried to gouge them out, and made them black and red, and her—"</p>
                    <p><pb n="61"/>"Get up, wretched idiot, before I stamp you to death!" he cried,
                        making a movement that caused me to make one also."</p>
                    <p>"But then," I continued, holding myself ready to flee; "if poor Catherine had
                        trusted you, and assumed the ridiculous, contemptible, degrading title of
                        Mrs. Heathcliff, she would soon have presented a similar picture!
                            <hi>She</hi> wouldn't have borne your abominable behaviour quietly; her
                        detestation and disgust must have found voice."</p>
                    <p>The back of the settle, and Earnshaw's person interposed between me and him;
                        so instead of endeavouring to reach me, he snatched a dinner knife from the
                        table, and flung it at my head. It struck beneath my ear, and stopped the
                        sentence I was uttering; but pulling it out, I sprang to the door, and
                        delivered another which I hope went a little deeper than his missile.</p>
                    <p>The last glimpse I caught of him was a furious rush, on his part, checked by
                        the embrace <pb n="62"/>of his host; and both fell locked together on the
                        hearth.</p>
                    <p>In my flight through the kitchen I bid Joseph speed to his master; I knocked
                        over Hareton, who was hanging a litter of puppies from a chair back in the
                        doorway; and, blest as a soul escaped from purgatory, I bounded, leaped, and
                        flew down the steep road: then, quitting its windings, shot direct across
                        the moor, rolling over banks, and wading through marshes; precipitating
                        myself, in fact, towards the beacon light of the Grange. And far rather
                        would I be condemned to a perpetual dwelling in the infernal regions, than
                        even for one night abide beneath the roof of Wuthering Heights again."</p>
                    <p>Isabella ceased speaking, and took a drink of tea; then she rose, and bidding
                        me put on her bonnet, and a great shawl I had brought, and turning a deaf
                        ear to my entreaties for her to remain another hour, she stepped onto a
                        chair, kissed Edgar's and Catherine's <pb n="63"/>portraits, bestowed a
                        similar salute on me, and descended to the carriage accompanied by Fanny,
                        who yelped wild with joy at recovering her mistress, She was driven away,
                        never to revisit this neighbourhood; but a regular correspondence was
                        established between her and my master when things were more settled.</p>
                    <p>I believe her new abode was in the south, near London; there she had a son
                        born, a few months subsequent to her escape. He was christened Linton, and,
                        from the first, she reported him to be an ailing, peevish creature.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Heathcliff, meeting me one day in the village, inquired where she lived.
                        I refused to tell. He remarked that it was not of any moment, only she must
                        beware of coming to her brother; she should not be with him, if he had to
                        keep her himself.</p>
                    <p>Though I would give no information, he discovered, through some of the other
                        servants, both her place of residence, and the existence of the child. Still
                        he didn't molest her; for <pb n="64"/>which forbearance she might thank his
                        aversion, I suppose.</p>
                    <p>He often asked about the infant, when he saw me; and on hearing its name,
                        smiled grimly, and observed:</p>
                    <p>"They wish me to hate it too, do they?"</p>
                    <p>"I don't think they wish you to know any thing about it," I answered.</p>
                    <p>"But I'll have it," he said, "when I want it. They may reckon on that!"</p>
                    <p>Fortunately, its mother died before the time arrived, some thirteen years
                        after the decease of Catherine, when Linton was twelve, or a little
                        more.</p>
                    <p>On the day succeeding Isabella's unexpected visit, I had no opportunity of
                        speaking to my master: he shunned conversation, and was fit for discussing
                        nothing. When I could get him to listen, I saw it pleased him that his
                        sister had left her husband, whom he abhorred with an intensity which the
                        mildness of his nature would scarcely seem to allow. So deep and <pb n="65"/>sensitive was his aversion, that he refrained from going anywhere where he
                        was likely to see or hear of Heathcliff. Grief, and that together,
                        transformed him into a complete hermit: he threw up his office of
                        magistrate, ceased even to attend church, avoided the village on all
                        occasions, and spent a life of entire seclusion within the limits of his
                        park and grounds: only varied by solitary rambles on the moors, and visits
                        to the grave of his wife, mostly at evening, or early morning, before other
                        wanderers were abroad.</p>
                    <p>But he was too good to be thoroughly unhappy long. <hi>He</hi> didn't pray
                        for Catherine's soul to haunt him: Time brought resignation, and a
                        melancholy sweeter than common joy. He recalled her memory with ardent,
                        tender love, and hopeful aspiring to the better world, where, he doubted not
                        she was gone.</p>
                    <p>And he had earthly consolation and affections, also. For a few days, I said,
                        he seemed <pb n="66"/>regardless of the puny successor to the departed: that
                        coldness melted as fast as snow in April, and ere the tiny thing could
                        stammer a word or totter a step, it wielded a despot's sceptre in his
                        heart.</p>
                    <p>It was named Catherine, but he never called it the name in full, as he had
                        never called the first Catherine short, probably because Heathcliff, had a
                        habit of doing so. The little one was always Cathy, it formed to him a
                        distinction from the mother, and yet, a connection with her; and his
                        attachment sprang from its relation to her, far more than from its being his
                        own.</p>
                    <p>I used to draw a comparison between him, and Hindley Earnshaw and perplex
                        myself to explain satisfactorily, why their conduct was so opposite in
                        similar circumstances. They had both been fond husbands, and were both
                        attached to their children; and I could not see how they shouldn't both have
                        taken the same road, for good or evil. But, I thought in my <pb n="67"/>mind, Hindley with apparently the stronger head, has shown himself sadly
                        the worse and the weaker man. When his ship struck, the captain abandoned
                        his post; and the crew, instead of trying to save her, rushed into riot, and
                        confusion, leaving no hope for their luckless vessel. Linton, on the
                        contrary, displayed the true courage of a loyal and faithful soul: he
                        trusted God; and God comforted him. One hoped, and the other despaired: they
                        chose their own lots, and were righteously doomed to endure them.</p>
                    <p>But you'll not want to hear my moralizing, Mr. Lockwood: you'll judge as well
                        as I can, all these things; at least, you'll think you will and that's the
                        same.</p>
                    <p>The end of Earnshaw was what might have been expected: it followed fast on
                        his sister's, there was scarcely six months between them. We, at the Grange,
                        never got a very succinct account of his state preceding it; all that I did
                        learn, was on occasion of going to aid in <pb n="68"/>the preparations for
                        the funeral. Mr. Kenneth came to announce the event to my master.</p>
                    <p>"Well, Nelly;" said he, riding into the yard, one morning, too early not to
                        alarm me with an instant presentiment of bad news.</p>
                    <p>"It's yours, and my turn to go into mourning at present. Who's given us the
                        slip, now do you think?"</p>
                    <p>"Who?" I asked in a flurry.</p>
                    <p>"Why, guess!" he returned, dismounting, and slinging his bridle on a hook by
                        the door. "And nip up the corner of your apron; I'm certain you'll need
                        it."</p>
                    <p>"Not Mr. Heathcliff, surely? I exclaimed."</p>
                    <p>"What! would you have tears for him?" said the doctor. No, Heathcliff's a
                        tough young fellow; he looks blooming to-day—I've just seen him. He's
                        rapidly regaining flesh since he lost his better half.</p>
                    <p>"Who is it, then Mr. Kenneth?" I repeated impatiently.</p>
                    <p>"Hindley Earnshaw! Your old friend <pb n="69"/>Hindley—" he replied. "And my
                        wicked gossip; though he's been too wild for me this long while. There! I
                        said we should draw water—But cheer up! He died true to his character drunk
                        as a lord—Poor lad; I'm sorry too. One can't help missing an old companion;
                        though he had the worst tricks with him that ever man imagined; and has done
                        me many a rascally turn—He's barely twenty-seven, it seems; that's your own
                        age; who would have thought you were born in one year!"</p>
                    <p>I confess this blow was greater to me than the shock of Mrs. Linton's death:
                        ancient associations lingered round my heart; I sat down in the porch, and
                        wept as for a blood relation, desiring Kenneth to get another servant to
                        introduce him to the master.</p>
                    <p>I could not hinder myself from pondering on the question—"Had he had fair
                        play?" Whatever I did that idea would bother me: it was so tiresomely
                        pertinacious that I resolved on requesting leave to go to Wuthering Heights,
                            <pb n="70"/>and assist in the last duties to the dead. Mr. Linton was
                        extremely reluctant to consent, but I pleaded eloquently for the friendless
                        condition in which he lay; and I said my old master, and foster brother had
                        a claim on my services as strong as his own. Besides, I reminded him that
                        the child, Hareton, was his wife's nephew; and, in the absence of nearer
                        kin, he ought to act as its guardian; and he ought to and must inquire how
                        the property was left, and look over the concerns of his brother-in-law.</p>
                    <p>He was unfit for attending to such matters then, but he bid me speak to his
                        lawyer; and at length, permitted me to go. His lawyer had been Earnshaw's
                        also: I called at the village, and asked him to accompany me. He shook his
                        head, and advised that Heathcliff should be let alone; affirming, if the
                        truth were known, Hareton would be found little else than a beggar.</p>
                    <p>"His father died in debt;" he said, "the <pb n="71"/>whole property is
                        mortgaged, and the sole chance for the natural heir is to allow him an
                        opportunity of creating some interest in the creditor's heart, that he may
                        be inclined to deal leniently towards him."</p>
                    <p>When I reached the Heights, I explained that I had come to see everything
                        carried on decently, and Joseph, who appeared in sufficient distress,
                        expressed satisfaction at my presence. Mr. Heathcliff said he did not
                        perceive that I was wanted, but I might stay and order the arrangements for
                        the funeral, if I chose.</p>
                    <p>"Correctly," he remarked, "that fool's body should be buried at the
                        cross-roads, without ceremony of any kind—I happened to leave him ten
                        minutes, yesterday afternoon; and, in that interval, he fastened the two
                        doors of the house against me, and he has spent the night in drinking
                        himself to death deliberately! We broke in this morning, for we heard him
                        snorting like a horse; and there he was, laid over the settle—flaying and
                        scalping would not <pb n="72"/>have wakened him—I sent for Kenneth, and he
                        came; but not till the beast had changed into carrion—he was both dead and
                        cold, and stark; and so you'll allow, it was useless making more stir about
                        him!"</p>
                    <p>The old servant confirmed this statement, but muttered,</p>
                    <p>"Aw'd rayther he'd goan hisseln fur t'doctor! Aw sud uh taen tent uh
                        t'maister better nur him—un he warn't deead when Aw left, nowt uh
                        t'soart!"</p>
                    <p>I insisted on the funeral being respectable—Mr. Heathcliff said I might have
                        my own way there too; only, he desired me to remember, that the money for
                        the whole affair came out of his pocket.</p>
                    <p>He maintained a hard, careless deportment, indicative of neither joy nor
                        sorrow; if anything, it expressed a flinty gratification at a piece of
                        difficult work, successfully executed, I observed once, indeed, something
                        like exultation in his aspect. It was just when the <pb n="73"/>people were
                        bearing the coffin from the house; he had the hypocrisy to represent a
                        mourner; and previous to following with Hareton he lifted the unfortunate
                        child on to the table, and muttered with peculiar gusto,</p>
                    <p>"Now my bonny lad you are <hi>mine</hi>! And we'll see if one tree won't grow
                        as crooked as another, with the same wind to twist it!"</p>
                    <p>The unsuspecting thing was pleased at this speech; he played with
                        Heathcliff's whiskers, and stroked his cheek, but I divined its meaning and
                        observed tartly,</p>
                    <p>"That boy must go back with me to Thrushcross Grange, Sir—There is nothing in
                        the world less yours than he is!"</p>
                    <p>"Does Linton say so?" he demanded.</p>
                    <p>"Of course—he has ordered me to take him." I replied.</p>
                    <p>"Well," said the scoundrel, "We'll not argue the subject now; but I have a
                        fancy to try my hand at rearing a young one, so <pb n="74"/>intimate to your
                        master, that I must supply the place of this with my own, if he attempt to
                        remove it; I don't engage to let Hareton go, undisputed: but, I'll be pretty
                        sure to make the other come! remember to tell him."</p>
                    <p>This hint was enough to bind our hands. I repeated its substance, on my
                        return, and Edgar Linton, little interested at the commencement, spoke no
                        more of interfering. I'm not aware that he could have done it to any
                        purpose, had he been ever so willing.</p>
                    <p>The guest was now the master of Wuthering Heights: he held firm possession,
                        and proved to the attorney, who, in his turn, proved it to Mr. Linton, that
                        Earnshaw had mortgaged every yard of land he owned for cash to supply his
                        mania for gaming: and he, Heathcliff, was the mortgagee.</p>
                    <p>In that manner, Hareton, who should now be the first gentleman in the
                        neighbourhood, was reduced to a state of complete dependence <pb n="75"/>on
                        his father's inveterate enemy; and lives in his own house as a servant
                        deprived of the advantage of wages, and quite unable to right himself,
                        because of his friendlessness, and his ignorance that he has been
                        wronged.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="76"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER IV.</head>

                    <p>"The twelve years," continued Mrs. Dean, "following that dismal period, were
                        the happiest of my life: my greatest troubles, in their passage, rose from
                        our little lady's trifling illnesses which she had to experience in common
                        with all children, rich and poor.'</p>
                    <p>For the rest, after the first six months, she grew like a larch; and could
                        walk and talk too, in her own way, before the heath blossomed a second time
                        over Mrs. Linton's dust.</p>
                    <p>She was the most winning thing that ever <pb n="77"/>brought sunshine into a
                        desolate house—a real beauty in face—with the Earnshaws' handsome dark eyes,
                        but the Lintons' fair skin, and small features, and yellow curling hair. Her
                        spirit was high, though not rough, and qualified by a heart, sensitive and
                        lively to excess in its affections. That capacity for intense attachments
                        reminded me of her mother; still she did not resemble her; for she could be
                        soft and mild as a dove, and she had a gentle voice, and pensive expression:
                        her anger was never furious; her love never fierce; it was deep and
                        tender.</p>
                    <p>However, it must be acknowledged, she had faults to foil her gifts. A
                        propensity to be saucy was one; and a perverse will that indulged children
                        invariably acquire, whether they be good tempered or cross. If a servant
                        chanced to vex her, it was always: "I shall tell papa!" And if he reproved
                        her, even by a look, you would have thought it a <pb n="78"/>heartbreaking
                        business: I don't believe he ever did speak a harsh word to her.</p>
                    <p>He took her education entirely on himself, and made it an amusement:
                        fortunately, curiosity, aud a quick intellect urged her into an apt scholar;
                        she learnt rapidly and eagerly, and did honour to his teaching.</p>
                    <p>Till she reached the age of thirteen, she had not once been beyond the range
                        of the park by herself. Mr. Linton would take her with him, a mile or so
                        outside, on rare occasions; but he trusted her to no one else. Gimmerton was
                        an unsubstantial name in her ears; the chapel, the only building she had
                        approached, or entered, except her own home; Wuthering Heights and Mr.
                        Heathcliff did not exist for her; she was a perfect recluse; and,
                        apparently, perfectly contented. Sometimes, indeed, while surveying the
                        country from her nursery window, she would observe—</p>
                    <p>"Ellen, how long will it be before I can <pb n="79"/>walk to the top of those
                        hills? I wonder what lies on the other side—is it the sea?"</p>
                    <p>"No, Miss Cathy," I would answer, "it is hills again just like these."</p>
                    <p>"And what are those golden rocks like, when you stand under them?" she once
                        asked.</p>
                    <p>The abrupt descent of Penistone Craggs particularly attracted her notice,
                        especially when the setting sun shone on it, and the top-most Heights; and
                        the whole extent of landscape besides lay in shadow.</p>
                    <p>I explained that they were bare masses of stone, with hardly enough earth in
                        their clefts to nourish a stunted tree.</p>
                    <p>"And why are they bright so long after it is evening here?" she pursued.</p>
                    <p>"Because they are a great deal higher up than we are," replied I; "you could
                        not climb them, they are too high and steep. In winter the frost is always
                        there before it comes to us; and, deep into summer, I have found snow under
                        that black hollow on the north-east side!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="80"/>"Oh, you have been on them!" she cried, gleefully. "Then I can
                        go, too, when I am a woman. Has papa been, Ellen?"</p>
                    <p>"Papa would tell you, Miss," I answered, hastily, "that they are not worth
                        the trouble of visiting. The moors, where you ramble with him, are much
                        nicer; and Thrushcross park is the finest place in the world."</p>
                    <p>"But I know the park, and I don't know those," she murmured to herself. "And
                        I should delight to look round me, from the brow of that tallest point—my
                        little pony, Minny, shall take me sometime."</p>
                    <p>One of the maids mentioning the Fairy cave, quite turned her head with a
                        desire to fulfil this project; she teased Mr. Linton about it; and he
                        promised she should have the journey when she got older: but Miss Catherine
                        measured her age by months, and—</p>
                    <p>"Now, am I old enough to go to Penistone Craggs?" was the constant question
                        in her mouth.</p>
                    <p><pb n="81"/>The road thither wound close by Wuthering Heights. Edgar had not
                        the heart to pass it; so she received as constantly the answer.</p>
                    <p>"Not yet, love, not yet."</p>
                    <p>I said Mrs. Heathcliff lived above a dozen years after quitting her husband.
                        Her family were of a delicate constitution: she and Edgar both lacked the
                        ruddy health that you will generally meet in these parts. What her last
                        illness was, I am not certain; I conjecture, they died of the same thing, a
                        kind of fever, slow at its commencement, but incurable, and rapidly
                        consuming life towards the close.</p>
                    <p>She wrote to inform her brother of the probable conclusion of a four months'
                        indisposition, under which she had suffered; and entreated him to come to
                        her, if possible, for she had much to settle, and she wished to bid him
                        adieu, and deliver Linton safely into his hands. Her hope was, that Linton
                        might be left with him, as he had been with her; his father, she would fain
                        convince herself, had no desire to <pb n="82"/>assume the burden of his
                        maintenance or education.</p>
                    <p>My master hesitated not a moment in complying with her request; reluctant as
                        he was to leave home at ordinary calls, he flew to answer this; commending
                        Catherine to my peculiar vigilance, in his absence; with reiterated orders
                        that she must not wander out of the park, even under my escort; he did not
                        calculate on her going unaccompanied.</p>
                    <p>He was away three weeks: the first day or two, my charge sat in a corner of
                        the library, too sad for either reading or playing: in that quiet state she
                        caused me little trouble; but it was succeeded by an interval of impatient,
                        fretful weariness; and being too busy, and too old then, to run up and down
                        amusing her, I hit on a method by which she might entertain herself.</p>
                    <p>I used to send her on her travels round the grounds—now on foot, and now on a
                        pony; indulging her with a patient audience of all <pb n="83"/>her real and
                        imaginary adventures, when she returned.</p>
                    <p>The summer shone in full prime; and she took such a taste for this solitary
                        rambling that she often contrived to remain out from breakfast till tea; and
                        then the evenings were spent in recounting her fanciful tales. I did not
                        fear her breaking bounds, because the gates were generally locked, and I
                        thought she would scarcely venture forth alone, if they had stood wide
                        open.</p>
                    <p>Unluckily, my confidence proved misplaced. Catherine came to me, one morning,
                        at eight o'clock, and said she was that day an Arabian merchant, going to
                        cross the Desert with his caravan; and I must give her plenty of provision
                        for herself, and beasts, a horse, and three camels, personated by a large
                        hound, and a couple of pointers.</p>
                    <p>I got together good store of dainties, and slung them in a basket on one side
                        of the saddle; and she sprang up as gay as a fairy, <pb n="84"/>sheltered by
                        her wide-brimmed hat and gauze veil from the July sun, and trotted off with
                        a merry laugh, mocking my cautious counsel to avoid gallopping, and come
                        back early.</p>
                    <p>The naughty thing never made her appearance at tea. One traveller, the hound,
                        being an old dog, and fond of its ease, returned; but neither Cathy, nor the
                        pony, nor the two pointers were visible in any direction; and I despatched
                        emissaries down this path, and that path, and, at last, went wandering in
                        search of her myself.</p>
                    <p>There was a labourer working at a fence round a plantation, on the borders of
                        the grounds. I enquired of him if he had seen our young lady?</p>
                    <p>"I saw her at morn," he replied, "she would have me to cut her a hazel
                        switch; and then she leapt her galloway over the hedge yonder, where it is
                        lowest, and gallopped out of sight."</p>
                    <p>You may guess how I felt at hearing this <pb n="85"/>news. It struck me
                        directly she must have started for Penistone Craggs.</p>
                    <p>"What will become of her?" I ejaculated, pushing through a gap which the man
                        was repairing, and making straight to the high road.</p>
                    <p>I walked as if for a wager, mile after mile, till a turn brought me in view
                        of the Heights, but no Catherine could I detect, far or near.</p>
                    <p>The Craggs lie about a mile and a half beyond Mr. Heathcliff's place, and
                        that is four from the Grange, so I began to fear night would fall ere I
                        could reach them.</p>
                    <p>"And what if she should have slipped in clambering among them," I reflected,
                        "and been killed, or broken some of her bones?"</p>
                    <p>My suspense was truly painful; and, at first, it gave me delightful relief to
                        observe, in hurrying by the farm-house, Charlie, the fiercest of the
                        pointers, lying under a window, with swelled head, and bleeding ear.</p>
                    <p>I open the wicket, and ran to the door, knocking vehemently for admittance. A
                            <pb n="86"/>woman whom I knew, and who formerly lived at Gimmerton,
                        answered—she had been servant there since the death of Mr Earnshaw.</p>
                    <p>"Ah," said she, "you are come a seeking your little mistress! don't be
                        frightened. She's here safe—but I'm glad it isn't the master."</p>
                    <p>"He is not at home then, is he?" I panted, quite breathless with quick
                        walking and alarm.</p>
                    <p>"No, no," she replied, "both he and Joseph are off, and I think they wont
                        return this hour or more. Step in and rest you a bit."</p>
                    <p>I entered, and beheld my stray lamb, seated on the hearth, rocking herself in
                        a little chair that had been her mother's, when a child. Her hat was hung
                        against the wall, and she seemed perfectly at home, laughing and chattering,
                        in the best spirits imaginable, to Hareton, now a great, strong lad of
                        eighteen, who stared at her with considerable curiosity and astonishment;
                        comprehending precious little of the fluent succession of remarks and
                        questions which her tongue never ceased pouring forth.</p>
                    <p><pb n="87"/>"Very well, Miss," I exclaimed, concealing my joy under an angry
                        countenance. "This is your last ride, till papa comes back. I'll not trust
                        you over the threshold again, you naughty, naughty girl."</p>
                    <p>"Aha, Ellen!" she cried, gaily, jumping up, and running to my side. "I shall
                        have a pretty story to tell to-night—and so you've found me out. Have you
                        ever been here in your life before?"</p>
                    <p>"Put that hat on, and home at once," said I. "I'm dreadfully grieved at you,
                        Miss Cathy, you've done extremely wrong! It's no use pouting and crying;
                        that wont repay the trouble I've had, scouring the country after you. To
                        think how Mr. Linton charged me to keep you in; and you stealing off so; it
                        shows you are a cunning little fox, and nobody will put faith in you any
                        more."</p>
                    <p>"What have I done?" sobbed she, instantly checked, "Papa charged me
                        nothing—he'll <pb n="88"/>not scold me, Ellen—he's never cross, like
                        you!"</p>
                    <p>"Come, come!" I repeated. "I'll tie the riband. Now, let us have no
                        petulance. Oh, for shame. You thirteen years old, and such a baby!"</p>
                    <p>This exclamation was caused by her pushing the hat from her head, and
                        retreating to the chinmey out of my reach.</p>
                    <p>"Nay," said the servant, "don't be hard on the bonny lass, Mrs. Dean. We made
                        her stop—she'd fain have ridden forwards, afeard you should be uneasy. But
                        Hareton offered to go with her, and I thought he should. It's a wild road
                        over the hills."</p>
                    <p>Hareton, during the discussion, stood with his hands in his pockets, too
                        awkward to speak, though he looked as if he did not relish my intrusion.</p>
                    <p>"How long am I to wait?" I continued, disregarding the woman's interference.
                        "It <pb n="89"/>will be dark in ten minutes. Where is the pony, Miss Cathy?
                        And where is Phenix? I shall leave you, unless you be quick, so please
                        yourself."</p>
                    <p>"The pony is in the yard," she replied, "and Phenix is shut in there. He's
                        bitten—and so is Charlie. I was going to tell you all about it; but you are
                        in a bad temper, and don't deserve to hear."</p>
                    <p>I picked up her hat, and approached to reinstate it; but perceiving that the
                        people of the house took her part, she commenced capering round the room;
                        and, on my giving chase, ran like a mouse, over and under, and behind the
                        furniture, rendering it ridiculous for me to pursue.</p>
                    <p>Hareton and the woman laughed; and she joined them, and waxed more
                        impertinent still; till I cried, in great irritation.</p>
                    <p>"Well, Miss Cathy, if you were aware whose house this is, you'd be glad
                        enough to get out."</p>
                    <p><pb n="90"/>"It's <hi>your</hi> father's, isn't it?" said she, turning to
                        Hareton.</p>
                    <p>"Nay," he replied, looking down, and blushing bashfully.</p>
                    <p>He could not stand a steady gaze from her eyes, though they were just his
                        own.</p>
                    <p>"Whose then—your master's?" she asked.</p>
                    <p>He coloured deeper, with a different feeling, muttered an oath, and turned
                        away.</p>
                    <p>"Who is his master?" continued the tiresome girl, appealing to me. "He talked
                        about 'our house,' and 'our folk.' I thought he had been the owner's son.
                        And he never said, Miss; he should have done, shouldn't he, if he's a
                        servant?"</p>
                    <p>Hareton grew black as a thunder-cloud, at this childish speech. I silently
                        shook my questioner, and, at last, succeeded in equipping her for
                        departure.</p>
                    <p>"Now, get my horse," she said, addressing her unknown kinsman as she would
                        one of the stable-boys at the Grange. "And you may <pb n="91"/>come with me.
                        I want to see where the goblin hunter rises in the marsh, and to hear about
                        the <hi>fairishes</hi>, as you call them—but, make haste! What's the matter?
                        Get my horse, I say."</p>
                    <p>"I'll see thee damned, before I be <hi>thy</hi> servant!" growled the
                        lad.</p>
                    <p>"You'll see me me <hi>what</hi>?" asked Catherine in surprise.</p>
                    <p>"Damned—thou saucy witch!" he replied.</p>
                    <p>"There, Miss Cathy! you see you have got into pretty company," I interposed.
                        "Nice words to be used to a young lady! Pray don't begin to dispute with
                        him—Come, let us seek for Minny ourselves, and begone."</p>
                    <p>"But Ellen," cried she, staring, fixed in astonishment. "How dare he speak so
                        to me? Mustn't he be made to do as I ask him? You wicked creature, I shall
                        tell papa what you said—Now then!"</p>
                    <p>Hareton did not appear to feel this threat; so the tears sprung into her eyes
                        with <pb n="92"/>indignation. "You bring the pony," she exclaimed, turning
                        to the woman, "and let my dog free this moment!"</p>
                    <p>"Softly, Miss," answered the addressed. "You'll lose nothing, by being civil.
                        Though Mr. Hareton, there, be not the master's son, he's your cousin; and I
                        was never hired to serve you."</p>
                    <p>"<hi>He</hi> my cousin!" cried Cathy with a scornful laugh.</p>
                    <p>"Yes, indeed," responded her reprover.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, Ellen! don't let them say such things," she pursued in great trouble.
                        Papa is gone to fetch my cousin from London—my cousin is a gentleman's
                        son—That my—" she stopped, and wept outright; upset at the bare notion of
                        relationship with such a clown.</p>
                    <p>"Hush, hush!" I whispered, "people can have many cousins and of all sorts,
                        Miss Cathy, without being any the worse for it; only they needn't keep their
                        company, if they be disagreeable, and bad."</p>
                    <p><pb n="93"/>"He's not, he's not my cousin, Ellen!" she went on, gathering
                        fresh grief from reflection, and flinging herself into my arms for refuge
                        from the idea.</p>
                    <p>I was much vexed at her and the servant for their mutual revelations; having
                        no doubt of Linton's approaching arrival, communicated by the former, being
                        reported to Mr. Heathcliff; and feeling as confident that Catherine's first
                        thought on her father's return, would be to seek an explanation of the
                        latter's assertion, concerning her rude-bred kindred.</p>
                    <p>Hareton, recovering from his disgust at being taken for a servant, seemed
                        moved by her distress; and, having fetched the pony round to the door, he
                        took, to propitiate her, a fine crooked-legged terrier whelp from the
                        kennel; and putting it into her hand, bid her wisht for he meant naught.</p>
                    <p>Pausing in her lamentations, she surveyed him with a glance of awe, and
                        horror, then burst forth anew.</p>
                    <p><pb n="94"/>I could scarcely refrain from smiling at this antipathy to the
                        poor fellow; who was a well-made, athletic youth, good looking in features,
                        and stout and healthy, but attired in garments befitting his daily
                        occupations of working on the farm, and lounging among the moors after
                        rabbits and game. Still, I thought I could detect in his physiognomy a mind
                        owning better qualities than his father ever possessed. Good things lost
                        amid a wilderness of weeds, to be sure, whose rankness far over-topped their
                        neglected growth; yet notwithstanding, evidence of a wealthy soil that might
                        yield luxuriant crops, under other and favourable circumstances. Mr.
                        Heathcliff, I believe, had not treated him physically ill; thanks to his
                        fearless nature which offered no temptation to that course of oppression; it
                        had none of the timid susceptibility that would have given zest to
                        ill-treatment, in Heathcliff's judgment. He appeared to have bent his
                        malevolence on making him a brute: he was never taught to <pb n="95"/>read
                        or write; never rebuked for any bad habit which did not annoy his keeper;
                        never led a single step towards virtue, or guarded by a single precept
                        against vice. And from what I heard, Joseph contributed much to his
                        deterioration by a narrow minded partiality which prompted him to flatter,
                        and pet him, as a boy, because he was the head of the old family. And as he
                        had been in the habit of accusing Catherine Earnshaw, and Heathcliff, when
                        children, of putting the master past his patience, and compelling him to
                        seek solace in drink, by what he termed, their "offalld ways," so at
                        present, he laid the whole burden of Hareton's faults on the shoulders of
                        the usurper of his property.</p>
                    <p>If the lad swore he wouldn't correct him; nor however culpably he behaved. It
                        gave Joseph satisfaction, apparently, to watch him go the worst lengths. He
                        allowed that he was ruined; that his soul was abandoned to <pb n="96"/>perdition; but then, he reflected that Heathcliff must answer for it.
                        Hareton's blood would be required at his hands; and there lay immense
                        consolation in that thought.</p>
                    <p>Joseph had instilled into him a pride of name, and of his lineage; he would
                        had he dared, have fostered hate between him and the present owner of the
                        Heights, but his dread of that owner amounted to superstition; and he
                        confined his feelings, regarding him, to muttered inuendo's and private
                        comminations.</p>
                    <p>I don't pretend to be intimately acquainted with the mode of living customary
                        in those days, at Wuthering Heights. I only speak from hearsay; for I saw
                        little. The villagers affirmed Mr. Heathcliff was <hi>near</hi>, and a cruel
                        hard landlord to his tenants; but the house, inside had regained its ancient
                        aspect of comfort under female management; and the scenes of riot common in
                        Hindley's time, were not <pb n="97"/>now enacted within its walls. The
                        master was too gloomy to seek companionship with any people, good or bad,
                        and he is yet—</p>
                    <p>This, however, is not making progress with my story. Miss Cathy rejected the
                        peace-offering of the terrier, and demanded her own dogs, Charlie and
                        Phenix. They came limping, and hanging their heads; and we set out for home,
                        sadly out of sorts, every one of us.</p>
                    <p>I could not wring from my little lady how she had spent the day; except that,
                        as I supposed, the goal of her pilgrimage was Penistone Crags; and she
                        arrived without adventure to the gate of the farmhouse, when Hareton
                        happened to issue forth, attended by some canine followers who attacked her
                        train.</p>
                    <p>They had a smart battle, before their owners could separate them: that formed
                        an introduction. Catherine told Hareton who she was, and where she was
                        going; and asked him to show her the way; finally, beguilnig him to
                        accompany her.</p>
                    <p><pb n="98"/>He opened the mysteries of the Fairy cave, and twenty other queer
                        places; but being in disgrace, I was not favoured with a description of the
                        interesting objects she saw.</p>
                    <p>I could gather however, that her guide had been a favourite till she hurt his
                        feelings by addressing him as a servant, and Heathcliff's housekeeper hurt
                        hers, by calling him her cousin.</p>
                    <p>Then the language he had held to her rankled in her heart; she who was always
                        "love," and "darling," and "queen," and "angel," with everybody at the
                        Grange; to be insulted so shockingly by a stranger! She did not comprehend
                        it; and hard work I had, to obtain a promise that she would not lay the
                        grievance before her father.</p>
                    <p>I explained how he objected to the whole household at the Heights, and how
                        sorry he would be to find she had been there; but, I insisted most on the
                        fact, that if she revealed my negligence of his orders, he would <pb n="99"/>perhaps, be so angry that I should have to leave; and Cathy couldn't bear
                        that prospect: she pledged her word, and kept it, for my sake—after all, she
                        was a sweet little girl.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="100"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER V.</head>

                    <p>A letter, edged with black, announced the day of my master's return. Isabella
                        was dead; and he wrote to bid me get mourning for his daughter, and arrange
                        a room, and other accommodations, for his youthful nephew.</p>
                    <p>Catherine ran wild with joy at the idea of welcoming her father back: and
                        indulged most sanguine anticipations of the innumerable excellencies of her
                        "real" cousin.</p>
                    <p>The evening of their expected arrival came. Since early morning, she had been
                        busy, <pb n="101"/>ordering her own small affairs; and now, attired in her
                        new black frock—poor thing! her aunt's death impressed her with no definite
                        sorrow—she obliged me, by constant worrying, to walk with her, down through
                        the grounds, to meet them.</p>
                    <p>"Linton is just six months younger than I am," she chattered as we strolled
                        leisurely over the swells and hollows of mossy turf, under shadow of the
                        trees. "How delightful it will be to have him for a playfellow! Aunt
                        Isabella sent papa a beautiful lock of his hair; it was lighter than
                        mine—more flaxen, and quite as fine. I have it carefully preserved in a
                        little glass box; and I've often thought what pleasure it would be to see
                        its owner—Oh! I am happy—and papa, dear, dear papa! come, Ellen, let us run!
                        come run!"</p>
                    <p>She ran, and returned and ran again, many times before my sober footsteps
                        reached the gate, and then she seated herself on the grassy bank beside the
                        path, and tried to wait <pb n="102"/>patiently; but that was impossible; she
                        couldn't be still a minute.</p>
                    <p>"How long they are!" she exclaimed. "Ah, I see some dust on the road—they are
                        coming! No! When will they be here? May we not go a little way—half a mile,
                        Ellen, only just half a mile? Do say yes, to that clump of birches at the
                        turn!"</p>
                    <p>I refused staunchily: and, at length, her suspense was ended: the travelling
                        carriage rolled in sight.</p>
                    <p>Miss Cathy shrieked, and stretched out her arms, as soon as she caught her
                        father's face, looking from the window. He descended, nearly as eager as
                        herself; and a considerable interval elapsed, ere they had a thought to
                        spare for any but themselves.</p>
                    <p>While they exchanged caresses, I took a peep in to see after Linton. He was
                        asleep, in a corner, wrapped in a warm, fur-lined cloak, as if it had been
                        winter, A pale, delicate, effeminate boy, who might have been <pb n="103"/>taken for my master's younger brother, so strong was the resemblance, but
                        there was a sickly peevishness in his aspect, that Edgar Linton never
                        had.</p>
                    <p>The latter saw me looking; and having shaken hands, advised me to close the
                        door, and leave him undisturbed; for the journey had fatigued him.</p>
                    <p>Cathy would fain have taken one glance; but her father told her to come on,
                        and they walked together up the park, while I hastened before, to prepare
                        the servants.</p>
                    <p>"Now, darling," said Mr. Linton, addressing his daughter,, as they halted at
                        the bottom of the front steps. "Your cousin is not so strong, or so merry as
                        you are, and he has lost his mother, remember, a very short time since,
                        therefore, don't expect him to play, and run about with you directly. And
                        don't harass him much by talking—let him be quiet this evening, at least,
                        will you?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes, yes, papa," answered Catherine; <pb n="104"/>"but I do want to see him;
                        and he hasn't once looked out."</p>
                    <p>The carriage stopped; and the sleeper, being roused, was lifted to the ground
                        by his uncle.</p>
                    <p>"This is your cousin Cathy, Linton," he said, putting their little hands
                        together. "She's fond of you already; and mind you don't grieve her by
                        crying to-night. Try to be cheerful now; the travelling is at an end, and
                        you have nothing to do but rest and amuse yourself as you please."</p>
                    <p>"Let me go to bed then," answered the boy, shrinking from Catherine's salute;
                        and he put his fingers to his eyes to remove incipient tears.</p>
                    <p>"Come, come, there's a good child," I whispered, leading him in. "You'll make
                        her weep too—see how sorry she is for you!"</p>
                    <p>I do not know whether it were sorrow for him, but his cousin put on as sad a
                        countenance as himself, and returned to her father. <pb n="105"/>All three
                        entered, and mounted to the library where tea was laid ready.</p>
                    <p>I proceeded to remove Linton's cap, and mantle, and placed him on a chair by
                        the table; but he was no sooner seated than he began to cry afresh. My
                        master inquired what was the matter.</p>
                    <p>"I can't sit on a chair," sobbed the boy.</p>
                    <p>"Go to the sofa then; and Ellen shall bring you some tea," answered his
                        uncle, patiently.</p>
                    <p>He had been greatly tried during the journey, I felt convinced, by his
                        fretful, ailing charge.</p>
                    <p>Linton slowly trailed himself off, and lay down. Cathy carried a foot-stool
                        and her cup to his side.</p>
                    <p>At first she sat silent; but that could not last; she had resolved to make a
                        pet of her little cousin, as she would have him to be; and she commenced
                        stroking his curls, and kissing his cheek, and offering him tea in her
                        saucer, like a baby. This pleased him, for he <pb n="106"/>was not much
                        better; he dried his eyes, and lightened into a faint smile.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, he'll do very well," said the master to me, after watching them a
                        minute. "Very well, if we can keep him, Ellen. The company of a child of his
                        own age will instil new spirit into him soon: and by wishing for strength
                        he'll gain it."</p>
                    <p>Aye, if we can keep him! I mused to myself; and sore misgivings came over me
                        that there was slight hope of that. And then, I thought, however will that
                        weakling live at Wuthering Heights, between his father and Hareton? what
                        playmates and instructors they'll be.</p>
                    <p>Our doubts were presently decided; even earlier than I expected. I had just
                        taken the children up stairs, after tea was finished; and seen Linton
                        asleep—he would not suffer me to leave him, till that was the case—I had
                        come down, and was standing by the table in the hall, lighting a bed-room
                        candle for Mr. Edgar, <pb n="107"/>when a maid stepped out of the kitchen,
                        and informed me that Mr. Heathcliff'a servant, Joseph, was at the door, and
                        wished to speak with the master.</p>
                    <p>"I shall ask him what he wants first," I said, in considerable trepidation.
                        "A very unlikely hour to be troubling people, and the instant they have
                        returned from a long journey. I don't think the master can see him."</p>
                    <p>Joseph had advanced through the kitchen, as I uttered these words, and now
                        presented himself in the hall. He was donned in his Sunday garments, with
                        his most sanctimonious and sourest face; and holding his hat in one hand,
                        and his stick in the other, he proceeded to clean his shoes on the mat.</p>
                    <p>"Good evening, Joseph," I said, coldly. "What business brings you here
                        to-night?"</p>
                    <p>"It's Maister Linton Aw mun spake tull," he answered, waving me disdainfully
                        aside.</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Linton is going to bed; unless you have something particular to say, I'm
                        sure he <pb n="108"/>wont hear it now," I continued. "You had better sit
                        down in there, and entrust your message to me."</p>
                    <p>"Which is his rahm?" pursued the fellow, surveying the range of closed
                        doors.</p>
                    <p>I perceived he was bent on refusing my mediation; so very reluctantly, I went
                        up to the library, and announced the unseasonable visiter; advising that he
                        should be dismissed till next day.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Linton had no time to empower me to do so, for he mounted close at my
                        heels, and pushing into the apartment, planted himself at the far side of
                        the table, with his two fists clapped on the head of his stick, and began in
                        an elevated tone, as if anticipating opposition.</p>
                    <p>"Hathecliff has send me for his lad, un Aw 'munn't goa back 'baht him."</p>
                    <p>Edgar Linton was silent a minute; an expression of exceeding sorrow overcast
                        his features; he would have pitied the child on his own account; but,
                        recalling Isabella's hopes <pb n="109"/>and fears, and anxious wishes for
                        her son, and her commendations of him to his care, he grieved bitterly at
                        the prospect of yielding him up, and searched in his heart how it might be
                        avoided. No plan offered itself: the very exhibition of any desire to keep
                        him would have rendered the claimant more peremptory: there was nothing left
                        but to resign him. However, he was not going to rouse him from his
                        sleep.</p>
                    <p>"Tell Mr. Heathcliff," he answered, calmly, "that his son shall come to
                        Wuthering Heights to-morrow. He is in bed, and too tired to go the distance
                        now. You may also tell him that the mother of Linton desired him to remain
                        under my guardianship; and, at present, his health is very precarious."</p>
                    <p>"Noa!" said Joseph, giving a thud with his prop on the floor, and assuming an
                        authoritative air. "Noa! that manes nowt—Hathecliff maks noa 'cahnt uh t'
                        mother, nur yah norther—bud he'll hev his lad; und Aw mun tak him—soa nah
                        yah knaw!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="110"/>"You shall not to-night!" answered Linton, decisively. "Walk
                        down stairs at once, and repeat to your master what I have said. Ellen, show
                        him down. Go—"</p>
                    <p>And, aiding the indignant elder with a lift by the arm, he rid the room of
                        him, and closed the door.</p>
                    <p>"Varrah weel!" shouted Joseph, as he slowly drew off. "Tuh morn, he's come
                        hisseln, un' thrust <hi>him</hi> aht, if yah darr!"</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="111"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER VI.</head>

                    <p>To obviate the danger of this threat being fulfilled, Mr. Linton commissioned
                        me to take the boy home early, on Catherine's pony, and, said he—</p>
                    <p>"As we shall now have no influence over his destiny, good or bad, you must
                        say nothing of where he is gone to my daughter; she cannot associate with
                        him hereafter; and it is better for her to remain in ignorance of his
                        proximity, lest she should be restless, and anxious to visit the
                        Heights—merely tell her, <pb n="112"/>his father sent for him suddenly, and
                        he has been obliged to leave us."</p>
                    <p>Linton was very reluctant to be roused from his bed, at five o'clock, and
                        astonished to be informed that he must prepare for further travelling: but I
                        softened off the matter by stating that he was going to spend some time with
                        his father, Mr. Heathcliff, who wished to see him so much, he did not like
                        to defer the pleasure till he should recover from his late journey.</p>
                    <p>"My father?" he cried, in strange perplexity. "Mamma never told me I had a
                        father. Where does he live? I'd rather stay with uncle."</p>
                    <p>"He lives a little distance from the Grange," I replied, "just beyond those
                        hills—not so far, but you may walk over here, when you get hearty. And you
                        should be glad to go home, and to see him. You must try to love him, as you
                        did your mother, and then he will love you."</p>
                    <p><pb n="113"/>"But why have I not heard of him before?" asked Linton; "why
                        didn't mamma, and he live together as other people do?"</p>
                    <p>"He had business to keep him in the north," I answered; "and your mother's
                        health required her to reside in the south."</p>
                    <p>"And why didn't mamma speak to me about him?" persevered the child. "She
                        often talked of uncle, and I learnt to love him long ago. How am I to love
                        papa? I don't know him."</p>
                    <p>"Oh, all children love their parents," I said. "Your mother, perhaps, thought
                        you would want to be with him, if she mentioned him often to you. Let us
                        make haste. An early ride on such a beautiful morning is much preferable to
                        an hour's more sleep."</p>
                    <p>"Is <hi>she</hi> to go with us," he demanded. "The little girl I saw
                        yesterday?"</p>
                    <p>"Not now," replied I.</p>
                    <p>"Is uncle?" he continued.</p>
                    <p><pb n="114"/>"No, I shall be your companion there," I said.</p>
                    <p>Linton sank back on his pillow, and fell into a brown study.</p>
                    <p>"I won't go without uncle;" he cried at length; "I can't tell where you mean
                        to take me."</p>
                    <p>I attempted to persuade him of the naughtiness of showing reluctance to meet
                        his father: still he obstinately resisted any progress towards dressing; and
                        I had to call for my master's assistance, in coaxing him out of bed.</p>
                    <p>The poor thing was finally got off with several delusive assurances that his
                        absence should be short; that Mr. Edgar and Cathy would visit him; and other
                        promises, equally ill-founded, which I invented and reiterated, at
                        intervals, throughout the way.</p>
                    <p>The pure heather-scented air, and the bright sunshine, and the gentle canter
                        of Minny relieved his despondency, after a while. He began to put questions
                        concerning his new home, <pb n="115"/>and its inhabitants, with greater
                        interest, and liveliness.</p>
                    <p>"Is Wuthering Heights as pleasant a place as Thrushcross Grange?" he
                        inquired, turning to take a last glance into the valley, whence a light mist
                        mounted, and formed fleecy cloud, on the skirts of the blue.</p>
                    <p>"It is not so buried in trees," I replied, "and it is not quite so large, but
                        you can see the country beautifully, all round; and the air is healthier for
                        you—fresher, and dryer. You will, perhaps, think the building old and dark,
                        at first—though it is a respectable house, the next best in the
                        neighbourhood. And you will have such nice rambles on the moors! Hareton
                        Earnshaw—that is Miss Cathy's other cousin; and so yours in a manner—will
                        show you all the sweetest spots; and you can bring a book in fine weather,
                        and make a green hollow your study; and, now and then, your uncle may join
                        you in a walk; he does, frequently, walk out on the hills."</p>
                    <p><pb n="116"/>"And what is my father like?" he asked. "Is he as young and
                        handsome as uncle?"</p>
                    <p>"He's as young," said I "but he has black hair, and eyes; and looks sterner,
                        and he is taller and bigger altogether. He'll not seem to you so gentle and
                        kind at first, perhaps, because, it is not his way—still, mind you be frank
                        and cordial with him; and naturally, he'll be fonder of you than any uncle,
                        for you are his own."</p>
                    <p>"Black hair and eyes!" mused Linton. "I can't fancy him. Then I am not like
                        him, am I?"</p>
                    <p>"Not much," I answered. . .Not a morsel, I thought: surveying with regret the
                        white complexion, and slim frame of my companion, and his large languid
                        eyes. . .his mother's eyes save that, unless a morbid touchiness kindled
                        them, a moment, they had not a vestige of her sparkling spirit.</p>
                    <p>"How strange that he should never come to see mama, and me" he murmured. "Has
                        he <pb n="117"/>ever seen me? If he have, I must have been a baby—I remember
                        not a single thing about him!"</p>
                    <p>"Why, Master Linton," said I, "three hundred miles is a great distance: and
                        ten years seem very different in length, to a grown up person, compared with
                        what they do to you. It is probable Mr. Heathcliff proposed going, from
                        summer to summer, but never found a convenient opportunity: and now it is
                        too late—Don't trouble him with questions on the subject: it will disturb
                        him for no good."</p>
                    <p>The boy was fully occupied with his own cogitations for the remainder of the
                        ride, till we halted before the farm-house garden gate. I watched to catch
                        his impressions in his countenanance. He surveyed the carved front, and
                        low-browed lattices; the straggling gooseberry bushes, and crooked firs,
                        with solemn intentness, and then shook his head: his private feelings
                        entirely disapproved of the exterior of <pb n="118"/>his new abode; but he
                        had sense to postpone complaining—there might be compensation within.</p>
                    <p>Before he dismounted, I went and opened the door. It was half-past six; the
                        family had just finished breakfast; the servant was clearing and wiping down
                        the table: Joseph stood by his master's chair telling some tale concerning a
                        lame horse; and Hareton was preparing for the hay-field.</p>
                    <p>"Hallo, Nelly!" cried Mr. Heathcliff, when he saw me. "I feared I should have
                        to come down and fetch my property, myself—You've brought it have you? Let
                        us see what we can make of it."</p>
                    <p>He got up and strode to the door: Hareton and Joseph followed in gaping
                        curiosity. Poor Linton ran a frightened eye over the faces of the three.</p>
                    <p>"Sure-ly," said Joseph after a grave inspection, 'he's swopped wi' ye,
                        maister, an' yon's his lass!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="119"/>Heathcliff having stared his son into an ague of confusion,
                        uttered a scornful laugh.</p>
                    <p>"God! what a beauty! what a lovely, charming thing!" he exclaimed. "Haven't
                        they reared it on snails, and sour milk, Nelly? Oh, damn my soul! but that's
                        worse than I expected—and the devil knows I was not sanguine!"</p>
                    <p>I bid the trembling and bewildered child get down, and enter. He did not
                        thoroughly comprehend the meaning of his father's speech, or whether it were
                        intended for him: indeed, he was not yet certain that the grim, sneering
                        stranger was his father; but he clung to me with growing trepidation; and on
                        Mr. Heathcliff's taking a seat, and bidding him "come hither," he hid his
                        face on my shoulder, and wept.</p>
                    <p>"Tut, tut!" said Heathcliff, stretching out a hand and dragging him roughly
                        between his knees, and then holding up his head by the chin. "None of that
                        nonsense! we're not <pb n="120"/>going to hurt thee, Linton—isn't that thy
                        name? Thou art thy mother's child, entirely! Where is <hi>my</hi> share in
                        thee, puling chicken?"</p>
                    <p>He took off the boy's cap and pushed back his thick flaxen curls, felt his
                        slender arms, and his small fingers; during which examination, Linton ceased
                        crying, and lifted his great blue eyes to inspect the inspector.</p>
                    <p>"Do you know me?" asked Heathcliff, having satisfied himself that the limbs
                        were all equally frail and feeble.</p>
                    <p>"No!" said Linton, with a gaze of vacant fear.</p>
                    <p>"You've heard of me, I dare say?"</p>
                    <p>"No," he replied again.</p>
                    <p>"No? What a shame of your mother, never to waken your filial regard for me!
                        You are my son, then, I'll tell you; and your mother was a wicked slut to
                        leave you in ignorance of the sort of father you possessed—Now, don't wince,
                        and colour up! Though it <hi>is</hi> something to see you have not white
                        blood—Be a <pb n="121"/>good lad; and I'll do for you—Nelly, if you be tired
                        you may sit down, if not get home again—I guess you'll report what you hear,
                        and see, to the cipher at the Grange; and this thing won't be settled while
                        you linger about it."</p>
                    <p>"Well," replied I, "I hope you'll be kind to the boy, Mr. Heathcliff, or
                        you'll not keep him long, and he's all you have akin, in the wide world that
                        you will ever know—remember.</p>
                    <p>"I'll be <hi>very</hi> kind to him you needn't fear!" he said laughing. "Only
                        nobody else must be kind to him—I'm jealous of monopolizing his
                        affection—And, to begin my kindness, Joseph! bring the lad some
                        breakfast—Hareton, you infernal calf, begone to your work. Yes, Nell," he
                        added when they were departed, "my son is prospective owner of your place,
                        and I should not wish him to die till I was certain of being his successor.
                        Besides, he's <hi>mine</hi>, and I want the triumph of seeing <pb n="122"/><hi>my</hi> descendent fairly lord of their estates; my child hiring
                        their children, to till their fathers' lands for wages—That is the sole
                        consideration which can make me endure the whelp—I despise him for himself,
                        and hate him for the memories he revives! But, that consideration is
                        sufficient; he's as safe with me, and shall be tended as carefully, as your
                        master tends his own—I have a room up stairs, furnished for him, in handsome
                        style—I've engaged a tutor, also, to come three times a week, from twenty
                        miles distance, to teach him what he pleases to learn. I've ordered Hareton
                        to obey him: and in fact, I've arranged every thing with a view to preserve
                        the superior, and the gentleman in him, above his associates—I do regret
                        however, that he so little deserves the trouble—if I wished any blessing in
                        the world, it was to find him a worthy object of pride, and I'm bitterly
                        disappointed with the whey-faced whining wretch!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="123"/>While he was speaking, Joseph returned, bearing a basin of
                        milk-porridge, and placed it before Linton. He stirred round the homely mess
                        with a look of aversion, and affirmed he could not eat it.</p>
                    <p>I saw the old man servant shared largely in his master's scorn of the child,
                        though he was compelled to retain the sentiment in his heart, because
                        Heathcliff plainly meant his underlings to hold him in honour.</p>
                    <p>"Cannot ate it?" repeated he, peering in Linton's face, and subduing his
                        voice to a whisper, for fear of being overheard. "But Maister Hareton nivir
                        ate nowt else, when he wer a little un: und what wer gooid eneugh fur him's
                        gooid eneugh fur yah, Aw's rayther think!"</p>
                    <p>"I <hi>shan't</hi> eat it!" answered Linton, snappishly. "Take it away."</p>
                    <p>Joseph snatched up the food indignantly, and brought it to us.</p>
                    <p><pb n="124"/>"Is there owt ails th' victuals?" he asked, thrusting the tray
                        under Heathcliff's nose.</p>
                    <p>"What should ail them?" he said.</p>
                    <p>"Wah!" answered Joseph, "yon dainty chap says he cannut ate 'em. Bud Aw guess
                        it's raight! His mother wer just soa—we wer a'most too mucky tuh sow t' corn
                        fur makking her breead."</p>
                    <p>"Don't mention his mother to me," said the master, angrily. "Get him
                        something that he can eat, that's all. What is his usual food, Nelly?"</p>
                    <p>I suggested boiled milk or tea; and the housekeeper received instructions to
                        prepare some.</p>
                    <p>Come, I reflected, his father's selfishness may contribute to his comfort. He
                        perceives his delicate constitution, and the necessity of treating him
                        tolerably. I'll console Mr. Edgar by acquainting him with the turn
                        Heathcliff's humour has taken.</p>
                    <p>Having no excuse for lingering longer, I <pb n="125"/>slipped out, while
                        Linton was engaged in timidly rebuffing the advances of a friendly
                        sheep-dog. But he was too much on the alert to be cheated—as I closed the
                        door, I heard a cry, and a frantic repetition of the words—</p>
                    <p>"Don't leave me! I'll not stay here! I'll not stay here!"</p>
                    <p>Then the latch was raised and fell—they did not suffer him to come forth. I
                        mounted Minny, and urged her to a trot; and so my brief guardianship
                        ended.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="126"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER VII.</head>

                    <p>We had sad work with little Cathy that day: she rose in high glee, eager to
                        join her cousin; and such passionate tears and lamentations followed the
                        news of his departure, that Edgar, himself, was obliged to sooth her, by
                        affirming he should come back soon; he added, however, "if I can get him;"
                        and there were no hopes of that.</p>
                    <p>This promise poorly pacified her; but time was more potent; and though still,
                        at intervals, she inquired of her father, when Linton <pb n="127"/>would
                        return; before she did see him again, his features had waxed so dim in her
                        memory that she did not recognise him.</p>
                    <p>When I chanced to encounter the housekeeper of Wuthering Heights, in paying
                        business-visits to Gimmerton, I used to ask how the young master got on; for
                        he lived almost as secluded as Catherine herself, and was never to be seen.
                        I could gather from her that he continued in weak health, and was a tiresome
                        inmate. She said Mr. Heathcliff seemed to dislike him ever longer and worse,
                        though he took some trouble to conceal it. He had an antipathy to the sound
                        of his voice, and could not do at all with his sitting in the same room with
                        him many minutes together.</p>
                    <p>There seldom passed much talk between them; Linton learnt his lessons, and
                        spent his evenings in a small apartment, they called the parlour; or else
                        lay in bed all day; for he was constantly getting coughs, and colds, and
                        aches, and pains of some sort.</p>
                    <p><pb n="128"/>"And I never knew such a faint-hearted creature," added the
                        woman; "nor one so careful of hisseln. He <hi>will</hi> go on, if I leave
                        the window open, a bit late in the evening. Oh! it's killing a breath of
                        night air! And he must have a fire in the middle of summer; and Joseph's
                        'bacca pipe is poison; and he must always have sweets and dainties, and
                        always milk, milk for ever—heeding naught how the rest of us are pinched in
                        winter—and there he'll sit, wrapped in his furred cloak in his chair by the
                        fire, and some toast and water, or other slop on the hob to sip at; and if
                        Hareton, for pity, comes to amuse him—Hareton is not bad-natured, though
                        he's rough—they're sure to part, one swearing, and the other crying. I
                        believe the master would relish Earnshaw's thrashing him to a mummy, if he
                        were not his son: and, I'm certain, he would be fit to turn him out of
                        doors, if he knew half the nursing he gives hisseln. But then, he wont go
                        into danger of temptation; <pb n="129"/>he never enters the parlour, and
                        should Linton show those ways in the house where he is, he sends him up
                        stairs directly."</p>
                    <p>I divined, from this account, that utter lack of sympathy had rendered young
                        Heathcliff selfish and disagreeable, if he were not so originally; and my
                        interest in him, consequently, decayed: though still I was moved with a
                        sense of grief at his lot, and a wish that he had been left with us.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Edgar encouraged me to gain information; he thought a great deal about
                        him, I fancy, and would have run some risk to see him; and he told me once
                        to ask the housekeeper whether he ever came into the village?</p>
                    <p>She said he had only been twice, on horseback, accompanying his father: and
                        both times he pretended to be quite knocked up for three or four days
                        afterwards.</p>
                    <p>That housekeeper left, if I recollect rightly, two years after he came; and
                        another, whom I <pb n="130"/>did not know, was her successor: she lives
                        there still.</p>
                    <p>Time wore on at the Grange in its former pleasant way, till Miss Cathy
                        reached sixteen. On the anniversary of her birth we never manifested any
                        signs of rejoicing, because it was, also, the anniversary of my late
                        mistress's death. Her father invariably spent that day alone in the library;
                        and walked, at dusk, as far as Gimmerton kirkyard, where he would frequently
                        prolong his stay beyond midnight. Therefore Catherine was thrown on her own
                        resources for amusement.</p>
                    <p>This twentieth of March was a beautiful spring day, and when her father had
                        retired, my young lady came down dressed for going out, and said she had
                        asked to have a ramble on the edge of the moors with me; and Mr. Linton had
                        given her leave, if we went only a short distance, and were back within the
                        hour.</p>
                    <p>"So make haste, Ellen!" she cried. "I <pb n="131"/>know where I wish to go;
                        where a colony of moor game are settled; I want to see whether they have
                        made their nests yet."</p>
                    <p>"That must be a good distance up," I answered; "they don't breed on the edge
                        of the moor."</p>
                    <p>"No, it's not," she said. "I've gone very near with papa."</p>
                    <p>I put on my bonnet, and sallied out; thinking nothing more of the matter. She
                        bounded before me, and returned to my side, and was off again like a young
                        greyhound; and, at first, I found plenty of entertainment in listening to
                        the larks singing far and near; and enjoying the sweet, warm sunshine; and
                        watching her, my pet, and my delight, with her golden ringlets flying loose
                        behind, and her bright cheek, as soft and pure in its bloom, as a wild rose,
                        and her eyes radiant with cloudless pleasure. She was a happy creature, and
                        an angel, in those days. It's a pity she could not be content.</p>
                    <p><pb n="132"/>"Well," said I, "where are your moor-game, Miss Cathy? We should
                        be at them—the Grange park-fence is a great way off now."</p>
                    <p>"Oh, a little further—only a little further, Ellen," was her answer,
                        continually. "Climb to that hillock, pass that bank, and by the time you
                        reach the other side, I shall have raised the birds."</p>
                    <p>But there were so many hillocks and banks to climb and pass, that, at length,
                        I began to be weary, and told her we must halt, and retrace our steps.</p>
                    <p>I shouted to her, as she had outstripped me, a long way; she either did not
                        hear, or did not regard, for she still sprang on, and I was compelled to
                        follow. Finally, she dived into a hollow; and before I came in sight of her
                        again, she was two miles nearer Wuthering Heights than her own home; and I
                        beheld a couple of persons arrest her, one of whom I felt convinced was Mr.
                        Heathcliff himself.</p>
                    <p><pb n="133"/>Cathy had been caught in the fact of plundering, or, at least,
                        hunting out the nests of the grouse.</p>
                    <p>The Heights were Heathcliff's land, and he was reproving the poacher.</p>
                    <p>"I've neither taken any nor found any," she said, as I toiled to them,
                        expanding her hands in corroboration of the statement. "I didn't mean to
                        take them; but papa told me there were quantities up here, and I wished to
                        see the eggs."</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff glanced at me with an ill-meaning smile, expressing his
                        acquaintance with the party, and, consequently, his malevolence towards it,
                        and demanded who "papa" was?</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Linton of Thrushcross Grange," she replied. "I thought you did not know
                        me, or you wouldn't have spoken in that way."</p>
                    <p>"You suppose papa is highly esteemed and respected then?" he said,
                        sarcastically.</p>
                    <p>"And what are you?" inquired Catherine, <pb n="134"/>gazing curiously on the
                        speaker. "That man I've seen before. Is he your son?"</p>
                    <p>She pointed to Hareton, the other individual; who had gained nothing but
                        increased bulk and strength by the addition two years to his age: he seemed
                        as awkward and rough as ever.</p>
                    <p>"Miss Cathy," I interrupted, "it will be three hours instead of one, that we
                        are out, presently. We really must go back."</p>
                    <p>"No, that man is not my son," answered Heathcliff, pushing me aside. "But I
                        have one, and you have seen him before too; and, though your nurse is in a
                        hurry, I think both you and she would be the better for a little rest. Will
                        you just turn this nab of heath, and walk into my house? You'll get home
                        earlier for the ease; and you shall receive a kind welcome."</p>
                    <p>I whispered Catherine, that she mustn't, on any account, accede to the
                        proposal; it was entirely out of the question.</p>
                    <p><pb n="135"/>"Why?" she asked, aloud. "I'm tired of running, and the ground
                        is dewy—I can't sit here. Let us go, Ellen! Besides, he says I have seen his
                        son. He's mistaken, I think; but I guess where he lives, at the farm-house I
                        visited in coming from Penistone Craggs. Don't you?"</p>
                    <p>"I do. Come, Nelly, hold your tongue—it will be a treat for her to look in on
                        us. Hareton get forwards with the lass. You shall walk with me, Nelly."</p>
                    <p>"No, she's not going to any such place," I cried, struggling to release my
                        arm which he had seized; but she was almost at the door-stones already,
                        scampering round the brow at full speed. Her appointed companion did not
                        pretend to escort her; he shyed off by the road side, and vanished.</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Heathcliff, it's very wrong," I continued, "you know you mean no good;
                        and there she'll see Linton, and all will be told, as <pb n="136"/>soon as
                        ever we return; and I shall have the blame."</p>
                    <p>"I want her to see Linton," he answered: he's looking better these few days;
                        it's not not often he's fit to be seen. And we'll soon persuade her to keep
                        the visit secret—where is the harm of it?"</p>
                    <p>"The harm of it is, that her father would hate me, if he found I suffered her
                        to enter your house; and I am convinced you have a bad design in encouraging
                        her to do so," I replied.</p>
                    <p>"My design is as honest as possible. I'll inform you of its whole scope," he
                        said. "That the two cousins may fall in love, and get married. I'm acting
                        generously to your master; his young chit has no expectations, and should
                        she second my wishes, she'll be provided for, at once, as joint successor
                        with Linton."</p>
                    <p>"If Linton died," I answered, "and his <pb n="137"/>life is quite uncertain,
                        Catherine would be the heir."</p>
                    <p>"No, she would not," he said. "There is no clause in the will to secure it
                        so; his property would go to me; but, to prevent disputes, I desire their
                        union, and am resolved to bring it about."</p>
                    <p>"And I'm resolved she shall never approach your house with me again," I
                        returned, as we reached the gate, where Miss Cathy waited our coming.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff bid me be quiet; and preceding us up the path, hastened to open
                        the door. My young lady gave him several looks, as if she could not exactly
                        make up her mind what to think of him; but now he smiled when he met her
                        eye, and softened his voice in addressing her, and I was foolish enough to
                        imagine the memory of her mother might disarm him from desiring her
                        injury.</p>
                    <p>Linton stood on the hearth. He had been out, walking in the fields; for his
                        cap was on, <pb n="138"/>and he was calling to Joseph to bring him dry
                        shoes.</p>
                    <p>He had grown tall of his age, still wanting some months of sixteen. His
                        features were pretty yet, and his eye and complexion brighter than I
                        remembered them, though with merely temporary lustre borrowed from the
                        salubrious air and genial sun.</p>
                    <p>"Now, who is that?" asked Mr. Heathcliff, turning to Cathy. "Can you
                        tell?"</p>
                    <p>"Your son?" she said, having doubtfully surveyed, first one, and then the
                        other.</p>
                    <p>"Yes, yes," answered he; "but is this the only time you have beheld him?
                        Think! Ah! you have a short memory. Linton, don't you recall your cousin,
                        that you used to tease us so, with wishing to see?"</p>
                    <p>"What, Linton!" cried Cathy, kindling into joyful surprise at the name. "Is
                        that little Linton? He's taller than I am! Are you, Linton?"</p>
                    <p>The youth stepped forward, and <pb n="139"/>acknowledged himself: she kissed
                        him fervently, and they gazed with wonder at the change time had wrought in
                        the appearance of each.</p>
                    <p>Catherine had reached her full height; her figure was both plump and slender,
                        elastic as steel, and her whole aspect sparkling with health and spirits.
                        Linton's looks and movements were very languid, and his form extremely
                        slight; but there was a grace in his manner that mitigated these defects,
                        and rendered him not unpleasing.</p>
                    <p>After exchanging numerous marks of fondness with him, his cousin went to Mr.
                        Heathcliff, who lingered by the door, dividing his attention between the
                        objects inside, and those that lay without, pretending, that is, to observe
                        the latter, and really noting the former alone.</p>
                    <p>"And you are my uncle, then!" she cried, reaching up to salute him. "I
                        thought I liked you, though you were cross, at first. "Why don't you visit
                        at the Grange with Linton? <pb n="140"/>To live all these years such close
                        neighbours, and never see us, is odd; what have you done so for?"</p>
                    <p>"I visited it once or twice too often before you were born," he answered.
                        "There—damn it! It you have any kisses to spare, give them to Linton—they
                        are thrown away on me."</p>
                    <p>"Naughty Ellen!" exclaimed Catherine, flying to attack me next with her
                        lavish caresses. "Wicked Ellen! to try to hinder me from entering. But, I'll
                        take this walk every morning in future—may I, uncle—and sometimes bring
                        papa? Wont you be glad to see us?"</p>
                    <p>"Of course!" replied the uncle, with a hardly surpressed grimace, resulting
                        from his deep aversion to both the proposed visiters. "But stay," he
                        continued, turning towards the young lady. "Now I think of it, I'd better
                        tell you. Mr. Linton has a prejudice against me; we quarrelled at one time
                        of our lives, <pb n="141"/>with unchristian ferocity; and, if you mention
                        coming here to him, he'll put a veto on your visits altogether. Therefore,
                        you must not mention it, unless you be careless of seeing your cousin
                        hereafter—you may come, if you will, but you must not mention it."</p>
                    <p>"Why did you quarrel?" asked Catherine, considerably crest-fallen.</p>
                    <p>"He thought me too poor to wed his sister," answered Heathcliff, "and was
                        grieved that I got her—his pride was hurt, and he'll never forgive it."</p>
                    <p>"That's wrong!" said the young lady: "sometime, I'll tell him so; but Linton
                        and I have no share in your quarrel. I'll not come here, then, he shall come
                        to the Grange."</p>
                    <p>"It will be too far for me," murmured her cousin, "to walk four miles would
                        kill me. No, come here, Miss Catherine, now and then, not every morning, but
                        once or twice a week."</p>
                    <p>The father launched towards his son a glance of bitter contempt.</p>
                    <p><pb n="142"/>"I am afraid, Nelly, I shall lose my labour," he muttered to me.
                        "Miss Catherine, as the ninny calls her, will discover his value, and send
                        him to the devil. Now, if it had been Hareton—do you know that, twenty times
                        a day, I covet Hareton, with all his degradation? I'd have loved the lad had
                        he been some one else. But I think he's safe from <hi>her</hi> love. I'll
                        pit him against that paltry creature, unless it bestir, itself briskly. We
                        calculate it will scarcely last till it is eighteen. Oh, confound the vapid
                        thing. He's absorbed in drying his feet, and never looks at her—Linton!"</p>
                    <p>"Yes, father," answered the boy.</p>
                    <p>"Have you nothing to show your cousin, anywhere about; not even a rabbit, or
                        a weasel's nest? Take her into the garden, before you change your shoes; and
                        into the stable to see your horse."</p>
                    <p>Wouldn't you rather sit here?" asked Linton, addressing Cathy in a tone which
                        expressed reluctance to move again.</p>
                    <p><pb n="143"/>"I don't know," she replied, casting a longing look to the door,
                        and evidently eager to be active.</p>
                    <p>He kept his seat, and shrank closer to the fire.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff rose, and went into the kitchen, and from thence to the yard,
                        calling out for Hareton.</p>
                    <p>Hareton responded, and presently the two re-entered. The young man had been
                        washing himself, as was visible by the glow on his cheeks, and his wetted
                        hair.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, I'll ask <hi>you</hi>, uncle;" cried Miss Cathy, recollecting the
                        housekeeper's assertion. "That's not my cousin, is he?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes," he replied, "your mother's nephew. Don't you like him?"</p>
                    <p>Catherine looked queer.</p>
                    <p>"Is he not a handsome lad?" he continued.</p>
                    <p>The uncivil little thing stood on tiptoe, and whispered a sentence in
                        Heathcliff's ear.</p>
                    <p>He laughed; Hareton darkened; I perceived <pb n="144"/>he was very sensitive
                        to suspected slights, and had obviously a dim notion of his inferiority. But
                        his master or guardian chased the frown by exclaiming—</p>
                    <p>"You'll be the favourite among us, Hareton! She says you are a—What was it?
                        Well, something very flattering—Here! you go with her round the farm. And
                        behave like a gentleman, mind! Don't use any bad words; and don't stare,
                        when the young lady is not looking at you, and be ready to hide your face
                        when she is; and, when you speak, say your words slowly, and keep your hands
                        out of your pockets. Be off, and entertain her as nicely as you can."</p>
                    <p>He watched the couple walking past the window. Earnshaw had his countenance
                        completely averted from his companion. He seemed studying the familiar
                        landscape with a stranger's, and an artist's interest,</p>
                    <p>Catherine took a sly look at him, expressing small admiration. She then
                        turned her <pb n="145"/>attention to seeking out objects of amusement for
                        herself, and tripped merrily on, lilting a tune to supply the lack of
                        conversation.</p>
                    <p>"I've tied his tongue," observed Heathcliff. "He'll not venture a single
                        syllable, all the time! Nelly, you recollect me at his age—nay, some years
                        younger—Did I ever look so stupid, so 'gaumless,' as Joseph calls it."</p>
                    <p>"Worse," I replied, "because more sullen with it."</p>
                    <p>"I've a pleasure in him!" he continued reflecting aloud. "He has satisfied my
                        expectations—If he were a born fool I should not enjoy it half so much—But
                        he's no fool; and I can sympathise with all his feelings, having felt them
                        myself—I know what he suffers now, for instance, exactly—it is merely a
                        beginning of what he shall suffer, though. And he'll never be able to emerge
                        from his bathos of coarseness, and ignorance. I've got him faster than his
                        scoundrel of a father secured me, and <pb n="146"/>lower; for he takes a
                        pride in his brutishness, I've taught him to scorn everything, extra-animal,
                        as silly and weak—Don't you think Hindley would be proud of his son, if he
                        could see him? almost as proud as I am of mine—But there's this difference,
                        one is gold put to the use of paving stones; and the other is tin polished
                        to ape a service of silver—<hi>Mine</hi> has nothing valuable about it; yet
                        I shall have the merit, of making it go as far as such poor stuff can go.
                            <hi>His</hi> had first-rate qualities, and they are lost—rendered worse
                        than unavailing—I have nothing to regret; he would have more than any, but
                        I, are aware of—And the best of it is, Hareton is damnably fond of me!
                        You'll own that I've out-matched Hindley there—If the dead villain could
                        rise from his grave to abuse me for his offspring's wrongs, I should have
                        the fun of seeing the said offspring fight him back again, indignant that he
                        should dare to rail at the one friend he has in the world!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="147"/>Heathcliff chuckled a fiendish laugh at the idea; I made no
                        reply, because I saw that he expected none.</p>
                    <p>Meantime, our young companion, who sat too removed from us to hear what was
                        said, began to evince symptoms of uneasiness: probably repenting that he had
                        denied himself the treat of Catherine's society, for fear of a little
                        fatigue.</p>
                    <p>His father remarked the restless glances wandering to the window, and the
                        hand irresolutely extended towards his cap.</p>
                    <p>"Get up, you idle boy!" he exclaimed with assumed heartiness. "Away after
                        them. . .they are just at the corner, by the stand of hives."</p>
                    <p>Linton gathered his energies, and left the hearth. The lattice was open and,
                        as he stepped out, I heard Cathy inquiring of her unsociable attendant, what
                        was that inscription over the door?</p>
                    <p>Hareton stared up, and scratched his head like a true clown.</p>
                    <p><pb n="148"/>"It's some damnable writing;" he answered, "I cannot read
                        it."</p>
                    <p>"Can't read it?" cried Catherine, "I can read it. . .It's English. . .but I
                        want to know, why it is there."</p>
                    <p>Linton giggled—the first appearance of mirth he had exhibited.</p>
                    <p>"He does not know his letters," he said to his cousin. "Could you believe in
                        the existence of such a colossal dunce?"</p>
                    <p>"Is he all as he should be?" asked Miss Cathy seriously, "or is he
                        simple. . .not right? I've questioned him twice now, and each time he looked
                        so stupid, I think he does not understand me; I can hardly understand
                            <hi>him</hi> I'm sure!"</p>
                    <p>Linton repeated his laugh, and glanced at Hareton tauntingly, who certainly,
                        did not seem quite clear of comprehension at that moment.</p>
                    <p>"There's nothing the matter, but laziness, is there, Earnshaw?" he said. "My
                        cousin <pb n="149"/>fancies you are an idiot. . .There you experience the
                        consequence of scorning "book-larning," as you would say. . .Have you
                        noticed, Catherine, his frightful Yorkshire pronunciation?"</p>
                    <p>"Why, where the devil is the use on't?" growled Hareton, more ready in
                        answering his daily companion. He was about to enlarge further, but the two
                        youngsters broke into a noisy fit of merriment; my giddy Miss being
                        delighted to discover that she might turn his strange talk to matter of
                        amusement.</p>
                    <p>"Where is the use of the devil in that sentence?" tittered Linton. "Papa told
                        you not to say any bad words, and you can't open your mouth without
                        one. . .Do try to behave like a gentleman, now do!"</p>
                    <p>"If thou wern't more a lass than a lad, I'd fell thee this minute, I would;
                        pitiful lath of a crater!" retorted the angry boor retreating, while his
                        face burnt with mingled rage, and <pb n="150"/>mortification; for he was
                        conscious of being insulted, and embarrassed how to resent it.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Heathcliff having overheard the conversation, as well as I, smiled when
                        he saw him go, but immediately afterwards, cast a look of singular aversion
                        on the flippant pair, who remained chattering in the door-way. The boy
                        finding animation enough while discussing Hareton's faults, and
                        deficiencies, and relating anecdotes of his goings on; and the girl
                        relishing his pert and spiteful sayings, without considering the ill-nature
                        they evinced: but I began to dislike, more than to compassionate, Linton,
                        and to excuse his father, in some measure, for holding him cheap.</p>
                    <p>We staid till afternoon: I could not tear Miss Cathy away, before: but
                        happily my master had not quitted his apartment, and remained ignorant of
                        our prolonged absence.</p>
                    <p>As we walked home, I would fain have enlightened my charge on the characters
                        of the <pb n="151"/>people we had quitted; but she got it into her head that
                        I was prejudiced against them.</p>
                    <p>"Aha!" she cried, "you take papa's side, Ellen—you are partial. . .I know, or
                        else you wouldn't have cheated me so many years, into the notion that Linton
                        lived a long way from here. I'm really extremely angry, only, I'm so
                        pleased, I can't show it! But you must hold your tongue about my
                        uncle. . .he's <hi>my</hi> uncle remember, and I'll scold papa for
                        quarrelling with him."</p>
                    <p>And so she ran on, till I dropped endeavouring to convince her of her
                        mistake.</p>
                    <p>She did not mention the visit that night, because she did not see Mr. Linton.
                        Next day it all came out, sadly to my chagrin; and still I was not
                        altogether sorry: I thought the burden of directing and warning would be
                        more efficiently borne by him than me, but he was too timid in giving
                        satisfactory reasons for his wish that she would shun connection with the
                        household of the Heights, and Catherine liked <pb n="152"/>good reasons for
                        every restraint that harassed her petted will.</p>
                    <p>"Papa!" she exclaimed after the morning's salutations, "guess whom I saw
                        yesterday, in my walk on the moors. . .Ah, papa, you started! you've not
                        done right, have you, now? I saw—But listen, and you shall hear how I found
                        you out, and Ellen, who is in league with you, and yet pretended to pity me
                        so, when I kept hoping, and was always disappointed about Linton's coming
                        back!"</p>
                    <p>She gave a faithful account of her excursion and its consequences; and my
                        master, though he cast more than one reproachful look at me, said nothing,
                        till she had concluded. Then he drew her to him, and asked if she knew why
                        he had concealed Linton's near neighbourhood from her? Could she think it
                        was to deny her a pleasure that she might harmlessly enjoy?</p>
                    <p>"It was because you disliked Mr. Heathcliff," she answered.</p>
                    <p><pb n="153"/>"Then you believe I care more for my own feelings than yours,
                        Cathy?" he said. "No, it was not because I disliked Mr. Heathcliff; but
                        because Mr. Heathcliff dislikes me; and is a most diabolical man, delighting
                        to wrong and ruin those he hates, if they give him the slightest
                        opportunity. I knew that you could not keep up an acquaintance with your
                        cousin, without being brought into contact with him; and I knew he would
                        detest you, on my account; so, for your own good, and nothing else, I took
                        precautions that you should not see Linton again—I meant to explain this
                        sometime as you grew older, and I'm sorry I delayed it!"</p>
                    <p>"But Mr. Heathcliff was quite cordial, papa," observed Catherine, not at all
                        convinced; "and <hi>he</hi> didn't object to our seeing each other: he said
                        I might come to his house, when I pleased, only I must not tell you, because
                        you had quarrelled with him, and would not forgive him for marrying aunt
                        Isabella. And <pb n="154"/>you won't—<hi>you</hi> are the one to be
                        blamed—he is willing to let <hi>us</hi> be friends, at least; Linton and
                        I—and you are not."</p>
                    <p>My master, perceiving that she would not take his word for her uncle-in-law's
                        evil disposition, gave a hasty sketch of his conduct to Isabella, and the
                        manner in which Wuthering Heights became his property. He could not bear to
                        discourse long upon the topic, for though he spoke little of it, he still
                        felt the same horror, and detestation of his ancient enemy that had occupied
                        his heart ever since Mrs. Linton's death. "She might have been living yet,
                        if it had not been for him!" was his constant bitter reflection; and, in his
                        eyes, Heathcliff seemed a murderer.</p>
                    <p>Miss Cathy, conversant with no bad deeds except her own slight acts of
                        disobedience, injustice and passion, rising from hot temper, and
                        thoughtlessness, and repented of on the day they were committed, was amazed
                        at the blackness of spirit that could brood on, and <pb n="155"/>cover
                        revenge for years; and deliberately prosecute its plans, without a
                        visitation of remorse. She appeared so deeply impressed and shocked at this
                        new view of human nature—excluded from all her studies and all her ideas
                        till now—that Mr. Edgar deemed it unnecessary to pursue the subject. He
                        merely added,</p>
                    <p>"You will know hereafter, darling, why I wish you to avoid his house and
                        family—now, return to your old employments and amusements, and think no more
                        about them!"</p>
                    <p>Catherine kissed her father, and sat down quietly to her lessons for a couple
                        of hours, according to custom: then she accompanied him into the grounds,
                        and the whole day passed as usual: but in the evening, when she had retired
                        to her room, and I went to help her to undress, I found her crying, on her
                        knees by the bedside.</p>
                    <p>Oh, fie, silly child!" I exclaimed. "If you had any real griefs, you'd be
                        ashamed to waste a tear on this little contrariety. You never <pb n="156"/>had one shadow of substantial sorrow, Miss Catherine. Suppose, for a
                        minute, that master and I were dead, and you were by yourself in the
                        world—how would you feel, then? Compare the present occasion with such an
                        affliction as that, and be thankful for the friends you have, instead of
                        coveting more."</p>
                    <p>"I'm not crying for myself, Ellen," she answered, "it's for him—He expected
                        to see me again, to-morrow, and there, he'll be so disappointed—and he'll
                        wait for me, and I shan't come!"</p>
                    <p>"Nonsense!" said I, "do you imagine he has thought as much of you, as you
                        have of him? Hasn't he Hareton, for a companion? Not one in a hundred would
                        weep at losing a relation they had just seen twice, for two
                        afternoons—Linton will conjecture how it is, and trouble himself no further
                        about you."</p>
                    <p>"But may I not write a note to tell him why I cannot come?" she asked rising
                        to her feet. "And just send those books, I promised <pb n="157"/>to lend
                        him—his books are not as nice as mine, and he wanted to have them extremely,
                        when I told him how interesting they were—May I not, Ellen?"</p>
                    <p>"No, indeed, no indeed!" replied I with decision. "Then he would write to
                        you, and there'd never be on end of it—No, Miss Catherine, the acquaintance
                        must be dropped entirely—so papa expects, and I shall see that it is
                        done."</p>
                    <p>"But how can one little note—" she recommenced, putting on an imploring
                        countenance.</p>
                    <p>"Silence!" I interrupted. "We'll not begin with your little notes—Get into
                        bed!"</p>
                    <p>She threw at me a very naughty look, so naughty that I would not kiss her
                        good-night at first: I covered her up, and shut her door, in great
                        displeasure—but, repenting half-way, I returned softly, and lo! there was
                        Miss, standing at the table with a bit of blank paper before her, and a
                        pencil in her hand, which <pb n="158"/>she guiltily slipped out of sight, on
                        my re-entrance.</p>
                    <p>"You'll get nobody to take that, Catherine," I said, "if you write it; and at
                        present I shall put out your candle."</p>
                    <p>I set the extinguisher on the flame, receiving as I did so, a slap on my
                        hand, and a petulant "cross thing!" I then quitted her again, and she drew
                        the bolt in one of her worst, most peevish humours.</p>
                    <p>The letter was finished and forwarded to its destination by a milk-fetcher
                        who came from the village, but that I didn't learn till some time
                        afterwards. Weeks passed on, and Cathy recovered her temper, though she grew
                        wondrous fond of stealing off to corners by herself, and often, if I came
                        near her suddenly while reading she would start, and bend over the book,
                        evidently desirous to hide it; and I detected edges of loose paper sticking
                        out beyond the leaves.</p>
                    <p><pb n="159"/>She also got a trick of coming down early in the morning, and
                        lingering about the kitchen, as if she were expecting the arrival of
                        something; and she had a small drawer in a cabinet in the library which she
                        would trifle over for hours, and whose key she took special care to remove
                        when she left it.</p>
                    <p>One day, as she inspected this drawer, I observed that the play-things, and
                        trinkets which recently formed its contents, were transmuted into bits of
                        folded paper.</p>
                    <p>My curiosity and suspicions were roused; I determined to take a peep at her
                        mysterious treasures; so, at night, as soon as she and my master were safe
                        up stairs, I searched and readily found among my house keys, one that would
                        fit the lock. Having opened, I emptied the whole contents into my apron, and
                        took them with me to examine at leisure in my own chamber.</p>
                    <p>Though I could not but suspect, I was still surprised to discover that they
                        were a mass of <pb n="160"/>correspondence, daily almost, it must have been,
                        from Linton Heathcliff, answers to documents forwarded by her. The earlier
                        dated were embarrassed and short; gradually however they expanded into
                        copious love letters, foolish as the age of the writer rendered natural, yet
                        with touches, here and there, which I thought, were borrowed from a more
                        experienced source.</p>
                    <p>Some of them struck me as singularly odd compounds of ardour, and flatness;
                        commencing in strong feeling, and concluding in the affected, wordy way that
                        a school-boy might use to a fancied, incorporeal sweetheart.</p>
                    <p>Whether they satisfied Cathy, I don't know, but they appeared very worthless
                        trash to me.</p>
                    <p>After turning over as many as I thought proper, I tied them in a
                        handkerchief, and set them aside, re-locking the vacant drawer.</p>
                    <p>Following her habit, my young lady descended early, and visited the kitchen:
                        I watched her go to the door, on the arrival <pb n="161"/>of a certain
                        little boy; and, while the dairy maid filled his can, she tucked something
                        into his jacket pocket, and plucked something out.</p>
                    <p>I went round by the garden, and laid wait for the messenger; who fought
                        valorously to defend his trust, and we spilt the milk between us; but I
                        succeeded in abstracting the epistle; and threatening serious consequences
                        if he did not look sharp home, I remained under the wall, and perused Miss
                        Cathy's affectionate composition. It was more simple and more eloquent than
                        her cousin's, very pretty and very silly. I shook my head, and went
                        meditating into the house.</p>
                    <p>The day being wet, she could not divert herself with rambling about the park;
                        so, at the conclusion of her morning studies, she resorted to the solace of
                        the drawer. Her father sat reading at the table; and I, on purpose, had
                        sought a bit of work in some unripped fringes of the window curtain, keeping
                        my eye steadily fixed on her proceedings.</p>
                    <p><pb n="162"/>Never did any bird flying back to a plundered nest which it had
                        left brim-ful of chirping young ones, express more complete despair in its
                        anguished cries, and flutterings, than she by her single "Oh!" And the
                        change that transfigured her late happy countenance. Mr. Linton looked
                        up.</p>
                    <p>"What is the matter, love? Have you hurt yourself?" he said.</p>
                    <p>His tone and look, assured her <hi>he</hi> had not been the discoverer of the
                        hoard.</p>
                    <p>"No papa—" she gasped. "Ellen! Ellen! come up-stairs—I'm sick!"</p>
                    <p>I obeyed her summons, and accompanied her out.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, Ellen! you have got them," she commenced immediately, dropping on her
                        knees, when we were enclosed alone. "O, give them to me, and I'll never
                        never do so again! Don't tell papa—You have not told papa, Ellen, say you
                        have not! I've been exceedingly naughty, but I won't do it any more!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="163"/>With a grave severity in my manner, I bid her stand up.</p>
                    <p>"So, I exclaimed, Miss Catherine, you are tolerably far on, it seems—you may
                        well be ashamed of them! A fine bundle of trash you study in your leisure
                        hours, to be sure—Why it's good enough to be printed! And what do you
                        suppose the master will think, when I display it before him? I haven't shown
                        it yet, but you needn't imagine I shall keep your ridiculous secrets—For
                        shame! And you must have led the way in writing such absurdities, he would
                        not have thought of beginning, I'm certain."</p>
                    <p>"I didn't! I didn't!" sobbed Cathy, fit to break her heart. "I didn't once
                        think of loving him till—"</p>
                    <p>"<hi>Loving!</hi>" cried I, as scornfully as I could utter the word.
                            "<hi>Loving</hi>! Did anybody ever hear the like! I might just as well
                        talk of loving the miller who comes once a year to buy our corn. Pretty
                        loving, indeed, and both <pb n="164"/>times together you have seen Linton
                        hardly four hours, in your life! Now here is the babyish trash. I'm going
                        with it to the library; and we'll see what your father says to such
                            <hi>loving</hi>."</p>
                    <p>She sprang at her precious epistles, but I held them above my head; and then
                        she poured out further frantic entreaties that I would burn them—do anything
                        rather than show them. And being really fully as inclined to laugh as scold,
                        for I esteemed it all girlish vanity, I at length, relented in a measure,
                        and asked,</p>
                    <p>"If I consent to burn them, will you promise faithfully, neither to send, nor
                        receive a letter again, nor a book, for I perceive you have sent him books,
                        nor locks of hair, nor rings, nor playthings?"</p>
                    <p>"We don't send playthings!" cried Catherine, her pride overcoming her
                        shame.</p>
                    <p>"Nor anything at all, then, my lady!" I said. "Unless you will, here I
                        go."</p>
                    <p><pb n="165"/>"I promise, Ellen!" she cried catching my dress. "Oh put them in
                        the fire, do, do!"</p>
                    <p>But when I proceeded to open a place with the poker, the sacrifice was too
                        painful to be borne—She earnestly supplicated that I would spare her one or
                        two.</p>
                    <p>"One or two, Ellen, to keep for Linton's sake!"</p>
                    <p>I unknotted the handkerchief, and commenced dropping them in from an angle,
                        and the flame curled up the chimney.</p>
                    <p>"I will have one, you cruel wretch!" she screamed, darting her hand into the
                        fire, and drawing forth some half consumed fragments, at the expense of her
                        fingers.</p>
                    <p>"Very well—and I will have some to exhibit to papa!" I answered shaking back
                        the rest into the bundle, and turning anew to the door.</p>
                    <p>"She emptied her blackened pieces into the flames, and motioned me to finish
                        the immolation. It was done; I stirred up the ashes, and <pb n="166"/>interred them under a shovel full of coals; and she mutely, and with a
                        sense of intense injury, retired to her private apartment. I descended to
                        tell my master that the young lady's qualm of sickness was almost gone, but
                        I judged it best for her to lie down a while.</p>
                    <p>She wouldn't dine; but she re-appeared at tea, pale and red about the eyes,
                        and marvellously subdued in outward aspect.</p>
                    <p>Next morning I answered the letter by a slip of paper inscribed, "Master
                        Heathcliff is requested to send no more notes to Miss Linton as she will not
                        receive them." And, thenceforth the little boy came with vacant pockets.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="167"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER VIII.</head>

                    <p>Summer drew to an end, and early Autumn—it was past Michaelmas, but the
                        harvest was late that year, and a few of our fields were still
                        uncleared.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Linton and his daughter would frequently walk out among the reapers: at
                        the carrying of the last sheaves, they stayed till dusk, and the evening
                        happening to be chill damp, my master caught a bad cold, that settling
                        obstinately on his lungs, confined him <pb n="168"/>indoors throughout the
                        whole of the winter, nearly without intermission.</p>
                    <p>Poor Cathy, frightened from her little romance, had been considerably sadder
                        and duller since its abandonment: and her father insisted on her reading
                        less, and taking more exercise. She had his companionship no longer; I
                        esteemed it a duty to supply its lack, as much as possible, with mine; an
                        inefficient substitute, for I could only spare two or three hours, from my
                        numerous diurnal occupations, to follow her footsteps, and then, my society
                        was obviously less desirable than his.</p>
                    <p>On an afternoon in October, or the beginning of November, a fresh watery
                        afternoon, when the turf and paths were rustling with moist, withered
                        leaves, and the cold, blue sky was half hidden by clouds, dark grey
                        streamers, rapidly mounting from the west, and boding abundant rain; I
                        requested my young lady to forego her ramble because I was certain of
                        showers. She refused; and I <pb n="169"/>unwillingly donned a cloak, and
                        took my umbrella to accompany her on a stroll to the bottom of the park; a
                        formal walk which she generally affected if low-spirited; and that she
                        invariably was when Mr. Edgar had been worse than ordinary; a thing never
                        known from his confession, but guessed both by her and me from his increased
                        silence, and the melancholy of his countenance.</p>
                    <p>She went sadly on; there was no running or bounding now; though the chill
                        wind might well have tempted her to a race. And often, from the side of my
                        eye, I could detect her raising a hand, and brushing something off her
                        cheek.</p>
                    <p>I gazed round for a means of diverting her thoughts. On one side of the road
                        rose a high, rough bank, where hazels and stunted oaks, with their roots
                        half exposed, held uncertain tenour: the soil was too loose for the latter;
                        and strong winds had blown some nearly horizontal. In summer, Miss Catherine
                            <pb n="170"/>delighted to climb along these trunks, and sit in the
                        branches, swinging twenty feet above the ground; and I pleased with her
                        agility, and her light, childish heart, still considered it proper to scold
                        every time I caught her at such an elevation; but so that she knew there was
                        no necessity for descending. From dinner to tea she would lie in her
                        breeze-rocked cradle, doing nothing except singing old songs—my nursery
                        lore—to herself, or watching the birds, joint tenants, feed and entice their
                        young ones to fly, or nestling with closed lids, half thinking, half
                        dreaming, happier than words can express.</p>
                    <p>"Look, Miss!" I exclaimed, pointing to a nook under the roots of one twisted
                        tree. "Winter is not here yet. There's a little flower, up yonder, the last
                        bud from the multitude of blue-bells that clouded those turf steps in July
                        with a lilac mist. Will you clamber up, and pluck it to show to papa?"</p>
                    <p>Cathy stared a long time at the lonely <pb n="171"/>blossom trembling in its
                        earthy shelter, and replied, at length—</p>
                    <p>"No, I'll not touch it—but it looks melancholy, does it not, Ellen?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes," I observed, "about as starved and sackless as you—your cheeks are
                        bloodless; let us take hold of hands and run. You're so low, I dare say I
                        shall keep up with you."</p>
                    <p>"No," she repeated, and continued sauntering on, pausing, at intervals, to
                        muse over a bit of moss, or a tuft of blanched grass, or a fungus spreading
                        its bright orange among the heaps of brown foliage; and, ever and anon, her
                        hand was lifted to her averted face.</p>
                    <p>"Catherine, why are you crying, love?" I asked, approaching and putting my
                        arm over her shoulder. "You mustn't cry, because papa has a cold; be
                        thankful it is nothing worse."</p>
                    <p>She now put no further restraint on her tears; her breath was stifled by
                        sobs.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, it <hi>will</hi> be something worse," she said. <pb n="172"/>"And what
                        shall I do when papa and you leave me, and I am by myself? I can't forget
                        your words, Ellen, they are always in my ear. How life will be changed, how
                        dreary the world will be, when papa and you are dead."</p>
                    <p>"None can tell, whether you wont die before us," I replied. "It's wrong to
                        anticipate evil—we'll hope there are years and years to come before any of
                        us go—master is young, and I am strong, and hardly forty-five. My mother
                        lived till eighty, a canty dame to the last. And suppose Mr. Linton were
                        spared till he saw sixty, that would be more years than you have counted,
                        Miss. And would it not be foolish to mourn a calamity above twenty years
                        beforehand?"</p>
                    <p>"But Aunt Isabella was younger than papa," she remarked, gazing up with timid
                        hope to seek further consolation.</p>
                    <p>"Aunt Isabella had not you and me to nurse her," I replied. "She wasn't as
                        happy as master; she hadn't as much to live <pb n="173"/>for. All you need
                        do, is to wait well on your father, and cheer him by letting him see you
                        cheerful; and avoid giving him anxiety on any subject—mind that, Cathy! I'll
                        not disguise, but you might kill him, if you were wild and reckless, and
                        cherished a foolish, fanciful affection for the son of a person who would be
                        glad to have him in his grave—and allowed him to discover that you fretted
                        over the separation, he has judged it expedient to make."</p>
                    <p>"I fret about nothing on earth except papa's illness," answered my companion.
                        "I care for nothing in comparison with papa. And I'll never—never—oh, never,
                        while I have my senses, do an act, or say a word to vex him. I love him
                        better than myself, Ellen; and I know it by this—I pray every night that I
                        may live after him; because I would rather be miserable than that he should
                        be—that proves I love him better than myself."</p>
                    <p>"Good words," I replied. "But deeds must prove it also; and after he is well,
                            <pb n="174"/>remember you don't forget resolutions formed in the hour of
                        fear."</p>
                    <p>As we talked, we neared a door that opened on the road: and my young lady,
                        lightening into sunshine again, climbed up, and seated herself on the top of
                        the wall, reaching over to gather some hips that bloomed scarlet on the
                        summit branches of the wild rose trees, shadowing the highway side, the
                        lower fruit had disappeared, but only birds could touch the upper, except
                        from Cathy's present station.</p>
                    <p>In stretching to pull them, her hat fell off; and as the door was locked, she
                        proposed scrambling down to recover it. I bid her be cautious lest she got a
                        fall, and she nimbly disappeared.</p>
                    <p>But the return was no such easy matter; the stones were smooth and neatly
                        cemented, and the rosebushes, and blackberry stragglers could yield no
                        assistance in re-ascending. I, like a fool, didn't recollect that till I
                        heard her laughing, and exclaiming—</p>
                    <p><pb n="175"/>"Ellen! you'll have to fetch the key, or else I must run round
                        to the porter's lodge. I can't scale the ramparts on this side!"</p>
                    <p>"Stay where you are," I answered, "I have my bundle of keys in my pocket;
                        perhaps I may manage to open it, if not, I'll go."</p>
                    <p>Catherine amused herself with dancing to and fro before the door, while I
                        tried all the large keys in succession. I had applied the last, and found
                        that none would do; so, repeating my desire that she would remain there, I
                        was about to hurry home as fast as I could, when an approaching sound
                        arrested me. It was the trot of a horse; Cathy's dance stopped; and in a
                        minute the horse stopped also.</p>
                    <p>"Who is that?" I whispered.</p>
                    <p>"Ellen, I wish you could open the door," whispered back my companion,
                        anxiously.</p>
                    <p>"Ho, Miss Linton!" cried a deep voice, (the rider's.) "I'm glad to meet you.
                        Don't be in haste to enter, for I have an explanation to ask and
                        obtain."</p>
                    <p><pb n="176"/>"I shant speak to you, Mr. Heathcliff!" answered Catherine.
                        "Papa says you are a wicked man, and you hate both him and me; and Ellen
                        says the same."</p>
                    <p>"That is nothing to the purpose," said Heathcliff. (He it was.) "I don't hate
                        my son, I suppose, and it is concerning him, that I demand your attention.
                        Yes! you have cause to blush. Two or three months since, were you not in the
                        habit of writing to Linton? making love in play, eh? You deserved, both of
                        you, flogging for that! You especially, the elder, and less sensitive, as it
                        turns out. I've got your letters, and if you give me any pertness, I'll send
                        them to your father. I presume you grew weary of the amusement, and dropped
                        it, didn't you? Well, you dropped Linton with it, into a Slough of Despond.
                        He was in earnest—in love—really. As true as I live, he's dying for
                        you—breaking his heart at your fickleness, not figuratively, but actually.
                        Though Hareton has made him a standing jest <pb n="177"/>for six weeks, and
                        I have used more serious measures, and attempted to frighten him out of his
                        idiocy, he gets worse daily, and he'll be under the sod before summer,
                        unless you restore him!"</p>
                    <p>"How can you lie so glaringly to the poor child!" I called from the inside.
                        "Pray ride on! How can you deliberately get up such paltry falsehoods? Miss
                        Cathy, I'll knock the lock off with a stone, you wont believe that vile
                        nonsense. You can feel in yourself, it is impossible that a person should
                        die for love of a stranger."</p>
                    <p>"I was not aware there were eaves-droppers," muttered the detected villain.
                        "Worthy Mrs. Dean, I like you, but I don't like your double dealing," he
                        added, aloud. "How could <hi>you</hi> lie so glaringly, as to affirm I hated
                        the 'poor child?' And invent bugbear stories to terrify her from my
                        door-stones? Catherine Linton, (the very name warms me), my bonny lass, I
                        shall be from home all this week, go and <pb n="178"/>see if I have not
                        spoken truth; do, there's a darling! Just imagine your father in my place,
                        and Linton in yours; then think how you would value your careless lover, if
                        he refused to stir a step to comfort you, when your father, himself,
                        entreated him; and don't, from pure stupidity, fall into the same error. I
                        swear, on my salvation, he's going to his grave, and none but you can save
                        him!"</p>
                    <p>The lock gave way, and I issued out.</p>
                    <p>"I swear Linton is dying," repeated Heathcliff, looking hard at me. "And
                        grief and disappointment are hastening his death. Nelly, if you wont let her
                        go, you can walk over yourself. But I shall not return till this time next
                        week; and I think your master himself would scarcely object to her visiting
                        her cousin!"</p>
                    <p>"Come in," said I, taking Cathy by the arm and half forcing her to re-enter,
                        for she lingered, viewing, with troubled eyes, the features of the speaker,
                        too stern to express his inward deceit.</p>
                    <p><pb n="179"/>He pushed his horse close, and, bending down, observed—</p>
                    <p>"Miss Catherine, I'll own to you that I have little patience with Linton—and
                        Hareton and Joseph have less. I'll own that he's with a harsh set. He pines
                        for kindness, as well as love; and a kind word from you would be his best
                        medicine. Don't mind Mrs. Dean's cruel cautions, but be generous, and
                        contrive to see him. He dreams of you day and night, and cannot be persuaded
                        that you don't hate him, since you neither write nor call."</p>
                    <p>I closed the door, and rolled a stone to assist the loosened lock in holding
                        it; and spreading my umbrella, I drew my charge underneath, for the rain
                        began to drive through the moaning branches of the tress, and warned us to
                        avoid delay.</p>
                    <p>Our hurry prevented any comment on the encounter with Heathcliff, as we
                        stretched towards home; but I divined instinctively that Catherine's heart
                        was clouded now in double <pb n="180"/>darkness. Her features were so sad,
                        they did not seem hers: she evidently regarded what she had heard as every
                        syllable true.</p>
                    <p>The master had retired to rest before we came in. Cathy stole to his room to
                        inquire how he was; he had fallen asleep. She returned, and asked me to sit
                        with her in the library. We took our tea together; and afterwards she lay
                        down on the rug, and told me not to talk for she was weary.</p>
                    <p>I got a book, and pretended to read. As soon as she supposed me absorbed in
                        my occupation, she recommenced her silent weeping: it appeared, at present,
                        her favourite diversion. I suffered her to enjoy it a while; then, I
                        expostulated; deriding and ridiculing all Mr. Heathcliff's assertions about
                        his son; as if I were certain she would coincide. Alas! I hadn't skill to
                        counteract the effect his account had produced; it was just what he
                        intended.</p>
                    <p>"You may be right, Ellen," she answered; "but I shall never feel at ease till
                        I know— <pb n="181"/>and I must tell Linton it is not my fault that I don't
                        write; and convince him that I shall not change."</p>
                    <p>What use were anger and protestations against her silly credulity? We parted
                        that night hostile—but next day beheld me on the road to Wuthering Heights,
                        by the side of my wilful young mistress's pony. I couldn't bear to witness
                        her sorrow, to see her pale, dejected countenance, and heavy eyes; and I
                        yielded in the faint hope that Linton himself might prove by his reception
                        of us, how little of the tale was founded on fact.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <p>
                        <pb n="182"/>
                    </p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <head>CHAPTER IX.</head>

                    <p>The rainy night had ushered in a misty morning—half frost, half drizzle—and
                        temporary brooks crossed our path, gurgling from the uplands. My feet were
                        thoroughly wetted; I was cross and low, exactly the humour suited for making
                        the most of these disagreeable things.</p>
                    <p>We entered the farm-house by the kitchen way to ascertain whether Mr.
                        Heathcliff were really absent; because I put slight faith in his own
                        affirmation.</p>
                    <p><pb n="183"/>Joseph seemed sitting in a sort of elysium alone, beside a
                        roaring fire; a quart of ale on the table near him, bristling with large
                        pieces of toasted oat cake; and his black, short pipe in his mouth.</p>
                    <p>Catherine ran to the hearth to warm herself. I asked if the master were
                        in?</p>
                    <p>My question remained so long unanswered, that I thought the old man had grown
                        deaf, and repeated it louder.</p>
                    <p>"Na—ay!" he snarled, or rather screamed through his nose. "Na—ay! yah muh goa
                        back whear yah coom frough."</p>
                    <p>"Joseph," cried a peevish voice, simultaneously with me, from the inner room.
                        "How often am I to call you? There are only a few red ashes now. Joseph!
                        come this moment."</p>
                    <p>Vigorous puffs, and a resolute stare into the grate declared he had no ear
                        for this appeal. The housekeeper and Hareton were invisible; one gone on an
                        errand, and the other at his <pb n="184"/>work, probably. We knew Linton's
                        tones and entered.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, I hope you'll die in a garret! starved to death," said the boy,
                        mistaking our approach for that of his negligent attendant.</p>
                    <p>He stopped, on observing his error; his cousin flew to him.</p>
                    <p>"Is that you, Miss Linton?" he said, raising his head from the arm of the
                        great chair, in which he reclined. "No—don't kiss me. It takes my
                        breath—dear me! Papa said you would call," continued he, after recovering a
                        little from Catherine's embrace; while she stood by looking very contrite.
                        "Will you shut the door, if you please? you left it open—and those—those
                            <hi>detestable</hi> creatures wont bring coals to the fire. It's so
                        cold!"</p>
                    <p>I stirred up the cinders, and fetched a scuttle full myself. The invalid
                        complained of being covered with ashes; but he had a tiresome cough, and
                        looked feverish and ill, so I did not rebuke his temper.</p>
                    <p><pb n="185"/>"Well, Linton," murmured Catherine, when his corrugated brow
                        relaxed. "Are you glad to see me? Can I do you any good?"</p>
                    <p>"Why didn't you come before?" he said. "You should have come, instead of
                        writing. It tired me dreadfully, writing those long letters. I'd far rather
                        have talked to you. Now, I can neither bear to talk, nor anything else. I
                        wonder where Zillah is! will you, (looking at me,) step into the kitchen and
                        see?"</p>
                    <p>I had received no thanks for my other service; and being unwilling to run to
                        and fro at his behest, I replied—</p>
                    <p>"Nobody is out there but Joseph."</p>
                    <p>"I want to drink," he exclaimed, fretfully, turning away. "Zillah is
                        constantly gadding off to Gimmerton since papa went. It's miserable! And I'm
                        obliged to come down here—they resolved never to hear me up stairs."</p>
                    <p>"Is your father attentive to you. Master <pb n="186"/>Heathcliff?" I asked,
                        perceiving Catherine to be checked in her friendly advances.</p>
                    <p>"Attentive? He makes <hi>them</hi> a little more attentive, at least," he
                        cried. "The wretches! Do you know. Miss Linton, that brute Hareton laughs at
                        me—I hate him—indeed, I hate them all—they are odious beings."</p>
                    <p>Cathy began searching for some water; she lighted on a pitcher in the
                        dresser; filled a tumbler, and brought it. He bid her add a spoonful of wine
                        from a bottle on the table; and having swallowed a small portion, appeared
                        more tranquil, and said she was very kind.</p>
                    <p>"And are you glad to see me?" asked she, reiterating her former question, and
                        pleased to detect the faint dawn of a smile.</p>
                    <p>"Yes, I am—It's something new to hear a voice like yours!" he replied, "but I
                            <hi>have</hi> been vexed, because you wouldn't come—And papa swore it
                        was owing to me; he called me a pitiful, shuffling, worthless thing; and
                        said you <pb n="187"/>despised me; and if he had been in my place, he would
                        be more the master of the Grange than your father, by this time. But you
                        don't despise me, do you Miss—"</p>
                    <p>"I wish you would say Catherine, or Cathy!" interrupted my young lady.
                        "Despise you? No! Next to papa, and Ellen, I love you better than anybody
                        living. I don't love Mr. Heathcliff, though; and I dare not come when he
                        returns; will he stay away many days?"</p>
                    <p>"Not many:" answered Linton, but he goes onto the moors frequently, since the
                        shooting season commenced, and you might spend an hour or two with me, in
                        his absence—Do! say you will! I think I should not be peevish with you;
                        you'd not provoke me, and you'd always be ready to help me, wouldn't
                        you?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes," said Catherine stroking his long soft hair, "if I could only get
                        papa's consent, I'd <pb n="188"/>spend half my time with you—Pretty Linton!
                        I wish you were my brother!"</p>
                    <p>"And then you would like me as well as your father?" observed he more
                        cheerfully. "But papa says you would love me better than him, and all the
                        world, if you were my wife—so I'd rather you were that!"</p>
                    <p>"No! I should never love anybody better than papa," she returned gravely.
                        "And people hate their wives, sometimes; but not their sisters and brothers,
                        and if you were the latter, you would live with us, and papa would be as
                        fond of you, as he is of me."</p>
                    <p>Linton denied that people ever hated their wives; but Cathy affirmed they
                        did, and in her wisdom, instanced his own father's aversion to her aunt.</p>
                    <p>I endeavoured to stop her thoughtless tongue—I couldn't succeed, till
                        everything she knew was out. Master Heathcliff, much irritated, asserted her
                        relation was false.</p>
                    <p><pb n="189"/>"Papa told me; and papa does not tell falsehoods!" she answered
                        pertly.</p>
                    <p>"<hi>My</hi> papa scorns yours!" cried Linton. "He calls him a sneaking
                        fool!"</p>
                    <p>"Yours is a wicked man," retorted Catherine, and you are very naughty to dare
                        to repeat what he says—He must be wicked, to have made aunt Isabella leave
                        him as she did!"</p>
                    <p>"She didn't leave him," said the boy. "you shan't contradict me!"</p>
                    <p>"She did!" cried my young lady.</p>
                    <p>"Well I'll tell <hi>you</hi> something!" said Linton "Your mother hated your
                        father, now then."</p>
                    <p>"Oh!" exclaimed Catherine, too enraged to continue.</p>
                    <p>"And she loved mine!" added he.</p>
                    <p>"You little liar! I hate you now," she panted, and her face grew red with
                        passion.</p>
                    <p>"She did! she did!" sang Linton sinking into the recess of his chair, and
                        leaning back <pb n="190"/>his head to enjoy the agitation of the other
                        disputant who stood behind.</p>
                    <p>"Hush, Master Heathcliff!" I said, "that's your father's tale too, I
                        suppose."</p>
                    <p>"It isn't—you hold your tongue!" he answered, "she did, she did, Catherine,
                        she did, she did!"</p>
                    <p>"Cathy, beside herself, gave the chair a violent push, and caused him to fall
                        against one arm. He was immediately seized by a suffocating cough that soon
                        ended his triumph.</p>
                    <p>It lasted so long, that it frightened even me. As to his cousin, she wept
                        with all her might, aghast at the mischief she had done, though she said
                        nothing.</p>
                    <p>I held him, till the fit exhausted itself. Then he thrust me away; and leant
                        his head down, silently—Catherine quelled her lamentations also, took a seat
                        opposite, and looked solemnly into the fire.</p>
                    <p>"How do you feel now, Master Heathcliff," I inquired after waiting ten
                        minutes.</p>
                    <p><pb n="191"/>"I wish <hi>she</hi> felt as I do," he replied, "spiteful, cruel
                        thing! Hareton never touches me, he never struck me in his life—And I was
                        better to-day—and there—" his voice died in a whimper.</p>
                    <p>"<hi>I</hi> didn't strike you!" muttered Cathy chewing her lip to prevent
                        another burst of emotion.</p>
                    <p>He sighed and moaned like one under great suffering; and kept it up for a
                        quarter of an hour, on purpose to distress his cousin, apparently, for
                        whenever he caught a stifled sob from her, he put renewed pain and pathos
                        into the inflexions of his voice.</p>
                    <p>"I'm sorry I hurt you, Linton!" she said at length, racked beyond endurance.
                        "But <hi>I</hi> couldn't have been hurt by that little push; and I had no
                        idea that you could, either—you're not much, are you, Linton? Don't let me
                        go home, thinking I've done you harm! answer, speak to me."</p>
                    <p><pb n="192"/>"I can't speak to you," he murmured, "you've hurt me so, that I
                        shall lie awake all night, choking with this cough! If you had it you'd know
                        what it was—but <hi>you'll</hi> be comfortably asleep, while I'm in
                        agony—and nobody near me! I wonder how you would like to pass those fearful
                        nights!" And he began to wail aloud for very pity of himself.</p>
                    <p>"Since you are in the habit of passing dreadful nights," I said, "it wont be
                        Miss who spoils your ease; you'd be the same, had she never come—However,
                        she shall not disturb you, again—and perhaps, you'll get quieter when we
                        leave you."</p>
                    <p>"Must I go?" asked Catherine dolefully, bending over him. "Do you want me to
                        go, Linton?"</p>
                    <p>"You can^t alter what you've done?" he replied pettishly, shrinking from her,
                        "unless you alter it for the worse, by teasing me into a fever!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="193"/>"Well, then I must go?" she repeated.</p>
                    <p>"Let me alone, at least," said he "I can't bear your talking!"</p>
                    <p>She lingered, and resisted my persuasions to departure, a tiresome while, but
                        as he neither looked up, nor spoke, she finally made a movement to the door
                        and I followed.</p>
                    <p>We were recalled by a scream—Linton had slid from his seat on to the
                        hearthstone, and lay writhing in the mere perverseness of an indulged plague
                        of a child, determined to be as grievous and harassing as it can.</p>
                    <p>I thoroughly guaged his disposition from his behaviour, and saw at once it
                        would be folly to attempt humouring him. Not so my companion, she ran back
                        in terror, knelt down, and cried, and soothed, and entreated, till he grew
                        quiet from lack of breath, by no means from compunction at distressing
                        her.</p>
                    <p>"I shall lift him on to the settle," I said, "and he may roll about as he
                        pleases; we can't stop to watch him—I hope you are <pb n="194"/>satisfied,
                        Miss Cathy that <hi>you</hi> are not the person to benefit him, and that his
                        condition of health is not occasioned by attachment to you. Now then, there
                        he is! Come away, as soon as he knows there is nobody by to care for his
                        nonsense, he'll be glad to lie still!"</p>
                    <p>She placed a cushion under his head, and offered him some water, he rejected
                        the latter, and tossed uneasily on the former, as if it were a stone, or a
                        block of wood.</p>
                    <p>She tried to put it more comfortably.</p>
                    <p>"I can't do with that," he said, "it's not high enough!"</p>
                    <p>Catherine brought another to lay above it.</p>
                    <p>"That's <hi>too</hi> high!" murmured the provoking thing.</p>
                    <p>"How must I arrange it, then?" she asked despairingly.</p>
                    <p>He twined himself up to her, as she half knelt by the settle, and converted
                        her shoulder into a support.</p>
                    <p>"No, that won't do!" I said. "You'll be <pb n="195"/>content with the
                        cushion, Master Heathcliff! Miss has wasted too much time on you, already;
                        we cannot remain five minutes longer."</p>
                    <p>"Yes, yes, we can!" replied Cathy. "He's good and patient, now—He's beginning
                        to think I shall have far greater misery than he will, to-night, if I
                        believe he is the worse for my visit; and then, I dare not come again—Tell
                        the truth about it, Linton—for I mutsn't come, if I have hurt you."</p>
                    <p>"You must come, to cure me," he answered. "You ought to come because you have
                        hurt me—You know you have, extremely! I was not as ill, when you entered, as
                        I am at present—was I?"</p>
                    <p>"But you've made yourself ill by crying, and being in a passion."</p>
                    <p>"I didn't do it all," said his cousin. "However, we'll be friends now. And
                        you want me—you would wish to see me sometimes, really?"</p>
                    <p>"I told you, I did!" he replied impatiently. <pb n="196"/>"Sit on the settle
                        and let me lean on your knee—That's as mama used to do, whole afternoons
                        together—Sit quite still, and don't talk, but you may sing a song if you can
                        sing, or you may say a nice, long interesting ballad—one of those you
                        promised to teach me, or a story—I'd rather have a ballad though,
                        begin."</p>
                    <p>Catherine repeated the longest she could remember. The employment pleased
                        both mightily. Linton would have another, and after that another;
                        notwithstanding my strenuous objections; and so, they went on, until the
                        clock struck twelve, and we heard Hareton in the court, returning for his
                        dinner.</p>
                    <p>"And to-morrow, Catherine, will you be here to-morrow?" asked young
                        Heathcliff, holding her frock, as she rose reluctantly.</p>
                    <p>"No!" I answered, "nor next day neither," She however, gave a different
                        response, evidently, for his forehead cleared, as she stooped, and whispered
                        in his ear.</p>
                    <p><pb n="197"/>"You won't go to-morrow, recollect, Miss!" I commenced when we
                        were out of the house. "You are not dreaming of it, are you?"</p>
                    <p>She smiled.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, I'll take good care!" I continued, "I'll have that lock mended, and you
                        can escape by no way else."</p>
                    <p>"I can get over the wall," she said laughing. "The Grange is not a prison,
                        Ellen, and you are not my jailer. And besides I'm almost seventeen. I'm a
                        woman—and I'm certain Linton would recover quickly if he had me to look
                        after him—I'm older than he is, you know, and wiser, less childish, am I
                        not? And he'll soon do as I direct him with some slight coaxing—He's a
                        pretty little darling when he's good. I'd make such a pet of him, if he were
                        mine—We should never quarrel, should we, after we were used to each other?
                        Don't you like him, Ellen?"</p>
                    <p>"Like him?" I exclaimed. "The worst <pb n="198"/>tempered bit of a sickly
                        slip that ever struggled into its teens! Happily, as Mr. Heathcliff
                        conjectured, he'll not win twenty! I doubt whether he'll see spring
                        indeed—and small loss to his family, whenever he drops off; and lucky it is
                        for us that his father took him—The kinder he was treated, the more tedious
                        and selfish he'd be! I'm glad you have no chance of having him for a
                        husband, Miss Catherine!"</p>
                    <p>My companion waxed serious at hearing this speech—To speak of his death so
                        regardlessly wounded her feelings.</p>
                    <p>"He's younger than I," she answered, after a protracted pause of meditation,
                        "and he ought to live the longest, he will—he must live as long as I do.
                        He's as strong now as when he first came into the North, I'm positive of
                        that! It's only a cold that ails him, the same as papa has—You say papa will
                        get better, and why shouldn't he?"</p>
                    <p><pb n="199"/>"Well, well," I cried, "after all, we needn't trouble ourselves;
                        for listen, Miss, and mind, I'll keep my word—If you attempt going to
                        Wuthering Heights again, with, or without me, I shall inform Mr. Linton, and
                        unless he allow it, the intimacy with your cousin must not be revived."</p>
                    <p>"It has been revived!" muttered Cathy sulkily.</p>
                    <p>"Must not be continued, then!" I said.</p>
                    <p>"We'll see!" was her reply, and she set off at a gallop, leaving me to toil
                        in the rear.</p>
                    <p>We both reached home before our dinner-time: my master supposed we had been
                        wandering through the park, and therefore, he demanded no explanation of our
                        absence. As soon as I entered, I hastened to change my soaked shoes, and
                        stockings; but sitting such a while at the Heights, had done the mischief.
                        On the succeeding morning, I was laid up; and during three weeks I remained
                        incapacitated for attending to my duties—a calamity <pb n="200"/>never
                        experienced prior to that period, and, never I am thankful to say since.</p>
                    <p>My little mistress behaved like an angel in coming to wait on me, and cheer
                        my solitude: the confinement brought me exceedingly low—It is wearisome, to
                        a stirring active body—but few have slighter reasons for complaint than I
                        had. The moment Catherine left Mr. Linton's room, she appeared at my
                        bed-side. Her day was divided between us; no amusement usurped a minute: she
                        neglected her meals, her studies, and her play; and she was the fondest
                        nurse that ever watched: she must have had a warm heart, when she loved her
                        father so, to give so much to me!</p>
                    <p>I said her days were divided between us; but the master retired early, and I
                        generally needed nothing after six o'clock, thus the evening was her
                        own.</p>
                    <p>"Poor thing, I never considered what she did with herself after tea. And
                        though frequently, when she looked in to bid me good <pb n="201"/>night I
                        remarked a fresh colour in her cheeks, and a pinkness over her slender
                        fingers; instead of fancying the hue borrowed from a cold ride across the
                        moors, I laid it to the charge of a hot fire in the library.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="202"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER X.</head>

                    <p>At the close of three weeks, I was able to quit my chamber, and move about
                        the house. And on the first occasion of my sitting up in the evening, I
                        asked Catherine to read to me, because my eyes were weak. We were in the
                        library, the master having gone to bed: she consented, rather unwillingly, I
                        fancied; and imagining my sort of books did not suit her, I bid her please
                        herself in the choice of what she perused.</p>
                    <p>She selected one of her own favourites, and <pb n="203"/>got forward steadily
                        about an hour; then came frequent questions.</p>
                    <p>"Ellen, are not you tired? Hadn't you better lie down now? You'll be sick,
                        keeping up so long, Ellen."</p>
                    <p>"No, no, dear, I'm not tired," I returned, continually.</p>
                    <p>Perceiving me immovable, she essayed another method of showing her dis-relish
                        for her occupation. It changed to yawning, and stretching, and—</p>
                    <p>"Ellen, I'm tired."</p>
                    <p>"Give over then and talk," I answered.</p>
                    <p>That was worse; she fretted and sighed, and looked at her watch till eight;
                        and finally went to her room, completely overdone with sleep, judging by her
                        peevish, heavy look, and the constant rubbing she inflicted on her eyes.</p>
                    <p>The following night she seemed more impatient still; and on the third from
                        recovering my company, she complained of a head-ache, and left me.</p>
                    <p><pb n="204"/>I thought her conduct odd; and having remained alone a long
                        while, I resolved on going, and inquiring whether she were better, and
                        asking her to come and lie on the sofa, instead of up stairs, in the
                        dark.</p>
                    <p>No Catherine could I discover up stairs, and none below. The servants
                        affirmed they had not seen her. I listened at Mr. Edgar's door—all was
                        silence. I returned to her apartment, extinguished my candle, and seated
                        myself in the window.</p>
                    <p>The moon shone bright; a sprinkling of snow covered the ground, and I
                        reflected that she might, possibly, have taken it into her head to walk
                        about the garden, for refreshment. I did detect a figure creeping along the
                        inner fence of the park; but it was not my young mistress; on its emerging
                        into the light, I recognised one of the grooms.</p>
                    <p>He stood a considerable period, viewing the carriage road through the
                        grounds; then started off at a brisk pace, as if he had detected <pb n="205"/>something, and reappeared, presently, leading Miss's pony; and there she
                        was, just dismounted, and walking by its side.</p>
                    <p>The man took his charge stealthily across the grass towards the stable. Cathy
                        entered by the casement-window of the drawing-room, and glided noiselessly
                        up to where I awaited her.</p>
                    <p>She put the door gently to, slipped off her snowy shoes, untied her hat, and
                        was proceeding, unconscious of my espionage, to lay aside her mantle, when I
                        suddenly rose, and revealed myself. The surprise petrified her an instant:
                        she uttered an inarticulate exclamation, and stood fixed.</p>
                    <p>"My dear Miss Catherine," I began, too vividly impressed by her recent
                        kindness to break into a scold, "where have you been riding out at this
                        hour? And why should you try to deceive me, by telling a tale. Where have
                        you been? Speak!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="206"/>"To the bottom of the park," she stammered. "I didn't tell a
                        tale."</p>
                    <p>"And no where else?" I demanded.</p>
                    <p>"No," was the muttered reply.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, Catherine," I cried, sorrowfully. "You know you have been doing wrong,
                        or you wouldn't be driven to uttering an untruth to me. That does grieve me.
                        I'd rather be three months ill, than hear you frame a deliberate lie."</p>
                    <p>She sprang forward, and bursting into tears, threw her arms round my
                        neck.</p>
                    <p>"Well Ellen, I'm so afraid of you being angry," she said. "Promise not to be
                        angry, and you shall know the very truth. I hate to hide it."</p>
                    <p>We sat down in the window-seat; I assured her I would not scold, whatever her
                        secret might be, and I guessed it, of course, so she commenced—</p>
                    <p>"I've been to Wuthering Heights, Ellen, <pb n="207"/>and I've never missed
                        going a day since you fell ill; except thrice before, and twice after you
                        left your room. I gave Michael books and pictures to prepare Minny every
                        evening, and to put her back in the stable; you mustn't scold <hi>him</hi>
                        either, mind. I was at the Heights by half-past six, and generally stayed
                        till half-past eight, and then gallopped home. It was not to amuse myself
                        that I went; I was often wretched all the time. Now and then, I was happy,
                        once in a week perhaps. At first, I expected there would be sad work
                        persuading you to let me keep my word to Linton, for I had engaged to call
                        again next day, when we quitted him; but, as you stayed up stairs on the
                        morrow, I escaped that trouble; and while Michael was refastening the lock
                        of the park door in the afternoon, I got possession of the key, and told him
                        how my cousin wished me to visit him, because he was sick, and couldn't come
                        to the Grange: and how papa would <pb n="208"/>object to my going. And then
                        I negotiated with him about the pony. He is fond of reading, and he thinks
                        of leaving soon to get married, so he offered, if I would lend him books out
                        of the library, to do what I wished; but I preferred giving him my own, and
                        that satisfied him better.</p>
                    <p>"On my second visit, Linton seemed in lively spirits; and Zillah, that is
                        their housekeeper, made us a clean room, and a good fire, and told us that
                        as Joseph was out at a prayer-meeting, and Hareton Earnshaw was off with his
                        dogs, robbing our woods of pheasants, as I heard afterwards, we might do
                        what we liked.</p>
                    <p>"She brought me some warm wine and gingerbread; and appeared exceedingly
                        good-natured; and Linton sat in the arm-chair, and I in the little rocking
                        chair, on the hearthstone, and we laughed and talked so merrily, and found
                        so much to say; we planned where <pb n="209"/>we would go, and what we would
                        do in summer. I needn't repeat that, because you would call it silly.</p>
                    <p>"One time, however, we were near quarrelling. He said the pleasantest manner
                        of spending a hot July day was lying from morning till evening on a bank of
                        heath in the middle of the moors, with the bees humming dreamily about among
                        the bloom, and the larks singing high up over head, and the blue sky, and
                        bright sun shining steadily and cloudlessly. That was his most perfect idea
                        of heaven's happiness—mine was rocking in a rustling green tree, with a west
                        wind blowing, and bright, white clouds flitting rapidly above; and not only
                        larks, but throstles, and blackbirds, and linnets, and cuckoos pouring out
                        music on every side, and the moors seen at a distance, broken into cool
                        dusky dells; but close by great swells of long grass undulating in waves to
                        the breeze; and woods and sounding water, and the whole world awake and <pb n="210"/>wild with joy. He wanted all to lie in an ecstacy of peace; I
                        wanted all to sparkle, and dance in a glorious jubilee.</p>
                    <p>"I said his heaven would be only half alive, and he said mine would be drunk;
                        I said I should fall asleep in his, and he said he could not breathe in
                        mine, and began to grow very snappish. At last, we agreed to try both as
                        soon as the right weather came; and then we kissed each other and were
                        friends. After sitting still an hour, I looked at the great room with its
                        smooth, uncarpeted floor; and thought how nice it would be to play in, if we
                        removed the table; and I asked Linton to call Zillah in to help us—and we'd
                        have a game at blind-man's buff—she should try to catch us—you used to, you
                        know, Ellen. He wouldn't; there was no pleasure in it, he said; but he
                        consented to play at ball with me. We found two, in a cupboard, among a heap
                        of old toys; tops, and hoops, and battledoors, and shuttlecocks. One was
                        marked C., and the other <pb n="211"/>H; I wished to have the C., because
                        that stood for Catherine, and the H. might be for Heathcliff, his name; but
                        the bran came out of H., and Linton didn't like it.</p>
                    <p>"I beat him constantly; and he got cross again, and coughed, and returned to
                        his chair; that night, though, he easily recovered his good humour; he was
                        charmed with two or three pretty songs—<hi>your</hi> songs, Ellen; and when
                        I was obliged to go, he begged and entreated me to come the following
                        evening, and I promised.</p>
                    <p>"Minny and I went flying home as light as air: and I dreamt of Wuthering
                        Heights, and my sweet, darling cousin, till morning.</p>
                    <p>"On the morrow, I was sad; partly because you were poorly, and partly that I
                        wished my father knew, and approved of my excursions: but it was beautiful
                        moonlight after tea; and, as I rode on, the gloom cleared.</p>
                    <p>"I shall have another happy evening, I <pb n="212"/>thought to myself, and
                        what delights me more, my pretty Linton will.</p>
                    <p>"I trotted up their garden, and was turning round to the back, when that
                        fellow Earnshaw met me, took my bridle, and bid me go in by the front
                        entrance. He patted Minny's neck, and said she was a bonny beast, and
                        appeared as if he wanted me to speak to him. I only told him to leave my
                        horse alone, or else it would kick him.</p>
                    <p>"He answered in his vulgar accent.</p>
                    <p>"'It wouldn't do mitch hurt if it did;' and surveyed its legs with a
                        smile.</p>
                    <p>"I was half inclined to make it try; however, he moved off to open the door,
                        and, as he raised the latch, he looked up to the inscription above, and
                        said, with a stupid mixture of awkwardness, and elation:</p>
                    <p>"'Miss Catherine! I can read yon, nah."</p>
                    <p>"'Wonderful,' I exclaimed. 'Pray let us hear you—you <hi>are</hi> grown
                        clever!'</p>
                    <p><pb n="213"/>"He spelt, and drawled over by syllables, the name—</p>
                    <p>"'Hareton Earnshaw."</p>
                    <p>"'And the figures?' I cried, encouragingly, perceiving that he came to a dead
                        halt.</p>
                    <p>"'I cannot tell them yet,' he answered.</p>
                    <p>"'Oh, you dunce!' I said, laughing heartily at his failure.</p>
                    <p>The fool stared, with a grin hovering about his lips, and a scowl gathering
                        over his eyes, as if uncertain whether he might not join in my mirth;
                        whether it were not pleasant familiarity, or what it really was,
                        contempt.</p>
                    <p>I settled his doubts by suddenly retrieving my gravity, and desiring him to
                        walk away, for I came to see Linton not him.</p>
                    <p>He reddened—I saw that by the moonlight—dropped his hand from the latch, and
                        skulked off, a picture of mortified vanity. He imagined himself to be as
                        accomplished as Linton, I suppose, because he could spell his own name; <pb n="214"/>and was marvellously discomfited that I didn't think the
                        same.</p>
                    <p>"Stop Miss Catherine, dear!" I interrupted. "I shall not scold, but I don't
                        like your conduct there. If you had remembered that Hareton was your cousin,
                        as much as Master Heathcliff, you would have felt how improper it was to
                        behave in that way. At least, it was praiseworthy ambition, for him to
                        desire to be as accomplished as Linton: and probably he did not learn merely
                        to show off; you had made him ashamed of his ignorance, before: I have no
                        doubt; and he wished to remedy it and please you. To sneer at his imperfect
                        attempt was very bad breeding—had <hi>you</hi> been brought up in his
                        circumstances, would you be less rude? he was as quick and as intelligent a
                        child as ever you were, and I'm hurt that he should be despised now, because
                        that base Heathcliff has treated him so unjustly."</p>
                    <p>"Well, Ellen, you won't cry about it, will <pb n="215"/>you?" she exclaimed,
                        surprised at my earnestness. "But wait, and you shall hear if he conned his
                        a b c, to please me; and if it were worth while being civil to the brute." I
                        entered, Linton was lying on the settle and half got up to welcome me.</p>
                    <p>"I'm ill to-night Catherine, love;" he said, "and you must have all the talk,
                        and let me listen. Come, and sit by me—I was sure you wouldn't break your
                        word, and I'll make you promise again, before you go."</p>
                    <p>"I knew now that I mustn't tease him, as he was ill; and I spoke softly and
                        put no questions, and avoided irritating him in any way. I had brought some
                        of my nicest books for him; he asked me to read a little of one, and I was
                        about to comply, when Earnshaw burst the door open, having gathered venom
                        with reflection. He advanced direct to us; seized Linton by the arm, and
                        swung him off the seat.</p>
                    <p>"Get to thy own room!" he said in a voice <pb n="216"/>almost inarticulate
                        with passion, and his face looked swelled and furious. "Take her there if
                        she comes to see thee—thou shalln't keep me out of this. Begone, wi' ye
                        both!"</p>
                    <p>He swore at us, and left Linton no time to answer, nearly throwing him into
                        the kitchen; and he clenched his fist, as I followed, seemingly longing to
                        knock me down. I was afraid, for a moment, and I let one volume fall; he
                        kicked it after me, and shut us out.</p>
                    <p>I heard a malignant, crackly laugh by the fire, and turning beheld that
                        odious Joseph, standing rubbing his bony hands, and quivering.</p>
                    <p>"Aw wer sure he'd sarve ye eht! He's a grand lad! He's getten t'raight
                        sperrit in him! <hi>He</hi> knaws—Aye, he knaws, as weel as Aw do, who sud
                        be t'maister yonder—Ech, ech, ech! He mad ye skift properly! Ech, ech,
                        ech!"</p>
                    <p>"Where must we go?" I said to my cousin, disregarding the old wretch's
                        mockery.</p>
                    <p><pb n="217"/>"Linton was white and trembling. He was not pretty then—Ellen,
                        Oh! no, he looked frightful! for his thin face, and large eyes were wrought
                        into an expression of frantic, powerless fury. He grasped the handle of the
                        door, and shook it—it was fastened inside.</p>
                    <p>"If you don't let me in I'll kill you; If you don't let me in I'll kill you!"
                        he rather shrieked than said. "Devil! devil! I'll kill you, I'll kill
                        you!"</p>
                    <p>"Joseph uttered his croaking laugh again.</p>
                    <p>"'Thear that's t'father!" he cried. 'That's father! We've allas summut uh
                        orther side in us—Niver heed Hareton, lad—dunnut be 'feard—he cannot get at
                        thee!'</p>
                    <p>"I took hold of Linton's hands, and tried to pull him away; but he shrieked
                        so shockingly that I dared not proceed. At last, his cries were choked by a
                        dreadful fit of coughing; blood gushed from his mouth, and he fell on the
                        ground.</p>
                    <p><pb n="218"/>"I ran into the yard, sick with terror; and called for Zillah,
                        aa loud as I could. She soon heard me; she was milking the cows in a shed
                        behind the barn; and hurrying from her work, she inquired what there was to
                        do?</p>
                    <p>"I hadn't breath to explain; dragging her in, I looked about for Linton,
                        Earnshaw had come out to examine the mischief he had caused, and he was then
                        conveying the poor thing up-stairs. Zillah and I ascended after him; but, he
                        stopped me, at the top of the steps, and said, I shouldn't go in, I must go
                        home.</p>
                    <p>"I exclaimed that he had killed Linton and I <hi>would</hi> enter.</p>
                    <p>"Joseph locked the door, and declared I should do 'no sich stuff,' and asked
                        me whether I were 'bahn to be as mad as him.'</p>
                    <p>"I stood crying, till the housekeeper re-appeared; she affirmed he would be
                        better in a bit; but he couldn't do with that shrieking, and din, and she
                        took me, and nearly carried me into the house.</p>
                    <p><pb n="219"/>"Ellen, I was ready to tear my hair off my head! I sobbed and
                        wept so that my eyes were almost blind: and the ruffian you have such
                        sympathy with, stood opposite; presuming every now and then, to bid me
                        "wisht," and denying that it was his fault; and finally, frightened by my
                        assertions that I would tell papa, and that he should be put in prison, and
                        hanged, he commenced blubbering himself, and hurried out to hide his
                        cowardly agitation.</p>
                    <p>"Still, I was not rid of him: when at length they compelled me to depart, and
                        I had got some hundred yards off the premises, he suddenly issued from the
                        shadow of the road-side, and checked Minny and took hold of me.</p>
                    <p>"'Miss Catherine, I'm ill grieved,' he began, 'but it's rayther too bad—'</p>
                    <p>"I gave him a cut with my whip, thinking, perhaps he would murder me—He let
                        go, thundering one of his horrid curses, and I gallopped home more than half
                        out of my senses.</p>
                    <p><pb n="220"/>"I didn't bid you good-night, that evening; and I didn't go to
                        Wuthering Heights, the next—I wished to, exceedingly; but I was strangely
                        excited, and dreaded to hear that Linton was dead, sometimes; and sometimes
                        shuddered at the thought of encountering Hareton.</p>
                    <p>"On the third day I took courage; at least, I couldn't bear longer suspense
                        and stole off, once more. I went at five o'clock, and walked, fancying I
                        might manage to creep into the house, and up to Linton's room, unobserved.
                        However, the dogs gave notice of my approach: Zillah received me, and saying
                        "the lad was mending nicely," showed me into a small, tidy, carpeted
                        apartment, where, to my inexpressible joy, I beheld Linton laid on a little
                        sofa, reading one of my books. But he would neither speak to me, nor look at
                        me, through a whole hour, Ellen—He has such an unhappy temper—and what quite
                        confounded <pb n="221"/>me, when he did open his mouth it was to utter the
                        falsehood, that I had occasioned the uproar, and Hareton was not to
                        blame!"</p>
                    <p>"Unable to reply, except passionately, I got up, and walked from the room. He
                        sent after me a faint "Catherine!" he did not reckon on being answered
                        so—but I wouldn't turn back; and the morrow was the second day on which I
                        stayed at home, nearly determined to visit him no more.</p>
                    <p>"But it was so miserable going to bed, and getting up, and never hearing
                        anything about him, that my resolution melted into air, before it was
                        properly formed. It <hi>had</hi> appeared wrong to take the journey once;
                        now it seemed wrong to refrain. Michael came to ask if he must saddle Minny;
                        I said "Yes," and considered myself doing a duty as she bore me over the
                        hills.</p>
                    <p>"I was forced to pass the front windows to get to the court; it was no use
                        trying to conceal my presence.</p>
                    <p><pb n="222"/>"'Young master is in the house,' said Zillah as she saw me
                        making for the parlour.</p>
                    <p>"I went in, Earnshaw was there also, but he quitted the room directly. Linton
                        sat in the great arm chair half asleep; walking up to the fire, I began in a
                        serious tone, partly meaning it to be true.</p>
                    <p>"As you don't like me Linton, and as you think I come on purpose to hurt you,
                        and pretend that I do so every time, this is our last meeting—let us say
                        good bye; and tell Mr. Heathcliff that you have no wish to see me, and that
                        he mustn't invent any more falsehoods on the subject.</p>
                    <p>"'Sit down and take your hat off, Catherine,' he answered. 'You are so much
                        happier than I am, you ought to be better. Papa talks enough of my defects,
                        and shows enough scorn of me, to make it natural I should doubt myself—I
                        doubt whether I am not altogether as worthless as he calls me, frequently;
                        and then I feel so cross and bitter, I hate <pb n="223"/>everybody! I
                            <hi>am</hi> worthless, and bad in temper, and bad in spirit, almost
                        always—and if you choose, you <hi>may</hi> say good-bye—you'll get rid of an
                        annoyance—Only, Catherine, do me this justice; believe that if I might be as
                        sweet, and as kind, and as good as you are, I would be, as willingly, and
                        more so, than as happy and as healthy. And, believe that your kindness has
                        made me love you deeper than if I deserved your love, and though I couldn't,
                        and cannot help showing my nature to you, I regret it, and repent it, and
                        shall regret, and repent it, till I die!'</p>
                    <p>"I felt he spoke the truth; and I felt I must forgive him; and, though he
                        should quarrel the next moment, I must forgive him again. We were
                        reconciled, but we cried, both of us, the whole time I stayed. Not entirely
                        for sorrow, yet I <hi>was</hi> sorry Linton had that distorted nature. He'll
                        never let his friends be at ease, and he'll never be at ease himself!</p>
                    <p>"I have always gone to his little parlour, <pb n="224"/>since that night;
                        because his father returned the day after. About three times, I think, we
                        have been merry, and hopeful, as we were the first evening; the rest of my
                        visits were dreary and troubled—now, with his selfishness and spite; and now
                        with his sufferings: but I've learnt to endure the former with nearly as
                        little resentment as the latter.</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Heathcliff purposely avoids me. I have hardly seen him at all. Last
                        Sunday, indeed, coming earlier than usual, I heard him abusing poor Linton,
                        cruelly, for his conduct of the night before. I can't tell how he knew of
                        it, unless he listened. Linton had certainly behaved provokingly; however,
                        it was the business of nobody but me; and I interrupted Mr. Heathcliff's
                        lecture, by entering, and telling him so. He burst into a laugh, and went
                        away, saying he was glad I took that view of the matter. Since then, I've
                        told Linton he must whisper his bitter things.</p>
                    <p>"Now, Ellen, you have heard all; and I <pb n="225"/>can't be prevented from
                        going to Wuthering Heights, except by inflicting misery on two
                        people—whereas, if you'll only not tell papa, my going need disturb the
                        tranquillity of none. You'll not tell, will you? It will be very heartless
                        if you do."</p>
                    <p>"I'll make up my mind on that point by to-morrow. Miss Catherine," I replied.
                        "It requires some study: and so I'll leave you to your rest, and go think it
                        over."</p>
                    <p>I thought it over aloud, in my master's presence; walking straight from her
                        room to his, and relating the whole story, with the exception of her
                        conversations with her cousin, and any mention of Hareton.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Linton was alarmed and distressed more than he would acknowledge to me.
                        In the morning, Catherine learnt my betrayal of her confidence, and she
                        learnt also that her secret visits were to end.</p>
                    <p>In vain she wept and writhed against the interdict; and implored her father
                        to have <pb n="226"/>pity on Linton; all she got to comfort her was a
                        promise that he would write, and give him leave to come to the Grange when
                        he he pleased; but explaining that he must no longer expect to see Catherine
                        at Wuthering Heights. Perhaps, had he been aware of his nephew's disposition
                        and state of health, he would have seen fit to withhold even that slight
                        consolation.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="227"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XI.</head>

                    <p>"These things happened last winter, sir," said Mrs. Dean; "hardly more than a
                        year ago. Last winter, I did not think, at another twelve months' end, I
                        should be amusing a stranger to the family with relating them! Yet, who
                        knows how long you'll be a stranger? You're too young to rest always
                        contented, living by yourself; and I some way fancy, no one could see
                        Catherine Linton, and not love her. You smile; but why do you look so <pb n="228"/>lively and interested, when I talk about her—and why have you
                        asked me to hang her picture over your fireplace? and why—"</p>
                    <p>"Stop, my good friend!" I cried. "It may be very possible that <hi>I</hi>
                        should love her; but would she love me? I doubt it too much to venture my
                        tranquillity, by running into temptation; and then my home is not here. I'm
                        of the busy world, and to its arms I must return. Go on. Was Catherine
                        obedient to her father's commands?"</p>
                    <p>"She was," continued the housekeeper. "Her affection for him was still the
                        chief sentiment in her heart; and he spoke without anger; he spoke in the
                        deep tenderness of one about to leave his treasure amid perils and foes,
                        where his remembered words would be the only aid that he could bequeath to
                        guide her.</p>
                    <p>He said to me, a few days afterwards,</p>
                    <p>"I wish my nephew would write, Ellen, or call. Tell me, sincerely, what you
                        think of <pb n="229"/>him—is he changed for the better, or is there a
                        prospect of improvement, as he grows a man?"</p>
                    <p>"He's very delicate, sir," I replied; "and scarcely likely to reach manhood;
                        but this I can say, he does not resemble his father; and if Miss Catherine
                        had the misfortune to marry him, he would not be beyond her control, unless
                        she were extremely and foolishly indulgent. However, master, you'll have
                        plenty of time to get acquainted with him, and see whether he would suit
                        her—it wants four years and more to his being of age."</p>
                    <p>Edgar sighed; and, walking to the window, looked out towards Gimmerton Kirk.
                        It was a misty afternoon, but the February sun shone dimly, and we could
                        just distinguish the two fir trees in the yard, and the sparely scattered
                        gravestones.</p>
                    <p>"I've prayed often," he half soliloquized, "for the approach of what is
                        coming; and now I begin to shrink, and fear it. I thought <pb n="230"/>the
                        memory of the hour I came down that glen a bridegroom, would be less sweet
                        than the anticipation that I was soon, in a few months, or, possibly, weeks,
                        to be carried up, and laid in its lonely hollow! Ellen, I've been very happy
                        with my little Cathy. Through winter nights and summer days she was a living
                        hope at my side—but I've been as happy musing by myself among those stones,
                        under that old church—lying, through the long June evenings, on the green
                        mound of her mother's grave, and wishing, yearning for the time when I might
                        lie beneath it. What can I do for Cathy? How must I quit her? I'd not care
                        one moment for Linton being Heathcliff's son; nor for his taking her from
                        me, if he could console her for my loss. I'd not care that Heathcliff gained
                        his ends, and triumphed in robbing me of my last blessing! But should Linton
                        be unworthy—only a feeble tool to his father—I cannot abandon her to him!
                        And, hard though it be to crush her buoyant spirit, <pb n="231"/>I must
                        persevere in making her sad while I live, and leaving her solitary when I
                        die. Darling! I'd rather resign her to God, and lay her in the earth before
                        me."</p>
                    <p>"Resign her to God, as it is, sir," I answered, "and if we should lose
                        you—which may He forbid—under His providence, I'll stand her friend and
                        counsellor to the last. Miss Catherine is a good girl; I don't fear that she
                        will go wilfully wrong; and people who do their duty are always finally
                        rewarded."</p>
                    <p>Spring advanced; yet my master gathered no real strength, though he resumed
                        his walks in the grounds, with his daughter. To her inexperienced notions,
                        this itself was a sign of convalescence; and then his cheek was often
                        flushed, and his eyes were bright, she felt sure of his recovering.</p>
                    <p>On her seventeenth birthday, he did not visit the churchyard, it was raining,
                        and I observed—</p>
                    <p>"You'll surely not go out to-night, sir?"</p>
                    <p><pb n="232"/>He answered—</p>
                    <p>"No, I'll defer it, this year, a little longer."</p>
                    <p>He wrote again to Linton, expressing his great desire to see him; and, had
                        the invalid been presentable, I've no doubt his father would have permitted
                        him to come. As it was, being instructed, he returned an answer, intimating
                        that Mr. Heathcliff objected to his calling at the Grange; but his uncle's
                        kind remembrance delighted him, and he hoped to meet him, sometimes, in his
                        rambles, and personally to petition that his cousin and he might not remain
                        long so utterly divided.</p>
                    <p>That part of his letter was simple, and, probably his own. Heathcliff knew he
                        could plead eloquently enough for Catherine's company, then—</p>
                    <p>"I do not ask," he said, "that she may visit here; but, am I never to see
                        her, because my father forbids me to go to her home, and you forbid her to
                        come to mine? Do, now and then, ride with her towards the Heights; and <pb n="233"/>let us exchange a few words, in your presence! we have done
                        nothing to deserve this separation; and you are not angry with me—you have
                        no reason to dislike me—you allow yourself. Dear uncle! send me a kind note
                        to-morrow; and leave to join you anywhere you please, except at Thrushcross
                        Grange. I believe an interview would convince you that my father's character
                        is not mine; he affirms I am more your nephew than his son; and though I
                        have faults which render me unworthy of Catherine, she has excused them,
                        and, for her sake, you should also. You inquire after my health—it is
                        better; but while I remain cut off from all hope, and doomed to solitude, or
                        the society of those who never did, and never will like me, how can I be
                        cheerful and well?"</p>
                    <p>Edgar, though he felt for the boy, could not consent to grant his request;
                        because he could not accompany Catherine.</p>
                    <p><pb n="234"/>He said, in summer, perhaps, they might meet: meantime, he
                        wished him to continue writing at intervals, and engaged to give him what
                        advice and comfort he was able by letter; being well aware of his hard
                        position in his family.</p>
                    <p>Linton complied; and had he been unrestrained, would probably have spoiled
                        all by filling his epistles with complaints and lamentations; but his father
                        kept a sharp watch over him; and, of course, insisted on every line that my
                        master sent being shown; so, instead of penning his peculiar personal
                        sufferings, and distresses, the themes constantly uppermost in his thoughts,
                        he harped on the cruel obligation of being held asunder from his friend and
                        love; and gently intimated that Mr. Linton must allow an interview soon, or
                        he should fear he was purposely deceiving him with empty promises.</p>
                    <p>Cathy was a powerful ally at home: and, <pb n="235"/>between them, they, at
                        length, persuaded my master to acquiesce in their having a ride or a walk
                        together, about once a week, under my guardianship, and on the moors nearest
                        the Grange; for June found him still declining; and, though he had set
                        aside, yearly, a portion of his income for my young lady's fortune, he had a
                        natural desire that she might retain, or, at least, return, in a short time,
                        to the house of her ancestors; and he considered her only prospect of doing
                        that was by a union with his heir; he had no idea that the latter was
                        failing almost as fast as himself; nor had any one, I believe; no doctor
                        visited the Heights, and no one saw Master Heathcliff to make report of his
                        condition, among us.</p>
                    <p>I, for my part, began to fancy my forebodings were false, and that he must be
                        actually rallying, when he mentioned riding and walking on the moors, and
                        seemed so earnest in pursuing his object.</p>
                    <p>I could not picture a father treating a <pb n="236"/>dying child as
                        tyrannically and wickedly as I afterwards learnt Heathcliff had treated him,
                        to compel this apparent eagerness; his efforts redoubling the more
                        imminently his avaricious and unfeeling plans were threatened with defeat by
                        death.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="237"/>
                    <head>CHAPTER XII.</head>
                    <p>Summer was already past its prime, when Edgar reluctantly yielded his assent
                        to their entreaties, and Catherine and I set out on our first ride to join
                        her cousin.</p>
                    <p>"It was a close, sultry day; devoid of sunshine, but with a sky too dappled
                        and hazy to threaten rain; and our place of meeting had been fixed at the
                        guide-stone, by the cross-roads. On arriving there, however, a little
                        herd-boy, despatched as a messenger, told us that—</p>
                    <p><pb n="238"/>"Maister Linton wer just ut this side th' Heights: and he'd be
                        mitch obleeged to us to gang on a bit further."</p>
                    <p>"Then Master Linton has forgot the first injunction of his uncle," I
                        observed: "he bid us keep on the Grange land, and here we are, off at
                        once."</p>
                    <p>"Well, we'll turn our horses' heads round, when we reach him," answered my
                        companion, "our excursion shall lie towards home."</p>
                    <p>But when we reached him, and that was scarcely a quarter of a mile from his
                        own door, we found he had no horse, and we were forced to dismount, and
                        leave ours to graze.</p>
                    <p>He lay on the heath, awaiting our approach, and did not rise till we came
                        within a few yards. Then, he walked so feebly, and looked so pale, that I
                        immediately exclaimed—</p>
                    <p>"Why, Master Heathcliff, you are not fit for enjoying a ramble, this morning.
                        How ill you do look!"</p>
                    <p>Catherine surveyed him with grief and <pb n="239"/>astonishment; and changed
                        the ejaculation of joy on her lips, to one of alarm; and the congratulation
                        on their long postponed meeting, to an anxious inquiry, whether he were
                        worse than usual?</p>
                    <p>"No—better—better!" he panted, trembling, and retaining her hand as if he
                        needed its support, while his large blue eyes wandered timidly over her; the
                        hollowness round them, transforming to haggard wildness, the languid
                        expression they once possessed.</p>
                    <p>"But you have been worse," persisted his cousin, "worse than when I saw you
                        last—you are thinner, and—"</p>
                    <p>"I'm tired," he interrupted, hurriedly. "It is too hot for walking, let us
                        rest here. And, in the morning, I often feel sick—papa says I grow so
                        fast."</p>
                    <p>Badly satisfied, Cathy sat down, and he reclined beside her.</p>
                    <p>"This is something like your paradise," <pb n="240"/>said she, making an
                        effort at cheerfulness. "You recollect the two days we agreed to spend, in
                        the place and way, each thought pleasantest? This is nearly yours, only
                        there are clouds; but then, they are so soft and mellow, it is nicer than
                        sunshine. Next week, if you can, we'll ride down to the Grange Park, and try
                        mine."</p>
                    <p>Linton did not appear to remember what she talked of; and he had evidently
                        great difficulty in sustaining any kind of conversation. His lack of
                        interest in the subjects she started, and his equal incapacity to contribute
                        to her entertainment were so obvious, that she could not conceal her
                        disappointment. An indefinite alteration had come over his whole person and
                        manner. The pettishness that might be caressed into fondness, had yielded to
                        a listless apathy; there was less of the peevish temper of a child which
                        frets and teases on purpose to be soothed, and more of the self-absorbed <pb n="241"/>moroseness of a confirmed invalid, repelling consolation, and
                        ready to regard the good-humoured mirth of others, as an insult.</p>
                    <p>Catherine perceived, as well as I did, that he held it rather a punishment,
                        than a gratification, to endure our company; and she made no scruple of
                        proposing, presently, to depart.</p>
                    <p>That proposal, unexpectedly, roused Linton from his lethargy, and threw him
                        into a strange state of agitation. He glanced fearfully towards the Heights,
                        begging she would remain another half-hour, at least.</p>
                    <p>"But, I think," said Cathy, "you'd be more comfortable at home than sitting
                        here; and I cannot amuse you to-day, I see, by my tales, and songs, and
                        chatter; you have grown wiser than I, in these six months; you have little
                        taste for my diversions now; or else, if I could amuse you, I'd willingly
                        stay."</p>
                    <p>"Stay to rest yourself," he replied. "And, Catherine, don't think, or say
                        that I'm <hi>very</hi> unwell—it is the heavy weather, and heat that <pb n="242"/>make me dull; and I walked about, before you came, a great
                        deal, for me. Tell uncle, I'm in tolerable health, will you?"</p>
                    <p>"I'll tell him that <hi>you</hi> say so, Linton. I couldn't affirm that you
                        are," observed my young lady, wondering at his pertinacious assertion of
                        what was evidently an untruth.</p>
                    <p>"And be here again next Thursday," continued he, shunning her puzzled gaze.
                        "And give him my thanks for permitting you to come—my best thanks,
                        Catherine. And—and, if you <hi>did</hi> meet my father, and he asked you
                        about me, don't lead him to suppose that I've been extremely silent and
                        stupid—don't look sad and downcast, as you <hi>are</hi> doing—he'll be
                        angry."</p>
                    <p>"I care nothing for his anger," exclaimed Cathy, imagining she would be its
                        object.</p>
                    <p>"But I do," said her cousin, shuddering.</p>
                    <p>"<hi>Don't</hi> provoke him against me, Catherine, for he is very hard."</p>
                    <p>"Is he severe to you, Master Heathcliff?" <pb n="243"/>I inquired. "Has he
                        grown weary of indulgence, and passed from passive, to active hatred?"</p>
                    <p>Linton looked at me, but did not answer; and, after keeping her seat by his
                        side, another ten minutes, during which his head fell drowsily on his
                        breast, and he uttered nothing except suppressed moans of exhaustion, or
                        pain, Cathy began to seek solace in looking for bilberries, and sharing the
                        produce of her researches with me: she did not offer them to him, for she
                        saw further notice would only weary and annoy.</p>
                    <p>"Is it half an hour now, Ellen!" she whispered in my ear, at last. "I can't
                        tell why we should stay. He's asleep, and papa will be wanting us back."</p>
                    <p>"Well, we must not leave him asleep," I answered; "wait till he wakes and be
                        patient. You were mighty eager to set off, but your longing to see poor
                        Linton has soon evaporated!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="244"/>"Why did <hi>he</hi> wish to see me?" returned Catherine. "In
                        his crossest humours, formerly, I liked him better than I do in his present
                        curious mood. It's just as if it were a task he was compelled to
                        perform—this interview—for fear his father should scold him. But, I'm hardly
                        going to come to give Mr. Heathcliff pleasure; whatever reason he may have
                        for ordering Linton to undergo this penance. And, though I'm glad he's
                        better in health, I'm sorry he's so much less pleasant, and so much less
                        affectionate to me."</p>
                    <p>"You think <hi>he</hi> is better in health, then?" I said.</p>
                    <p>"Yes," she answered; "because he always made such a great deal of his
                        sufferings, you know. He is not tolerably well, as he told me to tell papa,
                        but he's better, very likely."</p>
                    <p>"There you differ with me, Miss Cathy," I remarked; "I should conjecture him
                        to be far worse."</p>
                    <p>Linton here started from his slumber in <pb n="245"/>bewildered terror, and
                        asked if any one had called his name.</p>
                    <p>"No," said Catherine; "unless in dreams. I cannot conceive how you manage to
                        dose, out of doors, in the morning."</p>
                    <p>"I thought I heard my father," he gasped, glancing up to the frowning nab
                        above us. "You are sure nobody spoke?"</p>
                    <p>"Quite sure," replied his cousin. "Only Ellen and I were disputing concerning
                        your health. Are you truly stronger, Linton, than when we separated in
                        winter? If you be, I'm certain one thing is not stronger—your regard for
                        me—speak, are you?"</p>
                    <p>The tears gushed from Linton's eyes as he answered—</p>
                    <p>"Yes, yes, I am!"</p>
                    <p>And, still under the spell of the imaginary voice, his gaze wandered up and
                        down to detect its owner.</p>
                    <p>Cathy rose.</p>
                    <p>"For to-day we must part," she said. <pb n="246"/>"And I won't conceal that I
                        have been sadly disappointed with our meeting, though I'll mention it to
                        nobody but you—not that I stand in awe of Mr. Heathcliff!"</p>
                    <p>"Hush," murmured Linton; "for God's sake, hush! He's coming." And he clung to
                        Catherine's arm, striving to detain her; but, at that announcement, she
                        hastily disengaged herself, and whistled to Minny, who obeyed her like a
                        dog.</p>
                    <p>"I'll be here next Thursday," she cried, springing to the saddle. "Good bye.
                        Quick, Ellen!"</p>
                    <p>And so we left him, scarcely conscious of our departure, so absorbed was he
                        in anticipating his father's approach.</p>
                    <p>"Before we reached home, Catherine's displeasure softened into a perplexed
                        sensation of pity and regret largely blended with vague, uneasy doubts about
                        Linton's actual circumstances, physical and social; in which I partook,
                        though I counselled her not to say much, <pb n="247"/>for a second journey
                        would make us better judges.</p>
                    <p>My master requested an account of our on-goings: his nephew's offering of
                        thanks was duly delivered, Miss Cathy gently touching on the rest: I also,
                        threw little light on his inquiries, for I hardly knew what to hide, and
                        what to reveal.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="248"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XIII.</head>

                    <p>Seven days glided away, every one marking its course by the henceforth rapid
                        alteration of Edgar Linton's state. The havoc that months had previously
                        wrought, was now emulated by the inroads of hours.</p>
                    <p>Catherine, we would fain have deluded, yet, but her own quick spirit refused
                        to delude her. It divined, in secret, and brooded on the dreadful
                        probability, gradually ripening into certainty.</p>
                    <p>She had not the heart to mention her ride, <pb n="249"/>when Thursday came
                        round; I mentioned it for her; and obtained permission to order her out of
                        doors; for the library, where her father stopped a short time daily—the
                        brief period he could bear to sit up, and his chamber had become her whole
                        world. She grudged each moment that did not find her bending over his
                        pillow, or seated by his side. Her countenance grew wan with watching and
                        sorrow, and my master gladly dismissed her to what he flattered himself
                        would be a happy change of scene and society, drawing comfort from the hope
                        that she would not now be left entirely alone after his death.</p>
                    <p>He had a fixed idea, I guessed by several observations he let fall, that as
                        his nephew resembled him in person, he would resemble him in mind; for
                        Linton's letters bore few, or no indications of his defective character. And
                        I through pardonable weakness refrained from correcting the error; asking
                        myself what good there would be in disturbing his last <pb n="250"/>moments
                        with information that he had neither power nor opportunity to turn to
                        account.</p>
                    <p>We deferred our excursion till the afternoon; a golden afternoon of
                        August—every breath from the hills so full of life, that it seemed whoever
                        respired it, though dying, might revive.</p>
                    <p>Catherine's face was just like the landscape—shadows and sunshine flitting
                        over it, in rapid succession; but the shadows rested longer and the sunshine
                        was more transient, and her poor little heart reproached itself for even
                        that passing forgetfulness of its cares.</p>
                    <p>We discerned Linton watching at the same spot he had selected before. My
                        young mistress alighted, and told me that as she was resolved to stay a very
                        little while, I had better hold the pony and remain on horseback; but I
                        dissented, I wouldn't risk losing sight of the charge committed to me a
                        minute; so we climbed the slope of heath, together.</p>
                    <p>Master Heathcliff received us with greater <pb n="251"/>animation on this
                        occasion; not the animation of high spirits though, nor yet of joy; it
                        looked more like fear.</p>
                    <p>"It is late!" he said, speaking short, and with difficulty. "Is not your
                        father very ill? I thought you wouldn't come."</p>
                    <p>"<hi>Why</hi> won't you be candid?" cried Catherine, swallowing her greeting.
                        "Why cannot you say at once, you don't want me? It is strange Linton, that
                        for the second time, you have brought me here on purpose, apparently, to
                        distress us both, and for no reason besides!"</p>
                    <p>Linton shivered, and glanced at her, half supplicating, half ashamed, but his
                        cousin's patience was not sufficient to endure this enigmatical
                        behaviour.</p>
                    <p>"My father <hi>is</hi> very ill," she said, "and why am I called from his
                        bedside—why didn't you send to absolve me from my promise, when you wished I
                        wouldn't keep it? Come! I desire an explanation—playing and trifling are
                        completely banished out of my mind: and I <pb n="252"/>can't dance
                        attendance on your affectations now!'</p>
                    <p>"My affectations!" he murmured, "what are they? For Heaven's sake Catherine,
                        don't look so angry! Despise me as much as you please; I am a worthless,
                        cowardly wretch—I can't be scorned enough! but I'm too mean for your
                        anger—hate my father, and spare me, for contempt!"</p>
                    <p>"Nonsense!" cried Catherine in a passion. "Foolish, silly boy! And there! he
                        trembles, as if I were really going to touch him! You needn't bespeak
                        contempt, Linton; anybody will have it spontaneously, at your service. Get
                        off! I shall return home—it is folly dragging you from the hearth-stone, and
                        pretending—what do we pretend? Let go my frock—if I pitied you for crying,
                        and looking so very frightened, you should spurn such pity. Ellen, tell him
                        how disgraceful this conduct is. Rise, and don't degrade yourself into an
                        abject reptile—<hi>don't</hi>."</p>
                    <p><pb n="253"/>With streaming face and an expression of agony, Linton had
                        thrown his nerveless frame along the ground; he seemed convulsed with
                        exquisite terror.</p>
                    <p>"Oh!" he sobbed, "I cannot bear it! Catherine, Catherine, I'm a traitor too,
                        and I dare not tell you! But leave me and I shall be killed! <hi>Dear</hi>
                        Catherine, my life is in your hands; and you have said you loved me—and if
                        you did, it wouldn't harm you. You'll not go, then? kind, sweet, good
                        Catherine! And perhaps you <hi>will</hi> consent—and he'll let me die with
                        you!"</p>
                    <p>My young lady, on witnessing his intense anguish, stooped to raise him. The
                        old feeling of indulgent tenderness overcame her vexation, and she grew
                        thoroughly moved and alarmed.</p>
                    <p>"Consent to what?" she asked. "To stay? Tell me the meaning of this strange
                        talk, and I will. You contradict your own words, and distract me! Be calm
                        and frank, and confess <pb n="254"/>at once, all that weighs on your heart.
                        You wouldn't injure me, Linton, would you? You wouldn't let any enemy hurt
                        me, if you could prevent it? I'll believe you are a coward, for yourself,
                        but not a cowardly betrayer of your best friend."</p>
                    <p>"But my father threatened me," gasped the boy, clasping his attenuated
                        fingers, "and I dread him—I dread him! I <hi>dare</hi> not tell!"</p>
                    <p>"Oh well!" said Catherine, with scornful compassion, "keep your secret,
                            <hi>I'm</hi> no coward—save yourself, I'm not afraid!"</p>
                    <p>Her magnanimity provoked his tears; he wept wildly, kissing her supporting
                        hands, and yet could not summon courage to speak out.</p>
                    <p>I was cogitating what the mystery might be, and determined Catherine should
                        never suffer to benefit him or any one else, by my good will. When hearing a
                        rustle among the ling, I looked up, and saw Mr. Heathcliff almost close upon
                        us, descending the Heights. He <pb n="255"/>didn't cast a glance towards my
                        companions, though they were sufficiently near for Linton's sobs to be
                        audible; but hailing me in the almost hearty tone he assumed to none
                        besides, and the sincerity of which, I couldn't avoid doubting, he said.</p>
                    <p>"It is something to see you so near to my house, Nelly! How are you at the
                        Grange? Let us hear! The rumour goes," he added in a lower tone, "that Edgar
                        Linton is on his death-bed—perhaps they exaggerate his illness?"</p>
                    <p>"No; my master is dying," I replied, "it is true enough. A sad thing it will
                        be for us all, but a blessing for him!"</p>
                    <p>"How long will he last, do you think?" he asked.</p>
                    <p>"I don't know," I said.</p>
                    <p>"Because," he continued, looking at the two young people, who were fixed
                        under his eye—Linton appeared as if he could not <pb n="256"/>venture to
                        stir, or raise his head, and Catherine could not move, on his
                        account—"Because that lad yonder, seems determined to beat me—and I'd thank
                        his uncle to be quick, and go before him—Hallo! Has the whelp been playing
                        that game long? I <hi>did</hi> give him some lessons about snivelling. Is he
                        pretty lively with Miss Linton generally?"</p>
                    <p>"Lively? no—he has shown the greatest distress;" I answered. "To see him, I
                        should say, that instead of rambling with his sweetheart on the hills, he
                        ought to be in bed, under the hands of a doctor."</p>
                    <p>"He shall be, in a day or two," muttered Heathcliff "But first—get up,
                        Linton! Get up!" he shouted. "Don't grovel on the ground, there—up this
                        moment!"</p>
                    <p>Linton had sunk prostrate again in another paroxysm of helpless fear, caused
                        by his father's glance towards him, I suppose, there was nothing else to
                        produce such humiliation. <pb n="257"/>He made several efforts to obey, but
                        his little strength was annihilated, for the time, and be fell back again
                        with a moan.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Heathcliff advanced, and lifted him to lean against a ridge of turf.</p>
                    <p>"Now," said he with curbed ferocity, "I'm getting angry—and if you don't
                        command that paltry spirit of yours—<hi>Damn</hi> you! Get up,
                        directly!"</p>
                    <p>"I will, father!" he panted. "Only, let me alone, or I shall faint! I've done
                        as you wished—I'm sure. Catherine will tell you that I—that I—have been
                        cheerful. Ah! keep by me Catherine; give me your hand."</p>
                    <p>"Take mine," said his father, "stand on your feet! There now—she'll lend you
                        her arm. . .that's right, look at <hi>her</hi>. You would imagine I was the
                        devil himself, Miss Linton, to excite such horror. Be so kind as to walk
                        home with him, will you? He shudders, if I touch him."</p>
                    <p><pb n="258"/>"Linton, dear!" whispered Catherine, "I can't go to Wuthering
                        Heights. . .papa has forbidden me. . .He'll not harm you, why are you so
                        afraid?"</p>
                    <p>"I can never re-enter that house," he answered. "I am <hi>not</hi> to
                        re-enter it without you!"</p>
                    <p>"Stop. . ." cried his father. "We'll respect Catherine's filial scruples.
                        Nelly, take him in, and I'll follow your advice concerning the doctor,
                        without delay."</p>
                    <p>"You'll do well," replied I, "but I must remain with my mistress. To mind
                        your son is not my business."</p>
                    <p>"You are very stiff!" said Heathcliff, "I know that—but you'll force me to
                        pinch the baby, and make it scream, before it moves your charity. Come then,
                        my hero. Are you willing to return, escorted by me?"</p>
                    <p>He approached once more, and made as if be would seize the fragile being; but
                            <pb n="259"/>shrinking back, Linton clung to his cousin, and implored
                        her to accompany him with a frantic importunity that admitted no denial.</p>
                    <p>However I disapproved, I couldn't hinder her; indeed how could she have
                        refused him herself? What was filling him with dread, we had no means of
                        discerning, but there he was, powerless under its gripe, and any addition
                        seemed capable of shocking him into idiocy.</p>
                    <p>We reached the threshold; Catherine walked in; and I stood waiting till she
                        had conducted the invalid to a chair, expecting her out, immediately; when
                        Mr. Heathcliff pushing me forward, exclaimed—</p>
                    <p>"My house is not stricken with the plague, Nelly; and I have a mind to be
                        hospitable today; sit down, and allow me to shut the door."</p>
                    <p>He shut and locked it also, I started.</p>
                    <p>"You shall have tea, before you go home," he added. "I am by myself. Hareton
                        is gone with some cattle to the Lees—and Zillah <pb n="260"/>and Joseph are
                        off on a journey of pleasure. And, though I'm used to being alone, I'd
                        rather have some interesting company, if I can get it. Miss Linton, take
                        your seat by <hi>him</hi>. I give you what I have; the present is hardly
                        worth accepting; but, I have nothing else to offer. It is Linton, I mean.
                        How she does stare! It's odd what a savage feeling I have to anything that
                        seems afraid of me! Had I been born where laws are less strict, and tastes
                        less dainty, I should treat myself to a slow vivifisection of those two, as
                        an evening's amusement."</p>
                    <p>He drew in his breath, struck the table, and swore to himself.</p>
                    <p>"By hell! I hate them."</p>
                    <p>"I'm not afraid of you!" exclaimed Catherine, who could not hear the latter
                        part of his speech.</p>
                    <p>She stepped close up; her black eyes flashing with passion and
                        resolution.</p>
                    <p>"Give me that key—I will have it!" she <pb n="261"/>said "I would'nt eat or
                        drink here, if I were starving."</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff had the key in his hand that remained on the table. He looked up,
                        seized with a sort of surprise at her boldness, or, possibly, reminded by
                        her voice and glance, of the person from whom she inherited it.</p>
                    <p>She snatched at the instrument, and half succeeded in getting it out of his
                        loosened lingers; but her action recalled him to the present; he recovered
                        it speedily.</p>
                    <p>"Now, Catherine Linton," he said, "stand off, or I shall knock you down; and
                        that will make Mrs. Dean mad."</p>
                    <p>Regardless of this warning, she captured his closed hand, and its contents
                        again.</p>
                    <p>"We <hi>will</hi> go!" she repeated, exerting her utmost efforts to cause the
                        iron muscles to relax; and finding that her nails made no impression, she
                        applied her teeth pretty sharply.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff glanced at me a glance that kept <pb n="262"/>me from interfering
                        a moment. Catherine was too intent on his fingers to notice his face. He
                        opened them, suddenly, and resigned the object of dispute; but, ere she had
                        well secured it, he seized her with the liberated hand, and, pulling her on
                        his knee, administered, with the other, a shower of terrific slaps on both
                        sides of the head, each sufficient to have fulfilled his threat, had she
                        been able to fall.</p>
                    <p>At this diabolical violence, I rushed on him furiously.</p>
                    <p>"You villain!" I began to cry, "you villain!"</p>
                    <p>A touch on the chest silenced me; I am stout, and soon put out of breath;
                        and, what with that and the rage, I staggered dizzily back, and felt ready
                        to suffocate, or to burst a blood-vessel.</p>
                    <p>The scene was over in two minutes; Catherine, released, put her two hands to
                        her temples, and looked just as if she were not sure <pb n="263"/>whether
                        her ears were off or on. She trembled like a reed, poor thing, and leant
                        against the table perfectly bewildered.</p>
                    <p>"I know how to chastise children, you see," said the scoundrel, grimly, as he
                        stooped to repossess himself of the key, which had dropped to the floor. "Go
                        to Linton now, as I told you; and cry at your ease! I shall be your father
                        to-morrow—all the father you'll have in a few days—and you shall have plenty
                        of that—you can bear plenty—you're no weakling—you shall have a daily taste,
                        if I catch such a devil of a temper in your eyes again!"</p>
                    <p>Cathy ran to me instead of Linton, and knelt down, and put her burning cheek
                        on my lap, weeping aloud. Her cousin had shrunk into a corner of the settle,
                        as quiet as a mouse, congratulating himself, I dare say, that the correction
                        had lighted on another than him.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Heathcliff, perceiving us all confounded, rose, and expeditiously made
                        the tea himself. <pb n="264"/>The cups and saucers were laid ready. He
                        poured it out, and handed me a cup.</p>
                    <p>"Wash away your spleen," he said. "And help your own naughty pet and mine. It
                        is not poisoned, though I prepared it. I'm going out to seek your
                        horses."</p>
                    <p>Our first thought, on his departure, was to force an exit somewhere. We tried
                        the kitchen door, but that was fastened outside; we looked at the
                        windows—they were too narrow for even Cathy's little figure.</p>
                    <p>"Master Linton," I cried, seeing we were regularly imprisoned. "You know what
                        your diabolical father is after, and you shall tell us, or I'll box your
                        ears, as he has done your cousin's."</p>
                    <p>"Yes, Linton; you must tell," said Catherine. "It was for your sake I came;
                        and it will be wickedly ungrateful if you refuse."</p>
                    <p>"Give me some tea, I'm thirsty, and then I'll tell you," he answered. "Mrs.
                        Dean, go <pb n="265"/>away. I don't like you standing over me. Now,
                        Catherine, you are letting your tears fall into my cup! I wont drink that.
                        Give me another."</p>
                    <p>Catherine pushed another to him, and wiped her face. I felt disgusted at the
                        little wretch's composure, since he was no longer in terror for himself. The
                        anguish he had exhibited on the moor subsided as soon as ever he entered
                        Wuthering Heights; so, I guessed he had been menaced with an awful
                        visitation of wrath, if he failed in decoying us there; and, that
                        accomplished, he had no further immediate fears.</p>
                    <p>"Papa wants us to be married," he continued, after sipping some of the
                        liquid. "And he knows your papa wouldn't let us marry now; and he's afraid
                        of my dying, if we wait; so we are to be married in the morning, and you are
                        to stay here all night; and, if you do as he wishes, you shall return home
                        next day, and take me with you."</p>
                    <p><pb n="266"/>"Take you with her, pitiful changeling?" I exclaimed.
                            "<hi>You</hi> marry? Why, the man is mad, or he thinks us fools, every
                        one. And, do you imagine that beautiful young lady, that healthy, hearty
                        girl, will tie herself to a little perishing monkey like you? Are you
                        cherishing the notion that <hi>anybody</hi>, let alone Miss Catherine
                        Linton, would have you for a husband? You want whipping for bringing us in
                        here at all, with your dastardly, puling tricks; and—don't look so silly
                        now! I've a very good mind to shake you severely, for your contemptible
                        treachery, and your imbecile conceit."</p>
                    <p>I did give him a slight shaking, but it brought on the cough, and he took to
                        his ordinary resource of moaning and weeping, and Catherine rebuked me.</p>
                    <p>"Stay all night? No!" she said, looking slowly round. "Ellen, I'll burn that
                        door down, but I'll get out."</p>
                    <p>And she would have commenced the <pb n="267"/>execution of her threat
                        directly, but Linton was up in alarm, for his dear self, again. He clasped
                        her in his two feeble arms, sobbing—</p>
                    <p>"Won't you have me, and save me—not let me come to the Grange? Oh! darling
                        Catherine! you mustn't go, and leave me, after all. You <hi>must</hi> obey
                        my father, you <hi>must</hi>!"</p>
                    <p>"I must obey my own," she replied, "and relieve him from this cruel suspense.
                        The whole night! What would he think? he'll be distressed already. I'll
                        either break or burn a way out of the house. Be quiet! You're in no
                        danger—but, if you hinder me—Linton, I love papa better than you!"</p>
                    <p>The mortal terror he felt of Mr. Heathcliff 's anger, restored to the boy his
                        coward's eloquence. Catherine was near distraught—still, she persisted that
                        she must go home, and tried entreaty, in her turn, persuading him to subdue
                        his selfish agony.</p>
                    <p>While they were thus occupied, our jailer re-entered.</p>
                    <p><pb n="268"/>"Your beasts have trotted off;" he said, "and—Now, Linton!
                        snivelling again? What has she been doing to you? Come, come—have done, and
                        get to bed. In a month or two, my lad, you'll be able to pay her back her
                        present tyrannies, with a vigorous hand—you're pining for pure love, are you
                        not? nothing else in the world—and she shall have you! There, to bed! Zillah
                        wont be here to-night; you must undress yourself. Hush! hold your noise!
                        Once in your own room, I'll not come near you, you needn't fear. By chance,
                        you've managed tolerably. I'll look to the rest,"</p>
                    <p>He spoke these words, holding the door open for his son to pass; and the
                        latter achieved his exit exactly as a spaniel might which suspected the
                        person who attended on it of designing a spiteful squeeze.</p>
                    <p>The lock was re-secured. Heathcliff approached the fire, where my mistress
                        and I stood silent. Catherine looked up, and <pb n="269"/>instinctively
                        raised her hand to her cheek—his neighbourhood revived a painful sensation.
                        Anybody else would have been incapable of regarding the childish act with
                        sternness, but he scowled on her, and muttered—</p>
                    <p>"Oh, you are not afraid of me? Your courage is well disguised—you
                            <hi>seem</hi> damnably afraid!"</p>
                    <p>"I <hi>am</hi> afraid <hi>now</hi>," she replied; "because if I stay, papa
                        will be miserable; and how can I endure making him miserable—when he—when
                        he—Mr. Heathcliff, <hi>let</hi> me go home! I promise to marry Linton—papa
                        would like me to, and I love him—and why should you wish to force me to do
                        what I'll willingly do of myself?"</p>
                    <p>"Let him dare to force you!" I cried. "There's law in the land, thank God,
                        there is! though we <hi>be</hi> in an out-of-the-way place. I'd inform, if
                        he were my own son, and it's felony without benefit of clergy!"</p>
                    <p>"Silence!" said the ruffian. "To the <pb n="270"/>devil with your clamour! I
                        don't want <hi>you</hi> to speak. Miss Linton, I shall enjoy myself
                        remarkably in thinking your father will be miserable; I shall not sleep for
                        satisfaction. You could have hit on no surer way of fixing your residence
                        under my roof, for the next twenty-four hours, than informing me that such
                        an event would follow. As to your promise to marry Linton; I'll take care
                        you shall keep it, for you shall not quit the place till it is
                        fulfilled."</p>
                    <p>"Send Ellen then, to let papa know I'm safe!" exclaimed Catherine, weeping
                        bitterly. "Or marry me now. Poor papa! Ellen, he'll think we're lost. What
                        shall we do?"</p>
                    <p>"Not he! He'll think you are tired of waiting on him, and run off, for a
                        little amusement," answered Heathcliff. "You cannot deny that you entered my
                        house of your own accord, in contempt of his injunctions to the contrary.
                        And it is quite natural that you should desire amusement at your age; and
                        that you should weary of nursing a sick man, and <pb n="271"/>that man,
                            <hi>only</hi> your father. Catherine, his happiest days were over when
                        your days began. He cursed you, I dare say, for coming into the world, (I
                        did, at least). And it would just do if he cursed you as <hi>he</hi> went
                        out of it. I'd join him. I don't love you! How should I? Weep away. As far
                        as I can see, it will be your chief diversion hereafter: unless Linton make
                        amends for other losses; and your provident parent appears to fancy he may.
                        His letters of advice and consolation entertained me vastly. In his last, he
                        recommended my jewel to be careful of his; and kind to her when he got her.
                        Careful and kind—that's paternal! But Linton requires his whole stock of
                        care and kindness for himself Linton can play the little tyrant well. He'll
                        undertake to torture any number of cats if their teeth be drawn, and their
                        claws pared. You'll be able to tell his uncle fine tales of his
                            <hi>kindness</hi>, when you get home again, I assure you."</p>
                    <p>"You're right there!" I said, "explain <pb n="272"/>your son's character.
                        Show his resemblance to yourself; and then, I hope, Miss Cathy will think
                        twice, before she takes the cockatrice!"</p>
                    <p>"I don't much mind speaking of his amiable qualities now," he answered,
                        "because she must either accept him, or remain a prisoner, and you along
                        with her, till your master dies. I can detain you both, quite concealed,
                        here, If you doubt, encourage her to retract her word, and you'll have an
                        opportunity of judging!"</p>
                    <p>"I'll not retract my word," said Catherine. "I'll marry him, within this
                        hour, if I may go to Thrushcross Grange afterwards. Mr. Heathcliff, you're a
                        cruel man, but you're not a fiend; and you wont, from <hi>mere</hi> malice,
                        destroy, irrevocably, all my happiness. If papa thought I had left him, on
                        purpose; and if he died before I returned, could I bear to live? I've given
                        over crying; but I'm going to kneel here, at your knee; and I'll not get up,
                        and I'll not take my eyes from your face, till you <pb n="273"/>look back at
                        me! No, don't turn away! <hi>do</hi> look! You'll see nothing to provoke
                        you. I don't hate you. I'm not angry that you struck me. Have you never
                        loved <hi>anybody</hi>, in all your life, uncle? <hi>never</hi>? Ah! you
                        must look once—I'm so wretched—you can't help being sorry and pitying
                        me."</p>
                    <p>"Keep your eft's fingers off; and move, or I'll kick you!" cried Heathcliff,
                        brutally repulsing her. "I'd rather be hugged by a snake. How the devil can
                        you dream of fawning on me? I <hi>detest</hi> you!"</p>
                    <p>He shrugged his shoulders—shook himself, indeed, as if his flesh crept with
                        aversion; and thrust back his chair: while I got up, and opened my mouth, to
                        commence a downright torrent of abuse; but I was rendered dumb in the middle
                        of the first sentence, by a threat that I should be shown into a room by
                        myself, the very next syllable I uttered.</p>
                    <p>It was growing dark—we heard a sound of voices at the garden gate. Our host
                        hurried <pb n="274"/>out, instantly; <hi>he</hi> had his wits about him;
                            <hi>we</hi> had not. There was a talk of two or three minutes, and he
                        returned alone.</p>
                    <p>"I thought it had been your cousin Hareton," I observed to Catherine. "I wish
                        he would arrive! Who knows but he might take our part?"</p>
                    <p>"It was three servants sent to seek you from the Grange," said Heathcliff,
                        overhearing me. "You should have opened a lattice, and called out; but I
                        could swear that chit is glad you didn't. She's glad to be obliged to stay,
                        I'm certain."</p>
                    <p>At learning the chance we had missed, we both gave vent to our grief without
                        control; and he allowed us to wail on till nine o'clock; then he bid us go
                        up stairs, through the kitchen, to Zillah's chamber; and I whispered my
                        companion to obey; perhaps, we might contrive to get through the window
                        there, or into a garret, and out by its skylight.</p>
                    <p>The window, however, was narrow like those <pb n="275"/>below, and the garret
                        trap was safe from our attempts; for we were fastened in as before.</p>
                    <p>We neither of us lay down: Catherine took her station by the lattice, and
                        watched anxiously for morning—a deep sigh being the only answer I could
                        obtain to my frequent entreaties that she would try to rest.</p>
                    <p>I seated myself in a chair, and rocked, to and fro, passing harsh judgment on
                        my many derelictions of duty; from which, it struck me then, all the
                        misfortunes of all my employers sprang. It was not the case, in reality, I
                        am aware; but it was, in my imagination, that dismal night, and I thought
                        Heathcliff himself less guilty than I.</p>
                    <p>At seven o'clock he came, and inquired if Miss Linton had risen.</p>
                    <p>She ran to the door immediately, and answered—</p>
                    <p>"Yes."</p>
                    <p>"Here then," he said, opening it, and pulling her out.</p>
                    <p><pb n="276"/>I rose to follow, but he turned the lock again. I demanded my
                        release.</p>
                    <p>"Be patient," he replied; "I'll send up your breakfast in a while."</p>
                    <p>I thumped on the panels, and rattled the latch angrily; and Catherine asked
                        why I was still shut up? He answered, I must try to endure it another hour,
                        and they went away. I endured it two or three hours; at length, I heard a
                        footstep, not Heathcliff's.</p>
                    <p>"I've brought you something to eat," said a voice; "oppen t' door!"</p>
                    <p>Complying eagerly, I beheld Hareton, laden with food enough to last me all
                        day.</p>
                    <p>"Tak it!" he added, thrusting the tray into my hand.</p>
                    <p>"Stay one minute," I began.</p>
                    <p>"Nay!" cried he, and retired, regardless of any prayers I could pour forth to
                        detain him.</p>
                    <p>"And there I remained enclosed, the whole day, and the whole of the next
                        night; and <pb n="277"/>another, and another. Five nights and four days I
                        remained, altogether, seeing nobody but Hareton, once every morning, and he
                        was a model of a jailer—surly, and dumb, and deaf to every attempt at moving
                        his sense of justice or compassion.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="278"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XIV.</head>

                    <p>On the fifth morning, or rather afternoon, a different step
                        approached—lighter and shorter—and, this time, the person entered the room.
                        It was Zillah; donned in her scarlet shawl, with a black silk bonnet on her
                        head, and a willow basket swung to her arm.</p>
                    <p>"Eh, dear! Mrs. Dean," she exclaimed. "Well! there is a talk about you at
                        Gimmerton. I never thought, but you were sunk in the Blackhorse marsh, and
                        Missy with you, till master told me you'd been found, and he'd <pb n="279"/>lodged you here! What, and you must have got on an island, sure? And how
                        long were you in the hole? Did master save you, Mrs. Dean? But you're not so
                        thin—you've not been so poorly, have you?"</p>
                    <p>"Your master is a true scoundrel!" I replied. "But he shall answer for it. He
                        needn't have raised that tale—it shall all be laid bare!"</p>
                    <p>"What do you mean?" asked Zillah. "It's not his tale—they tell that in the
                        village—about your being lost in the marsh; and I calls to Earnshaw, when I
                        come in—"</p>
                    <p>"Eh, they's queer things, Mr. Hareton, happened since I went off. It's a sad
                        pity of that likely young lass, and cant Nelly Dean."</p>
                    <p>"He stared. I thought he had not heard aught, so I told him the rumour.</p>
                    <p>"The master listened, and he just smiled to himself, and said—</p>
                    <p>"'If they have been in the marsh, they are out now, Zillah. Nelly Dean is
                        lodged, at this <pb n="280"/>minute, in your room. You can tell her to flit,
                        when you go up; here is the key. The bog-water got into her head, and she
                        would have run home, quite flighty, but I fixed her, till she came round to
                        her senses. You can bid her go to the Grange, at once, if she be able, and
                        carry a message from me, that her young lady will follow in time to attend
                        the Squire's funeral.'"</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Edgar is not dead?" I gasped. "Oh! Zillah, Zillah!"</p>
                    <p>"No, no—sit you down, my good mistress," she replied, "you're right sickly
                        yet. He's not dead: Doctor Kenneth thinks he may last another day—I met him
                        on the road and asked."</p>
                    <p>Instead of sitting down, I snatched my outdoor things, and hastened below,
                        for the way was free.</p>
                    <p>On entering the house, I looked about for some one to give information of
                        Catherine.</p>
                    <p>The place was filled with sunshine, and the <pb n="281"/>door stood wide
                        open, but nobody seemed at hand.</p>
                    <p>As I hesitated whether to go off at once, or return and seek my mistress, a
                        slight cough drew my attention to the hearth.</p>
                    <p>Linton lay on the settle, sole tenant, sucking a stick of sugar-candy, and
                        pursuing my movements with apathetic eyes.</p>
                    <p>"Where is Miss Catherine?" I demanded, sternly, supposing I could frighten
                        him into giving intelligence, by catching him thus, alone.</p>
                    <p>He sucked on like an innocent.</p>
                    <p>"Is she gone?" I said.</p>
                    <p>"No," he replied; "she's up stairs—she's not to go; we wont let her."</p>
                    <p>"You wont let her, little idiot!" I exclaimed. "Direct me to her room
                        immediately, or I'll make you sing out sharply."</p>
                    <p>"Papa would make you sing out, if you attempted to get there," he answered.
                        "He <pb n="282"/>says I'm not to be soft with Catherine—she's my wife, and
                        it's shameful that she should wish to leave me! He says, she hates me, and
                        wants me to die, that she may have my money, but she shan't have it; and she
                        shan't go home! she never shall! she may cry, and be sick as much as she
                        pleases!"</p>
                    <p>He resumed his former occupation, closing his lids, as if he meant to drop
                        asleep.</p>
                    <p>"Master Heathcliff," I resumed, "have you forgotten all Catherine's kindness
                        to you, last winter, when you affirmed you loved her, and when she brought
                        you books, and sung you songs, and came many a time through wind and snow to
                        see you? She wept to miss one evening, because you would be disappointed;
                        and you felt then, that she was a hundred times too good to you; and now you
                        believe the lies your father tells, though you know he detests you both! And
                        you join him against her. That's fine gratitude, is it not?"</p>
                    <p><pb n="283"/>The corner, of Linton's mouth fell, and he took the sugar-candy
                        from his his lips.</p>
                    <p>"Did she come to Wuthering Heights, because she hated you?" I continued.
                        "Think for yourself! As to your money, she does not even know that you will
                        have any. And you say she's sick; and yet, you leave her alone, up there in
                        a strange house! <hi>You</hi>, who have felt what it is to be so neglected!
                        You could pity your own sufferings, and she pitied them, too, but you won't
                        pity hers! I shed tears Master Heathcliff, you see—an elderly woman, and a
                        servant merely—and you, after pretending such affection, and having reason
                        to worship her, almost, store every tear you have for yourself, and lie
                        there quite at ease. Ah! you're a heartless, selfish boy!"</p>
                    <p>"I can't stay with her," he answered crossly. "I'll not stay, by myself. She
                        cries so I can't bear it. And she wont give over, though I say I'll call my
                        father—I did call him once; and he threatened to strangle her, if she was
                            <pb n="284"/>not quiet, but she began again, the instant he left the
                        room; moaning and grieving, all night long, though I screamed for vexation
                        that I couldn't sleep."</p>
                    <p>"Is Mr. Heathcliff out," I inquired, perceiving that the wretched creature
                        had no power to sympathise with his cousin's mental tortures.</p>
                    <p>"He's in the court," he replied, "talking to Doctor Kenneth who says uncle is
                        dying, truly, at last—I'm glad for I shall be master of the Grange after
                        him—and Catherine always spoke of it, as <hi>her</hi> house. It isn't hers!
                        It's mine—papa says everything she has is mine. All her nice books are
                        mine—she offered to give me them, and her pretty birds, and her pony Minny,
                        if I would get the key of our room, and let her out: but I told her she had
                        nothing to give, they were all, all mine. And then she cried, and took a
                        little picture from her neck, and said I should have that—two pictures in a
                        gold case—on one side her mother, <pb n="285"/>and on the other, uncle, when
                        they were young. That was yesterday—I said <hi>they</hi> were mine, too; and
                        tried to get them from her. The spiteful thing wouldn't let me; she pushed
                        me off, and hurt me. I shrieked out—that frightens her—she heard papa
                        coming, and she broke the hinges, and divided the case and gave me her
                        mother's portrait; the other she attempted to hide; but papa asked what was
                        the matter and I explained it. He took the one I had away; and ordered her
                        to resign hers to me; she refused, and he—he struck her down, and wrenched
                        it off the chain, and crushed it with his foot."</p>
                    <p>"And were you pleased to see her struck?" I asked: having my designs in
                        encouraging his talk.</p>
                    <p>"I winked," he answered. "I wink to see my father strike a dog, or a horse,
                        he does it so hard—yet I was glad at first—she deserved punishing for
                        pushing me: but when papa was gone, she made me come to the window and <pb n="286"/>showed me her cheek cut on the inside, against her teeth, and
                        her mouth filling with blood: and then she gathered up the bits of the
                        picture, and went and sat down with her face to the wall, and she has never
                        spoken to me since; and I sometimes think she can't speak for pain. I don't
                        like to think so! but she's a naughty thing for crying continually; and she
                        looks so pale and wild, I'm afraid of her!"</p>
                    <p>"And you can get the key if you choose?" I said.</p>
                    <p>"Yes, when I am up-stairs," he answered "but I can't walk up-stairs now."</p>
                    <p>"In what apartment is it?" I asked.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, he cried, I shant tell <hi>you</hi> where it is! It is our secret.
                        Nobody, neither Hareton, nor Zillah are to know. There! you've tired me—go
                        away, go away!" And he turned his face onto his arm, and shut his eyes,
                        again.</p>
                    <p>I considered it best to depart without seeing Mr. Heathcliff; and bring a
                        rescue for my young lady, from the Grange.</p>
                    <p><pb n="287"/>On reaching it the astonishment of my fellow servants to see me,
                        and their joy also, was intense; and when they heard that their little
                        mistress was safe, two or three were about to hurry up, and shout the news
                        at Mr. Edgar's door: but I bespoke the announcement of it, myself.</p>
                    <p>How changed I found him, even in those few days! He lay an image of sadness,
                        and resignation, waiting his death. Very young he looked: though his actual
                        age was thirty-nine; one would have called him ten years younger, at least.
                        He thought of Catherine for he murmured her name. I touched his hand, and
                        spoke.</p>
                    <p>"Catherine is coming, dear master!" I whispered, "she is alive, and well; and
                        will be here I hope to-night."</p>
                    <p>I trembled at the first effects of this intelligence: he half rose up, looked
                        eagerly round the apartment, and then sunk back in a swoon.</p>
                    <p>As soon as he recovered, I related our <pb n="288"/>compulsory visit, and
                        detention at the Heights: I said Heathcliff forced me to go in, which was
                        not quite true; I uttered as little as possible against Linton; nor did I
                        describe all his father's brutal conduct—my intentions being to add no
                        bitterness, if I could help it, to his already overflowing cup.</p>
                    <p>He divined that one of his enemy's purposes was to secure the personal
                        property, as well as the estate to his son, or rather himself; yet why he
                        did not wait till his decease, was a puzzle to my master; because ignorant
                        how nearly he, and his nephew would quit the world together.</p>
                    <p>However he felt his will had better be altered—instead of leaving Catherine's
                        fortune at her own disposal, he determined to put it in the hands of
                        trustees, for her use during life; and for her children, if she had any,
                        after her. By that means, it could not fall to Mr. Heathcliff should Linton
                        die.</p>
                    <p>Having received his orders, I despatched a <pb n="289"/>man to fetch the
                        attorney, and four more, provided with serviceable weapons, to demand my
                        young lady of her jailer. Both parties were delayed very late. The single
                        servant returned first.</p>
                    <p>He said Mr. Green, the lawyer, was out when he arrived at his house, and he
                        had to wait two hours for his re-entrance: and then Mr. Green told him he
                        had a little business in the village, that must be done, but he would be at
                        Thrushcross Grange before morning.</p>
                    <p>The four men came back unaccompanied, also. They brought word that Catherine
                        was ill, too ill to quit her room, and Heathcliff would not suffer them to
                        see her.</p>
                    <p>I scolded the stupid fellows well, for listening to that tale, which I would
                        not carry to my master; resolving to take a whole bevy up to the Heights, at
                        daylight, and storm it, literally, unless the prisoner were quietly
                        surrendered to us.</p>
                    <p>Her father <hi>shall</hi> see her, I vowed, and vowed <pb n="290"/>again, if
                        that devil be killed on his own doorstones, in trying to prevent it!</p>
                    <p>Happily, I was spared the journey, and the trouble.</p>
                    <p>I had gone down stairs at three o'clock to fetch a jug of water; and was
                        passing through the hall, with it in my hand, when a sharp knock, at the
                        front door, made me jump.</p>
                    <p>"Oh! it is Green—I said recollecting myself—only Green," and I went on,
                        intending to send somebody else to open it; but the knock was repeated, not
                        loud, and still importunately.</p>
                    <p>I put the jug on the bannister, and hastened to admit him, myself.</p>
                    <p>The harvest moon shone clear outside. It was not the attorney. My own sweet
                        little mistress sprung on my neck sobbing,</p>
                    <p>"Ellen! Ellen! Is papa alive?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes!" I cried, "yes my angel he is! God be thanked, you are safe with us
                        again!"</p>
                    <p>She wanted to run, breathless as she was, up-stairs to Mr, Linton's room; but
                        I <pb n="291"/>compelled her to sit down on a chair, and made her drink, and
                        washed her pale face, chafing it into a faint colour with my apron. Then I
                        said I must go first, and tell of her arrival; imploring her to say, she
                        should be happy, with young Heathcliff. She stared, but soon comprehending
                        why I counselled her to utter the falsehood, she assured me she would not
                        complain.</p>
                    <p>I couldn't abide to be present at their meeting. I stood outside the
                        chamber-door, a quarter of an hour, and hardly ventured near the bed,
                        then.</p>
                    <p>All was composed, however; Catherine's despair was as silent as her father's
                        joy. She supported him calmly, in appearance; and he fixed on her features
                        his raised eyes that seemed dilating with ecstasy.</p>
                    <p>He died blissfully, Mr. Lockwood; he died so, kissing her cheek, he
                        murmured,</p>
                    <p>"I am going to her, and you darling child shall come to us;" and never
                        stirred or spoke <pb n="292"/>again, but continued that rapt, radiant gaze,
                        till his pulse imperceptibly stopped, and his soul departed. None could have
                        noticed the exact minute of his death, it was so entirely without a
                        struggle.</p>
                    <p>Whether Catherine had spent her tears, or whether the grief were too weighty
                        to let them flow, she sat there dry-eyed till the sun rose—she sat till
                        noon, and would still have remained, brooding over that death-bed, but I
                        insisted on her coming away, and taking some repose.</p>
                    <p>It was well I succeeded in removing her, for at dinner-time appeared the
                        lawyer, having called at Wuthering Heights to get his instructions how to
                        behave. He had sold himself to Mr. Heathcliff, and that was the cause of his
                        delay in obeying my master's summons. Fortunately, no thought of worldly
                        affairs crossed the latter's mind, to disturb him, after his daughter's
                        arrival.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Green took upon himself to order <pb n="293"/>everything and everybody
                        about the place. He gave all the servants but me, notice to quit. He would
                        have carried his delegated authority to the point of insisting that Edgar
                        Linton should not be buried beside his wife, but in the chapel, with his
                        family. There was the will however, to hinder that, and my loud
                        protestations against any infringement of its directions.</p>
                    <p>The funeral was hurried over; Catherine, Mrs. Linton Heathcliff now, was
                        suffered to stay at the Grange, till her father's corpse had quitted it.</p>
                    <p>She told me that her anguish had at last spurred Linton to incur the risk of
                        liberating her. She heard the men I sent, disputing at the door, and she
                        gathered the sense of Heathcliff's answer. It drove her desperate—Linton,
                        who had been conveyed up to the little parlour soon after I left, was
                        terrified into fetching the key before his father re-ascended.</p>
                    <p>He had the cunning to unlock, and re-lock <pb n="294"/>the door, without
                        shutting it; and when he should have gone to bed, he begged to sleep with
                        Hareton, and his petition was granted, for once.</p>
                    <p>Catherine stole out before break of day. She dare not try the doors, lest the
                        dogs should raise an alarm; she visited the empty chambers, and examined
                        their windows; and, luckily, lighting on her mother's, she got easily out of
                        its lattice, and onto the ground, by means of the fir tree, close by. Her
                        accomplice suffered for his share in the escape, notwithstanding his timid
                        contrivances.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="295"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XV.</head>

                    <p>The evening after the funeral, my young lady and I were seated in the
                        library; now musing mournfully, one of us despairingly, on our loss; now
                        venturing conjectures as to the gloomy future.</p>
                    <p>We had just agreed the best destiny which could await Catherine, would be a
                        permission to continue resident at the Grange, at least, during Linton's
                        life: he being allowed to join her there, and I to remain as housekeeper.
                        That seemed rather too favourable an <pb n="296"/>arrangement to be hoped
                        for, and yet I did hope, and began to cheer up under the prospect of
                        retaining my home, and my employment, and, above all, my beloved young
                        mistress, when a servant—one of the discarded ones, not yet departed—rushed
                        hastily in, and said, "that devil Heathcliff" was coming through the court,
                        should he fasten the door in his face?</p>
                    <p>If we had been mad enough to order that proceeding, we had not time. He made
                        no ceremony of knocking, or announcing his name; he was master, and availed
                        himself of the master's privilege to walk straight in, without saying a
                        word.</p>
                    <p>The sound of our informant's voice directed him to the library: he entered;
                        and motioning him out, shut the door.</p>
                    <p>It was the same room into which he had been ushered, as a guest, eighteen
                        years before: the same moon shone through the window; and the same autumn
                        landscape lay outside. We had not yet lighted a candle, <pb n="297"/>but all
                        the apartment was visible, even to the portraits on the wall—the splendid
                        head of Mrs. Linton, and the graceful one of her husband.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff advanced to the hearth. Time had little altered his person either.
                        There was the same man; his dark face rather sallower, and more composed,
                        his frame a stone or two heavier, perhaps, and no other difference.</p>
                    <p>Catherine had risen with an impulse to dash out, when she saw him.</p>
                    <p>"Stop!" he said, arresting her by the arm. "No more runnings away! Where
                        would you go? I'm come to fetch you home; and I hope you'll be a dutiful
                        daughter, and not encourage my son to further disobedience. I was
                        embarrassed how to punish him, when I discovered his part in the
                        business—he's such a cobweb, a pinch would annihilate him—but, you'll see by
                        his look that he has received his due! I brought him down one evening, the
                        day before yesterday, and just set him in <pb n="298"/>a chair, and never
                        touched him afterwards. I sent Hareton out, and we had the room to
                        ourselves. In two hours, I called Joseph to carry him up again; and, since
                        then, my presence is as potent on his nerves, as a ghost; and I fancy he
                        sees me often, though I am not near, Hareton says he wakes and shrieks in
                        the night by the hour together; and calls you to protect him from me; and,
                        whether you like your precious mate or not, you must come—he's your concern
                        now; I yield all my interest in him to you."</p>
                    <p>"Why not let Catherine continue here?" I pleaded, "and send Master Linton to
                        her. As you hate them both, you'd not miss them—they <hi>can</hi> only be a
                        daily plague to your un-natural heart."</p>
                    <p>"I'm seeking a tenant for the Grange," he answered; "and I want my children
                        about me, to be sure—besides that lass owes me her services for her bread;
                        I'm not going to nurture her in luxury and idleness after Linton is <pb n="299"/>gone. Make haste and get ready now. And don't oblige me to
                        compel you."</p>
                    <p>"I shall," said Catherine. "Linton is all I have to love in the world, and,
                        though you have done what you could to make him hateful to me, and me to
                        him, you <hi>cannot</hi> make us hate each other! and I defy you to hurt him
                        when I am by, and I defy you to frighten me."</p>
                    <p>"You are a boastful champion!" replied Heathcliff; "but I don't like you well
                        enough to hurt him—you shall get the full benefit of the torment, as long as
                        it lasts. It is not I who will make him hateful to you—it is his own sweet
                        spirit. He's as bitter as gall at your desertion, and its consequences—don't
                        expect thanks for this noble devotion. I heard him draw a pleasant picture
                        to Zillah of what he would do, if he were as strong as I—the inclination is
                        there, and his very weakness will sharpen his wits to find a substitute for
                        strength."</p>
                    <p>"I know he has a bad nature," <pb n="300"/>Catherine; "he's your son. But I'm
                        glad I've a better, to forgive it; and I know he loves me and for that
                        reason I love him. Mr. Heathcliff, <hi>you</hi> have <hi>nobody</hi> to love
                        you; and, however miserable you make us, we shall still have the revenge of
                        thinking that your cruelty rises from your greater misery! You <hi>are</hi>
                        miserable, are you not? Lonely, like the devil, and envious like him?
                            <hi>Nobody</hi> loves you—<hi>nobody</hi> will cry for you, when you
                        die! I wouldn't be you!"</p>
                    <p>Catherine spoke with a kind of dreary triumph: she seemed to have made up her
                        mind to enter into the spirit of her future family, and draw pleasure from
                        the griefs of her enemies.</p>
                    <p>"You shall be sorry to be yourself presently," said her father-in-law. "If
                        you stand there another minute. Begone, witch, and get your things."</p>
                    <p>She scornfully withdrew.</p>
                    <p>In her absence, I began to beg for Zillah's <pb n="301"/>place at the
                        Heights, offering to resign her mine; but he would suffer it on no account.
                        He bid me be silent, and then, for the first time, allowed himself a glance
                        round the room, and a look at the pictures. Having studied Mrs. Linton, he
                        said—</p>
                    <p>"I shall have that at home. Not because I need it, but—"</p>
                    <p>He turned abruptly to the fire, and continued, with what, for lack of a
                        better word, I must call a smile—</p>
                    <p>"I'll tell you what I did yesterday! I got the sexton, who was digging
                        Linton's grave, to remove the earth off her coffin lid, and I opened it. I
                        thought, once, I would have stayed there, when I saw her face again—it is
                        hers yet—he had hard work to stir me; but he said it would change, if the
                        air blew on it, and so I struck one side of the coffin loose—and covered it
                        up—not Linton's side, damn him! I wish he'd been soldered in lead—and I
                        bribed the sexton to pull it away, when I'm <pb n="302"/>laid there, and
                        slide mine out too, I'll have it made so, and then, by the time Linton gets
                        to us, he'll not know which is which!"</p>
                    <p>"You were very wicked, Mr. Heathcliff!" I exclaimed; "were you not ashamed to
                        disturb the dead?"</p>
                    <p>"I disturbed nobody, Nelly," he replied; "and I gave some ease to myself. I
                        shall be a great deal more comfortable now; and you'll have a better chance
                        of keeping me underground, when I get there. Disturbed her? No! she has
                        disturbed me, night and day, through eighteen
                        years—incessantly—remorselessly—till yesternight—and yesternight, I was
                        tranquil. I dreamt I was sleeping the last sleep, by that sleeper, with my
                        heart stopped, and my cheek frozen against hers."</p>
                    <p>"And if she had been dissolved into earth, or worse, what would you have
                        dreamt of then?" I said.</p>
                    <p>"Of dissolving with her, and being more <pb n="303"/>happy still!" he
                        answered. "Do you suppose I dread any change of that sort? I expected such a
                        transformation on raising the lid, but I'm better pleased that it should not
                        commence till I share it. Besides, unless I had received a distinct
                        impression of her passionless features, that strange feeling would hardly
                        have been removed. It began oddly. You know, I was wild after she died, and
                        eternally, from dawn to dawn, praying her to return to me—her spirit—I have
                        a strong faith in ghosts; I have a conviction that they can, and do exist,
                        among us!</p>
                    <p>"The day she was buried there came a fall of snow. In the evening I went to
                        the churchyard. It blew bleak as winter—all round was solitary: I didn't
                        fear that her fool of a husband would wander up the den so late—and no one
                        else had business to bring them there.</p>
                    <p>"Being alone, and conscious two yards of loose earth was the sole barrier
                        between us, I said to myself—</p>
                    <p><pb n="304"/>"'I'll have her in my arms again! If she be cold, I'll think it
                        is this north wind that chills <hi>me</hi>, and if she be motionless, it is
                        sleep.'</p>
                    <p>"I got a spade from the toolhouse, and began to delve with all my might—it
                        scraped the coffin; I fell to work with my hands; the wood commenced
                        cracking about the screws, I was on the point of attaining my object, when
                        it seemed that I heard a sigh from some one above, close at the edge of the
                        grave, and bending down.—'If I can only get this off,' muttered, 'I wish
                        they may shovel in the earth over us both!' and I wrenched at it more
                        desperately still. There was another sigh, close at my ear. I appeared to
                        feel the warm breath of it displacing the sleet-laden wind. I knew no living
                        thing in flesh and blood was by—but as certainly as you perceive the
                        approach to some substantial body in the dark, though it cannot be
                        discerned, so certainly I felt that Cathy was there, not under me, but on
                        the earth.</p>
                    <p><pb n="305"/>"A sudden sense of relief flowed, from my heart, through every
                        limb. I relinquished my labour of agony, and turned consoled at once,
                        unspeakably consoled. Her presence was with me; it remained while I
                        re-filled the grave, and led me home. You may laugh, if you will, but I was
                        sure I should see her there. I was sure she was with me, and I could not
                        help talking to her.</p>
                    <p>"Having reached the Heights, I rushed eagerly to the door. It was fastened;
                        and, I remember, that accursed Earnshaw and my wife opposed my entrance. I
                        remember stopping to kick the breath out of him, and then hurrying up
                        stairs, to my room, and hers—I looked round impatiently—I felt her by me—I
                        could <hi>almost</hi> see her, and yet I <hi>could not</hi>! I ought to have
                        sweat blood then, from the anguish of my yearning, from the fervour of my
                        supplications to have but one glimpse! I had not one. She showed herself, as
                        she often was in life, a devil to me! And, since then, <pb n="306"/>sometimes more, and sometimes less, I've been the sport of that
                        intolerable torture! Infernal—keeping my nerves at such a stretch, that, if
                        they had not resembled catgut, they would, long ago, have relaxed to the
                        feebleness of Linton's.</p>
                    <p>"When I sat in the house with Hareton, it seemed that on going out, I should
                        meet her; when I walked on the moors I should meet her coming in. When I
                        went from home, I hastened to return, she <hi>must</hi> be somewhere at the
                        Heights, I was certain! And when I slept in her chamber—I was beaten out of
                        that—I couldn't lie there; for the moment I closed my eyes, she was either
                        outside the window, or sliding back the panels, or entering the room, or
                        even resting her darling head on the same pillow as she did when a child.
                        And I must open my lids to see. And so I opened and closed them a hundred
                        times a-night—to be always disappointed! It racked me! I've often groaned
                        aloud, till that old rascal Joseph, <pb n="307"/>no doubt believed that my
                        conscience was playing the fiend inside of me.</p>
                    <p>"Now since I've seen her, I'm pacified—a little. It was a strange way of
                        killing, not by inches, but by fractions of hair-breadths, to beguile me
                        with the spectre of a hope, through eighteen years!"</p>
                    <p>Mr. Heathcliff paused and wiped his forehead—his hair clung to it, wet with
                        perspiration; his eyes were fixed on the red embers of the fire; the brows
                        not contracted, but raised next the temples, diminishing the grim aspect of
                        his countenance, but imparting a peculiar look of trouble, and a painful
                        appearance of mental tension towards one absorbing subject. He only half
                        addressed me, and I maintained silence—I didn't like to hear him talk!</p>
                    <p>After a short period, he resumed his meditation on the picture, took it down,
                        and leant it against the sofa to contemplate it at better advantage; and
                        while so occupied Catherine <pb n="308"/>entered, announcing that she was
                        ready, when her pony should be saddled.</p>
                    <p>"Send that over to-morrow," said Heathcliff to me, then turning to her he
                        added, "You may do without your pony—it is a fine evening, and you'll need
                        no ponies at Wuthering Heights, for what journies you take, your own feet
                        will serve you—Come along."</p>
                    <p>"Good-bye, Ellen!" whispered my dear little mistress. As she kissed me, her
                        lips felt like ice. "Come and see me Ellen, don't forget."</p>
                    <p>"Take care you do no such thing, Mrs. Dean!" said her new father. "When I
                        wish to speak to you I'll come here. I want none of your prying at my
                        house!"</p>
                    <p>He signed her to precede him; and casting back a look that cut my heart, she
                        obeyed.</p>
                    <p>I watched them from the window, walk down the garden. Heathcliff fixed
                        Catherine's <pb n="309"/>arm under his, though she disputed the act, at
                        first, evidently, and with rapid strides, he hurried her into the alley,
                        whose trees concealed them.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="310"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XVI.</head>

                    <p>I have paid a visit to the Heights, but I have not seen her since she left;
                        Joseph held the door in his hand, when I called to ask after her, and
                        wouldn't let me pass. He said Mrs. Linton was "thrang," and the master was
                        not in. Zillah has told me something of the way they go on, otherwise I
                        should hardly know who was dead, and who living.</p>
                    <p>She thinks Catherine, haughty, and does not like her, I can guess by her
                        talk. My young lady asked some aid of her, when she first <pb n="311"/>came,
                        but Mr. Heathcliff told her to follow her own business, and let his
                        daughter-in-law look after herself, and Zillah willingly acquiesced, being a
                        narrow-minded selfish woman. Catherine evinced a child's annoyance at this
                        neglect; repaid it with contempt, and thus enlisted my informant among her
                        enemies, as securely as if she had done her some great wrong.</p>
                    <p>I had a long talk with Zillah, about six weeks ago, a little before you came,
                        one day, when we foregathered on the moor; and this is what she told me.</p>
                    <p>"The first thing Mrs. Linton did," she said, "on her arrival at the Heights,
                        was to run up-stairs without even wishing good-evening to me and Joseph; she
                        shut herself into Linton's room, and remained till morning—then, while the
                        master and Earnshaw were at breakfast, she entered the house and asked all
                        in a quiver if the doctor might be sent for? her cousin was very ill."</p>
                    <p><pb n="312"/>"We know that!" answered Heathcliff, "but his life is not worth
                        a farthing, and I won't spend a farthing on him."</p>
                    <p>"But I cannot tell how to do," she said, "and if nobody will help me, he'll
                        die!"</p>
                    <p>"Walk out of the room!" cried the master, "and let me never hear a word more
                        about him! None here care what becomes of him; if you do, act the nurse; if
                        you do not, lock him up and leave him."</p>
                    <p>Then she began to bother me, and I said I'd had enough plague with the
                        tiresome thing; we each had our tasks, and hers was to wait on Linton, Mr.
                        Heathcliff bid me leave that labour to her.</p>
                    <p>How they managed together, I can't tell. I fancy he fretted a great deal, and
                        moaned hisseln, night and day; and she had precious little rest, one could
                        guess by her white face, and heavy eyes—she sometimes came into the kitchen
                        all wildered like, and looked as if she would fain beg assistance: but I was
                        not going <pb n="313"/>to disobey the master—I never dare disobey him, Mrs.
                        Dean, and though I thought it wrong that Kenneth should not be sent for, it
                        was no concern of mine, either to advise or complain; and I always refused
                        to meddle.</p>
                    <p>Once or twice, after we had gone to bed, I've happened to open my door again,
                        and seen her sitting crying, on the stairs' top; and then I've shut myself
                        in, quick, for fear of being moved to interfere. I did pity her then, I'm
                        sure; still I didn't wish to lose my place, you know!</p>
                    <p>At last, one night she came boldly into my chamber, and frightened me out of
                        my wits, by saying</p>
                    <p>"Tell Mr. Heathcliff that his son is dying—I'm sure he is, this time.—Get up,
                        instantly, and tell him!"</p>
                    <p>Having uttered this speech, she vanished again. I lay a quarter of an hour
                        listening and trembling—Nothing stirred—the house was quiet.</p>
                    <p><pb n="314"/>"She's mistaken, I said to myself. He's got over it. I needn't
                        disturb them." And I began to dose. But my sleep was marred a second time,
                        by a sharp ringing of the bell—the only bell we have, put up on purpose for
                        Linton, and the master called to me, to see what was the matter, and inform
                        them that he wouldn't have that noise repeated.</p>
                    <p>"I delivered Catherine's message. He cursed to himself, and in a few minutes,
                        came out with a lighted candle, and proceeded to their room. I followed—Mrs.
                        Heathcliff was seated by the bedside, with her hands folded on her knees.
                        Her father-in-law went up, held the light to Linton's face, looked at him,
                        and touched him, afterwards he turned to her.</p>
                    <p>"'Now—Catherine,' he said, 'how do you feel?'</p>
                    <p>"She was dumb.</p>
                    <p>'"How do you feel, Catherine?' he repeated.</p>
                    <p>'"He's safe, and I'm free,' she answered, 'I should feel well—but,' she
                        continued with <pb n="315"/>a bitterness she couldn't conceal, 'You have
                        left me so long to struggle against death, alone, that I feel and see only
                        death! I feel like death!'</p>
                    <p>"And she looked like it, too! I gave her a little wine. Hareton and Joseph
                        who had been wakened by the ringing, and the sound of feet, and heard our
                        talk from outside, now entered. Joseph was fain, I believe, of the lad's
                        removal: Hareton seemed a thought bothered, though he was more taken up with
                        staring at Catherine than thinking of Linton. But the master bid him get off
                        to bed again—we didn't want his help. He afterwards made Joseph remove the
                        body to his chamber, and told me to return to mine, and Mrs. Heathcliff
                        remained by herself.</p>
                    <p>"In the morning, he sent me to tell her she must come down to breakfast—she
                        had undressed, and appeared going to sleep; and said she was ill; at which I
                        hardly wondered. I informed Mr. Heathcliff, and he replied,</p>
                    <p><pb n="316"/>"'Well, let her be till after the funeral; and go up dow and
                        then to get her what is needful; and as soon as she seems better, tell
                        me.'</p>
                    <p>Cathy stayed up-stairs a fortnight, according to Zillah, who visited her
                        twice a-day, and would have been rather more friendly, but her attempts at
                        increasing kindness were proudly and promptly repelled.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff went up once, to show her Linton's will. He had bequeathed the
                        whole of his, and what had been her moveable property to his father. The
                        poor creature was threatened, or coaxed into that act, during her week's
                        absence, when his uncle died. The lands, being a minor he could not meddle
                        with. However, Mr. Heathcliff has claimed, and kept them in his wife's
                        right, and his also—I suppose legally, at any rate Catherine, destitute of
                        cash and friends, cannot disturb his possession.</p>
                    <p>"Nobody," said Zillah, "ever approached <pb n="317"/>her door, except that
                        once, but I. . .and nobody asked anything about her. The first occasion of
                        her coming down into the house, was on a Sunday afternoon.</p>
                    <p>"She had cried out, when I carried up her dinner that she couldn't bear any
                        longer being in the cold; and I told her the master was going to Thrushcross
                        Grange; and Earnshaw and I needn't hinder her from descending; so, as soon
                        as she heard Heathcliff's horse trot off, she made her appearance, donned in
                        black, and her yellow curls combed back behind her ears, as plain as a
                        quaker, she couldn't comb them out.</p>
                    <p>"Joseph, and I generally go to chapel on Sundays, (the Kirk, you know, has no
                        minister, now, explained Mrs. Dean, and they call the Methodists' or
                        Baptists' place, I can't say which it is, at Gimmerton, a chapel.) "Joseph
                        had gone," she continued, "but I thought proper to bide at home. Young folks
                        are always the better for an elder's over-looking, and <pb n="318"/>Hareton
                        with all his bashfulness, isn't a model of nice behaviour. I let him know
                        that his cousin would very likely sit with us, and she had been always used
                        to see the Sabbath respected, so he had as good leave his guns, and bits of
                        in-door work alone, while she stayed.</p>
                    <p>"He coloured up at the news; and cast his eyes over his hands and clothes.
                        The train-oil, and gunpowder were shoved out of sight in a minute. I saw he
                        meant to give her his company; and I guessed, by his way, he wanted to be
                        presentable; so, laughing, as I durst not laugh when the master is by, I
                        offered to help him, if he would, and joked at his confusion. He grew
                        sullen, and began to swear.</p>
                    <p>"Now, Mrs. Dean," she went on, seeing me not pleased by her manner, "you
                        happen think your young lady too fine for Mr. Hareton, and happen you're
                        right—but, I own, I should love well to bring her pride a <pb n="319"/>peg
                        lower. And what will all her learning and her daintiness do for her, now?
                        She's as poor as you, or I—poorer—I'll be bound, you're saving—and I'm doing
                        my little all, that road."</p>
                    <p>Hareton allowed Zillah to give him her aid; and she flattered him into a good
                        humour; so, when Catherine came, half forgetting her former insults, he
                        tried to make himself agreeable, by the house-keeper's account.</p>
                    <p>"Missis walked in," she said, "as chill as an icicle, and as high as a
                        princess. got up and offered her my seat in the arm«chair. No, she turned up
                        her nose at my civility. Earnshaw rose too, and bid her come to the settle,
                        and sit close by the fire; he was sure she was starved.</p>
                    <p>"'I've been starved a month and more,' she answered, resting on the word, as
                        scornful as she could.</p>
                    <p>"And she got a chair for herself, and placed it at a distance from both of
                        us.</p>
                    <p>"Having sat till she was warm, she began <pb n="320"/>to look round, and
                        discovered a number of books in the dresser; she was instantly upon her feet
                        again, stretching to reach them, but they were too high up.</p>
                    <p>"Her cousin, after watching her endeavours a while, at last summoned courage
                        to help her; she held her frock, and he filled it with the first that came
                        to hand.</p>
                    <p>"That was a great advance for the lad—she didn't thank him; still, he felt
                        gratified that she had accepted his assistance, and ventured to stand behind
                        as she examined them, and even to stoop and point out what struck bis fancy
                        in certain old pictures which they contained—nor was he daunted by the saucy
                        style in which she jerked the page from his finger; he contented himself
                        with going a bit farther back, and looking at her, instead of the book.</p>
                    <p>"She continued reading, or seeking for something to read. His attention
                        became, by degrees, quite centred in the study of her <pb n="321"/>thick,
                        silky curls—her face he couldn't see, and she couldn't see him. And,
                        perhaps, not quite awake to what he did, but attracted like a child to a
                        candle, at last, he proceeded from staring to touching; he put out his hand
                        and stroked one curl, as gently as if it were a bird. He might have stuck a
                        knife into her neck, she started round in such a taking.</p>
                    <p>"'Get away, this moment! How dare you touch me? Why are you stopping there?'
                        she cried, in a tone of disgust. 'I can't endure you! I'll go up stairs
                        again, if you come near me.'</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Hareton recoiled, looking as foolish as he could do; he sat down in the
                        settle, very quiet, and she continued turning over her volumes, another half
                        hour—finally, Earnshaw crossed over, and whispered to me.</p>
                    <p>"'Will you ask her to read to us, Zillah? I'm stalled of doing naught—and I
                        do like—I could like to hear her! dunnot say I wanted it, but ask of
                        yourseln.'</p>
                    <p><pb n="322"/>"'Mr. Hareton wishes you would read to us, ma'am,' I said,
                        immediately. 'He'd take it very kind—he'd be much obliged.'</p>
                    <p>"She frowned; and, looking up, answered,</p>
                    <p>"'Mr. Hareton, and the whole set of you will be good enough to understand
                        that I reject any pretence at kindness you have the hypocricy to offer! I
                        despise you, and will have nothing to say to any of you! When I would have
                        given my life for one kind word, even to see one of your faces, you all kept
                        off. But I won't complain to you! I'm driven down here by the cold, not
                        either to amuse you, or enjoy your society.'</p>
                    <p>"'What could I ha' done?' began Earnshaw. 'How was I to blame?'</p>
                    <p>"'Oh! you are an exception,' answered Mrs. Heathcliff. 'I never missed such a
                        concern as you.'</p>
                    <p>"'But, I offered more than once, and asked,' he said, kindling up at her
                        pertness, 'I asked Mr. Heathcliff to let me wake for you—'</p>
                    <p><pb n="323"/>"'Be silent! I'll go out of doors, or anywhere, rather than have
                        your disagreeable voice in my ear!' said my lady.</p>
                    <p>"Hareton muttered, she might go to hell, for him! and unslinging his gun,
                        restrained himself from his Sunday occupations, no longer.</p>
                    <p>"He talked now, freely enough; and she presently saw fit to retreat to her
                        solitude; but the frost had set in, and, in spite of her pride, she was
                        forced to condescend to our company, more and more. However, I took care
                        there should be no further scorning at my good nature—ever since, I've been
                        as stiff as herself—and she has no lover, or liker among us—and she does not
                        deserve one—for, let them say the least word to her, and she'll curl back
                        without respect of any one! She'll snap at the master himself; and, as good
                        as dares him to thrash her; and the more hurt she gets, the more venomous
                        she grows."</p>
                    <p>At first, on hearing this account from Zillah, I determined to leave my
                        situation, take a <pb n="324"/>cottage, and get Catherine to come and live
                        with me; but Mr. Heathcliff would as soon permit that, as he would set up
                        Hareton in an independent house; and I can see no remedy, at present, unless
                        she could marry again; and that scheme, it does not come within my province
                        to arrange."</p>
                    <p>Thus ended Mrs. Dean's story. Notwithstanding the doctor's prophecy, I am
                        rapidly recovering strength, and, though it be only the second week in
                        January, I propose getting out on horseback, in a day or two, and riding
                        over to Wuthering Heights, to inform my landlord that I shall spend the next
                        six months in London; and, if he likes, he may look out for another tenant
                        to take the place, after October—I would not pass another winter here, for
                        much.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="325"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XVII.</head>

                    <p>Yesterday was bright, calm, and frosty. I went to the Heights as I proposed;
                        my house-keeper entreated me to bear a little note from her to her young
                        lady, and I did not refuse, for the worthy woman was not conscious of
                        anything odd in her request.</p>
                    <p>The front door stood open, but the jealous gate was fastened, as at my last
                        visit; I knocked and invoked Earnshaw from among the garden beds; he
                        unchained it, and I entered. The fellow is as handsome a rustic as need be
                        seen. <pb n="326"/>I took particular notice of him this time; but then, he
                        does his best, apparently, to make the least of his advantages.</p>
                    <p>I asked if Mr. Heathcliff were at home? He answered, no; but he would be in
                        at dinner-time. It was eleven o'clock, and I announced my intention of going
                        in, and waiting for him, at which he immediately flung down his tools and
                        accompanied me, in the office of watchdog, not as a substitute for the
                        host.</p>
                    <p>We entered together; Catherine was there, making herself useful in preparing
                        some vegetables for the approaching meal; she looked more sulky, and less
                        spirited than when I had seen her first. She hardly raised her eyes to
                        notice me, and continued her employment with the same disregard to common
                        forms of politeness, as before; never returning my bow and good morning, by
                        the slightest acknowledgment.</p>
                    <p>"She does not seem so amiable," I thought, <pb n="327"/>"as Mrs. Dean would
                        persuade me to believe. She's a beauty, it is true; but not an angel."</p>
                    <p>Earnshaw surlily bid her remove her things to the kitchen.</p>
                    <p>"Remove them yourself," she said; pushing them from her, as soon as she had
                        done; and retiring to a stool by the window, where she began to carve
                        figures of birds and beasts, out of the turnip parings in her lap.</p>
                    <p>I approached her, pretending to desire a view of the garden; and, as I
                        fancied, adroitly dropped Mrs. Dean's note onto her knee, unnoticed by
                        Hareton—but she asked aloud—</p>
                    <p>"What is that?" And chucked it off.</p>
                    <p>"A letter from your old acquaintance, the housekeeper at the Grange," I
                        answered, annoyed at her exposing my kind deed, and fearful lest it should
                        be imagined a missive of my own.</p>
                    <p>She would gladly have gathered it up, at this information, but Hareton beat
                        her; he <pb n="328"/>seized, and put it in his waistcoat, saying Mr.
                        Heathcliff should look at it first.</p>
                    <p>Thereat, Catherine silently turned her face from us, and, very stealthily,
                        drew out her pocket-handkerchief and applied it to her eyes; and her cousin,
                        after struggling a while to keep down his softer feelings, pulled out the
                        letter and flung it on the floor beside her as ungraciously as he could.</p>
                    <p>Catherine caught, and perused it eagerly; then she put a few questions to me
                        concerning the inmates, rational and irrational, of her former home; and
                        gazing towards the hills, murmured in soliloquy.</p>
                    <p>"I should like to be riding Minny down there! I should like to be climbing up
                        there—Oh! I'm tired—I'm <hi>stalled</hi>, Hareton!"</p>
                    <p>And she leant her pretty head back against the sill, with half a yawn and
                        half a sigh, and lapsed into an aspect of abstracted sadness, neither
                        caring, nor knowing whether we remarked her.</p>
                    <p><pb n="329"/>"Mrs. Heathcliff," I said, after sitting some time mute, "you
                        are not aware that I am an acquaintance of yours? so intimate, that I think
                        it strange you won't come and speak to me. My housekeeper never wearies of
                        talking about and praising you; and she'll be greatly disappointed if I
                        return with no news of, or from you, except that you received her letter,
                        and said nothing!"</p>
                    <p>She appeared to wonder at this speech and asked,</p>
                    <p>"Does Ellen like you?"</p>
                    <p>"Yes, very well," I replied unhesitatingly.</p>
                    <p>"You must tell her," she continued, "that I would answer her letter, but I
                        have no materials for writing, not even a book from which I might tear a
                        leaf."</p>
                    <p>"No books!" I exclaimed. "How do you contrive to live here without them? If I
                        may take the liberty to inquire—Though provided with a large library, I'm
                        frequently very dull <pb n="330"/>at the Grange—take my books away, and I
                        should be desperate!"</p>
                    <p>"I was always reading, when I had them;" said Catherine, "and Mr. Heathcliff
                        never reads; so he took it into his head to destroy my books. I have not had
                        a glimpse of one, for weeks. Only once, I searched through Joseph's store of
                        theology; to his great irritation: and once, Hareton, I came upon a secret
                        stock in your room. . .some Latin and Greek, and some tales and poetry; all
                        old friends—I brought the last here—and you gathered them, as a magpie
                        gathers silver spoons, for the mere love of stealing! They are of no use to
                        you—or else you concealed them in the bad spirit, that as you cannot enjoy
                        them, nobody else shall. Perhaps <hi>your</hi> envy counselled Mr.
                        Heathcliff to rob me of my treasures? But, I've most of them written on my
                        brain and printed in my heart, and you cannot deprive me of those!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="331"/>Earnshaw blushed crimson, when his cousin made this revelation
                        of his private literary accumulations, and stammered an indignant denial of
                        her accusations.</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Hareton is desirous of increasing his amount of knowledge," I said,
                        coming to his rescue. "He is not <hi>envious</hi> but <hi>emulous</hi> o
                        your attainments—He'll be a clever scholar in a few years!"</p>
                    <p>"And he wants <hi>me</hi> to sink into a dunce, meantime," answered
                        Catherine. "Yes, I hear him trying to spell and read to himself, and pretty
                        blunders he makes! I wish you would repeat Chevy Chase, as you did
                        yesterday—It was extremely funny! I heard you. . .and I heard you turning
                        over the dictionary, to seek out the hard words, and then cursing, because
                        you couldn't read their explanations!"</p>
                    <p>The young man evidently thought it too bad that he should be laughed at for
                        his ignorance, and then laughed at for trying to remove it. I had a similar
                        notion, and, <pb n="332"/>remembering Mrs. Dean's anecdote of his first
                        attempt at enlightening the darkness in which he had been reared, I
                        observed,</p>
                    <p>"But, Mrs. Heathcliff, we have each had a commencement, and each stumbled and
                        tottered on the threshold, and had our teachers scorned, instead of aiding
                        us, we should stumble and totter yet."</p>
                    <p>"Oh!" she replied, "I don't wish to limit his acquirements. . .still, he has
                        no right to appropriate what is mine, and make it ridiculous to me with his
                        vile mistakes and mis-pronunciations! Those books, both prose and verse,
                        were consecrated to me by other associations, and I hate to have them
                        debased and profaned in his mouth! Besides, of all, he has selected my
                        favourite pieces that I love the most to repeat, as if out of deliberate
                        malice!"</p>
                    <p>Hareton's chest heaved in silence a minute; be laboured under a severe sense
                        of mortification and wrath, which it was no easy task to suppress.</p>
                    <p><pb n="333"/>I rose, and from a gentlemanly idea of relieving his
                        embarrassment, took up my station in the door-way surveying the external
                        prospect, as I stood.</p>
                    <p>He followed my example, and left the room, but presently re-appeared, bearing
                        half-a-dozen volumes in his hands, which he threw into Catherine's lap,
                        exclaiming,</p>
                    <p>"Take them! I never want to hear, or read, or think of them again!"</p>
                    <p>"I wont have them, now!" she answered. "I shall connect them with you, and
                        hate them."</p>
                    <p>She opened one that had obviously been often turned over, and read a portion
                        in the drawling tone of a beginner; then laughed, and threw it from her.</p>
                    <p>"And listen!" she continued provokingly, commencing a verse of an old ballad
                        in the same fashion.</p>
                    <p>But his self-love would endure no further <pb n="334"/>torment—I heard, and
                        not altogether disapprovingly, a manual check given to her saucy tongue—The
                        little wretch had done her utmost to hurt her cousin's sensitive though
                        uncultivated feelings, and a physical argument was the only mode he had of
                        balancing the account and repaying its effects on the inflicter.</p>
                    <p>He afterwards gathered the books and hurled them on the fire. I read in his
                        countenance what anguish it was to offer that sacrifice to spleen—I fancied
                        that as they consumed, he recalled the pleasure they had already imparted;
                        and the triumph, and ever increasing pleasure he had anticipated from
                        them—and I fancied, I guessed the incitement to his secret studies, also. He
                        had been content with daily labour and rough animal enjyoments, till
                        Catherine crossed his path—Shame at her scorn, and hope of her approval were
                        his first prompters to higher pursuits; <pb n="335"/>and instead of guarding
                        him from one, and winning him the other, his endeavours to raise himself had
                        produced just the contrary result.</p>
                    <p>"Yes, that's all the good that such a brute as you can get from them!" cried
                        Catherine, sucking her damaged lip, and watching the conflagration with
                        indignant eyes.</p>
                    <p>"You'd <hi>better</hi> hold your tongue, now!" he answered fiercely.</p>
                    <p>And his agitation precluding further speech, he advanced hastily to the
                        entrance, where I made way for him to pass. But, ere he had crossed the
                        door-stones, Mr. Heathcliff, coming up the causeway, encountered him and
                        laying hold of his shoulder, asked.</p>
                    <p>"What's to do now, my lad?"</p>
                    <p>"Naught, naught!" he said, and broke away, to enjoy his grief and anger in
                        solitude.</p>
                    <p>Heathcliff gazed after him, and sighed.</p>
                    <p>"It will be odd, if I thwart myself!" he muttered, unconscious that I was
                        behind him. "But, when I look for his father in his face, <pb n="336"/>I
                        find <hi>her</hi> every day more! How the devil is he so like? I can hardly
                        bear to see him."</p>
                    <p>He bent his eyes to the ground, and walked moodily in. There was a restless,
                        anxious expression in his countenance, I had never remarked there before,
                        and he looked sparer in person.</p>
                    <p>His daughter-in-law on perceiving him through the window, immediately escaped
                        to the kitchen, so that I remained alone.</p>
                    <p>"I'm glad to see you out of doors again, Mr. Lockwood," he said in reply to
                        my greeting, "from selfish motives partly, I don't think I could readily
                        supply your loss in this desolation. I've wondered, more than once, what
                        brought you here."</p>
                    <p>"An idle whim, I fear sir," was my answer, "or else an idle whim is going to
                        spirit me away—I shall set out for London, next week, and I must give you
                        warning, that I feel no disposition to retain Thrushcross Grange, <pb n="337"/>beyond the twelvemonths I agreed to rent it. I believe I shall
                        not live there any more.</p>
                    <p>"Oh, indeed! you're tired of being banished from the world, are you?" he
                        said. "But, if you be coming to plead off paying for a place, you won't
                        occupy, your journey is useless—I never relent in exacting my due, from any
                        one."</p>
                    <p>"I'm coming to plead off nothing about it!" I exclaimed, considerably
                        irritated. "Should you wish it, I'll settle with you now," and I drew my
                        notebook from my pocket.</p>
                    <p>"No, no," he replied coolly, "you'll leave sufficient behind, to cover your
                        debts, if you fail to return. . .I'm not in such a hurry—sit down and take
                        your dinner with us—a guest that is safe from repeating his visit, can
                        generally be made welcome—Catherine! bring the things in—where are you?"</p>
                    <p>Catherine re-appeared, bearing a tray of knives and forks.</p>
                    <p><pb n="338"/>"You may get your dinner with Joseph," muttered Heathcliff
                        aside, "and remain in the kitchen till he is gone."</p>
                    <p>She obeyed his directions very punctually—perhaps she had no temptation to
                        transgress. Living among clowns and misanthropists, she probably cannot
                        appreciate a better class of people, when she meets them.</p>
                    <p>With Mr. Heathcliff, grim and saturnine, on one hand, and Hareton absolutely
                        dumb, on the other, I made a somewhat cheerless meal, and bid adieu early—I
                        would have departed by the back way to get a last glimpse of Catherine, and
                        annoy old Joseph; but Hareton received orders to lead up my horse, and my
                        host himself escorted me to the door, so I could not fulfil my wish.</p>
                    <p>"How dreary life gets over in that house!" I reflected, while riding down the
                        road. "What a realization of something more romantic than a fairy tale it
                        would have been <pb n="339"/>for Mrs. Linton Heathcliff, had she and I
                        struck up an attachment, as her good nurse desired, and migrated together,
                        into the stirring atmosphere of the town!"</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="340"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XVIII.</head>

                    <p>1802.—This September, I was invited to devastate the moors of a friend, in
                        the North; and, on my journey to his abode, I unexpectedly came within
                        fifteen miles of Gimmerton. The hostler, at a roadside public-house, was
                        holding a pail of water to refresh my horses, when a cart of very green
                        oats, newly reaped, passed by, and he remarked—</p>
                    <p>"Yon's frough Gimmerton, nah! They're alias three wick' after other folk wi'
                        ther harvest."</p>
                    <p><pb n="341"/>"Gimmerton?" I repeated, my residence in that locality had
                        already grown dim and dreamy. "Ah! I know! How far is it from this?"</p>
                    <p>"Happen fourteen mile' o'er th' hills, and a rough road," he answered.</p>
                    <p>A sudden impulse seized me to visit Thrushcross Grange. It was scarcely noon,
                        and I conceived that I might as well pass the night under my own roof, as in
                        an inn. Besides, I could spare a day easily, to arrange matters with my
                        landlord, and thus save myself the trouble of invading the neighbourhood
                        again.</p>
                    <p>Having rested a while, I directed my servant to inquire the way to the
                        village; and, with great fatigue to our beasts, we managed the distance in
                        some three hours.</p>
                    <p>I left him there, and proceeded down the valley alone. The grey church looked
                        greyer, and the lonely churchyard lonelier. I distinguished a moor sheep
                        cropping the short turf on the graves. It was sweet, warm weather <pb n="342"/>—too warm for travelling; but the heat did not hinder me from
                        enjoying the delightful scenery above and below; had I seen it nearer
                        August, I'm sure it would have tempted me to waste a month among its
                        solitudes. In winter, nothing more dreary, in summer, nothing more divine,
                        than those glens shut in by hills, and those bluff, bold swells of
                        heath.</p>
                    <p>I reached the Grange before sunset, and knocked for admittance; but the
                        family had retreated into the back premises, I judged by one thin, blue
                        wreath curling from the kitchen chimney, and they did not hear.</p>
                    <p>I rode into the court. Under the porch, a girl of nine or ten, sat knitting,
                        and an old woman reclined on the horse-steps, smoking a meditative pipe.</p>
                    <p>"Is Mrs. Dean within?" I demanded of the dame.</p>
                    <p>"Mistress Dean? Nay!" she answered, "shoo doesn't bide here; shoe's up at th'
                        Heights."</p>
                    <p><pb n="343"/>"Are you the housekeeper, then?" I continued.</p>
                    <p>"Eea, Aw keep th' hause," she replied.</p>
                    <p>"Well, I'm Mr. Lockwood, the master—Are there any rooms to lodge me in, I
                        wonder? I wish to stay here all night"</p>
                    <p>"T' maister!" she cried in astonishment, "Whet, whoiver knew yah wur coming?
                        Yah sud ha' send word! They's nowt norther dry—nor mensful abaht t'
                        place—nowt there is n't!'</p>
                    <p>She threw down her pipe and bustled in, the girl followed, and I entered too;
                        soon perceiving that her report was true, and, moreover, that I had almost
                        upset her wits by my unwelcome apparition.</p>
                    <p>I bid her be composed—I would go out for a walk; and, meantime, she must try
                        to prepare a corner of a sitting-room for me to sup in, and a bed-room to
                        sleep in—No sweeping and dusting, only good fires and dry sheets were
                        necessary.</p>
                    <p>She seemed willing to do her best; though <pb n="344"/>she thrust the
                        hearth-brush into the grates in mistake for the poker; and mal-appropriated
                        several other articles of her craft; but I retired, confiding in her energy
                        for a resting-place against my return.</p>
                    <p>Wuthering Heights was the goal of my proposed excursion. An after-thought
                        brought me back, when I had quitted the court.</p>
                    <p>"All well at the Heights?" I enquired of the woman.</p>
                    <p>"Eea, f'r owt Ee knaw!" she answered, skurrying away with a pan of hot
                        cinders.</p>
                    <p>I would have asked why Mrs. Dean had deserted the Grange; but it was
                        impossible to delay her at such a crisis, so, I turned away and made my
                        exit, rambling leisurely along with the glow of a sinking sun behind, and
                        the mild glory of a rising moon in front; one fading, and the other
                        brightening, as I quitted the park, and climbed the stony by-road branching
                        off to Mr. Heathcliff's dwelling.</p>
                    <p>Before I arrived in sight of it, all that <pb n="345"/>remained of day was a
                        beamless, amber light along the west; but I could see every pebble on the
                        path, and every blade of grass by that splendid moon.</p>
                    <p>I had neither to climb the gate, nor to knock—it yielded to my hand.</p>
                    <p>That is an improvement! I thought. And I noticed another, by the aid of my
                        nostrils; a fragrance of stocks and wall flowers, wafted on the air, from
                        amongst the homely fruit trees.</p>
                    <p>Both doors and lattices were open; and, yet, as is usually the case in a coal
                        district, a fine, red fire illumined the chimney; the comfort which the eye
                        derives from it, renders the extra heat endurable. But the house of
                        Wuthering Heights is so large, that the inmates have plenty of space for
                        withdrawing out of its influence; and, accordingly, what inmates there were
                        had stationed themselves not far from one of the windows. I could both see
                        them and hear them talk before I entered; and, looked and listened in <pb n="346"/>consequence, being moved thereto by a mingled sense of
                        curiosity, and envy that grew as I lingered.</p>
                    <p>"Con-<hi>trary</hi>!" said a voice, as sweet as a silver bell—"That for the
                        third time, you dunce! I'm not going to tell you, again—Recollect, or I pull
                        your hair!"</p>
                    <p>"Contrary, then," answered another, in deep, but softened tones. And now,
                        kiss me, for minding so well."</p>
                    <p>"No, read it over first correctly, without a single mistake."</p>
                    <p>The male speaker began to read—he was a young man, respectably dressed, and
                        seated at a table, having a book before him. His handsome features glowed
                        with pleasure, and his eyes kept impatiently wandering from the page to a
                        small white hand over his shoulder, which recalled him by a smart slap on
                        the cheek, whenever its owner detected such signs of inattention.</p>
                    <p>Its owner stood behind; her light shining <pb n="347"/>ringlets blending, at
                        intervals, with his brown locks, as she bent to superintend his studies; and
                        her face—it was lucky he could not see her face, or he would never have been
                        so steady—I could, and I bit my lip, in spite, at having thrown away the
                        chance I might have had, of doing something besides staring at its smiting
                        beauty.</p>
                    <p>The task was done, not free from further blunders, but the pupil claimed a
                        reward and received, at least five kisses, which, however, he generously
                        returned. Then, they came to the door, and from their conversation, I judged
                        they were about to issue out and have a walk on the moors. I supposed I
                        should be condemned in Hareton Earashaw's heart, if not by his mouth, to the
                        lowest pit in the infernal regions if I showed my unfortunate person in his
                        neighbourhood then, and feeling very mean and malignant, I skulked round to
                        seek refuge in the kitchen.</p>
                    <p>There, was unobstructed admittance on that <pb n="348"/>side also; and, at
                        the door, sat my old friend, Nelly Dean, sewing and singing a song, which
                        was often interrupted from within, by harsh words of scorn and intolerance,
                        uttered in far from musical accents.</p>
                    <p>"Aw'd rayther, by th' haulf, hev 'em swearing i' my lugs frough morn tuh
                        neeght, nur hearken yah, hahsiver!" said the tenant of the kitchen, in
                        answer to an unheard speech of Nelly's. "It's a blazing shaime, ut Aw cannut
                        oppen t' Blessed Book, bud yah set up them glories tuh sattan, un' all t'
                        flay some wickednesses ut iver wer born intuh t' warld! Oh! yah're a raight
                        nowt; un' shoo's another; un' that poor lad 'ull be lost, atween ye. Poor
                        lad!" he added, with a groan; "he's witched, Aw'm sartin on't! O, Lord,
                        judge 'em, fur they's norther law nur justice amang wer rullers!"</p>
                    <p>"No! or we should be sitting in flaming fagots, I suppose," retorted the
                        singer. "But wisht, old man, and read your Bible, like a <pb n="349"/>christian, and never mind me. This is 'Fairy Annie's Wedding'—a bonny
                        tune—it goes to a dance."</p>
                    <p>Mrs. Dean was about to recommence, when I advanced, and recognising me
                        directly, she jumped to her feet, crying—</p>
                    <p>"Why, bless you, Mr. Lockwood! How could you think of returning in this way?
                        All's shut up at Thrushcross Grange. You should have given us notice!"</p>
                    <p>"I've arranged to be accommodated there, for as long as I shall stay," I
                        answered. "I depart again to-morrow. And how are you transplanted here, Mrs.
                        Dean? tell me that."</p>
                    <p>"Zillah left, and Mr. Heathcliff wished me to come, soon after you went to
                        London, and stay till you returned. But, step in, pray! Have you walked from
                        Gimmerton this evening?"</p>
                    <p>"From the Grange," I replied; "and, while they make me lodging room there, I
                        want to finish my business with your master, because <pb n="350"/>I don't
                        think of having another opportunity in a hurry."</p>
                    <p>"What business, sir?" said Nelly, conducting me into the house. "He's gone
                        out, at present, and wont return soon."</p>
                    <p>"About the rent," I answered.</p>
                    <p>"Oh! then it is with Mrs. Heathcliff you must settle," she observed, " or
                        rather with me. She has not learnt to manage her affairs yet, and I act for
                        her; there's nobody else." I looked surprised.</p>
                    <p>"Ah! you have not heard of Heathcliff's death, I see!" she continued.</p>
                    <p>"Heathcliff dead?" I exclaimed, astonished. "How long ago?"</p>
                    <p>"Three months since—but, sit down, and let me take your hat, and I'll tell
                        you all about it. Stop, you have had nothing to eat, have you?"</p>
                    <p>"I want nothing. I have ordered supper at home. You sit down too. I never
                        dreamt ot his dying! Let me hear how it came to pass <pb n="351"/>You say
                        you don't expect them back for some time—the young people?"</p>
                    <p>"No—I have to scold them every evening, for their late rambles—but they don't
                        care for me. At least, have a drink of our old ale—it will do you good—you
                        seem weary."</p>
                    <p>She hastened to fetch it, before I could refuse, and I heard Joseph asking,
                        whether "it warn't a crying scandal that she should have fellies at her time
                        of life? And then, to get them jocks out uh t' Maister's cellar! He fair
                        shaamed to 'bide still and see it."</p>
                    <p>She did not stay to retaliate, but re-entered, in a minute, bearing a
                        reaming, silver pint, whose contents I lauded with becoming earnestness. And
                        afterwards she furnished me with the sequel of Heathcliff's history. He had
                        a "queer" end, as she expressed it.</p>
                    <p>"I was summoned to Wuthering Heights, within a fortnight of your leaving us,"
                        she said; "and I obeyed joyfully, for Catherine's sake.</p>
                    <p><pb n="352"/>"My first interview with her grieved and shocked me! she had
                        altered so much since our separation. Mr. Heathcliff did not explain his
                        reasons for taking a new mind about my coming here; he only told me he
                        wanted me, and he was tired of seeing Catherine, I must make the little
                        parlour my sitting room, and keep her with me. It was enough if he were
                        obliged to see her once or twice a day.</p>
                    <p>"She seemed pleased at this arrangement; and, by degrees, I smuggled over a
                        great number of books, and other articles, that had formed her amusement at
                        the Grange; and flattered myself we should get on in tolerable comfort.</p>
                    <p>"The delusion did not last long. Catherine, contented at first, in a brief
                        space grew irritable and restless. For one thing, she was forbidden to move
                        out of the garden, and it fretted her sadly to be confined to its narrow
                        bounds, as Spring drew on—for another, in following the house, I was forced
                        to quit her <pb n="353"/>frequently, and she complained of loneliness; she
                        preferred quarrelling with Joseph in the kitchen, to sitting at peace in her
                        solitude.</p>
                    <p>"I did not mind their skirmishes; but Hareton was often obliged to seek the
                        kitchen also, when the master wanted to have the house to himself; and,
                        though, in the beginning, she either left it at his approach, or quietly
                        joined in my occupations, and shunned remarking, or addressing him—and
                        though he was always as sullen and silent, as possible—after a while, she
                        changed her behaviour, and became incapable of letting him alone. Talking at
                        him; commenting on his stupidity and idleness; expressing her wonder how he
                        could endure the life he lived—how he could sit a whole evening staring into
                        the fire, and dozing.</p>
                    <p>"'He's just like a dog, is he not, Ellen?' she once observed, "or a
                        cart-horse? He does his work, eats his food, and sleeps, eternally! What a
                        blank, dreary mind he must have! Do <pb n="354"/>you ever dream, Hareton?
                        And, if you do, what is it about? But, you can't speak to me!'</p>
                    <p>"Then she looked at him; but he would neither open his mouth, nor look
                        again.</p>
                    <p>"'He's perhaps, dreaming now,' she continued. 'He twitched his shoulder as
                        Juno twitches hers. Ask him, Ellen."</p>
                    <p>"'Mr. Hareton will ask the master to send you up stairs, if you don't
                        behave!' I said. He had not only twitched his shoulder, but clenched his
                        fist, as if tempted to use it.</p>
                    <p>"'I know why Hareton never speaks, when I am in the kitchen,' she exclaimed,
                        on another occasion. 'He is afraid I shall laugh at him. Ellen, what do you
                        think? He began to teach himself to read once; and, because I laughed, he
                        burned his books, and dropped it—was he not a fool?'</p>
                    <p>"'Were not you naughty?' I said; 'answer me that.'</p>
                    <p>"'Perhaps I was,' she went on, 'but I did <pb n="355"/>not expect him to be
                        so silly. Hareton, if I gave you a book, would you take it now? I'll
                        try!'</p>
                    <p>"She placed one she had been perusing on his hand; he flung it off, and
                        muttered, if she did not give over, he would break her neck.</p>
                    <p>"'Well I shall put it here,' she said, 'in the table drawer, and I'm going to
                        bed.'</p>
                    <p>"Then she whispered me to watch whether he touched it, and departed. But he
                        would not come near it, and so I informed her in the morning, to her great
                        disappointment. I saw she was sorry for his persevering sulkiness and
                        indolence—her conscience reproved her for frightening him off improving
                        himself—she had done it effectually.</p>
                    <p>But her ingenuity was at work to remedy the injury; while I ironed, or
                        pursued other stationary employments I could not well do in in the
                        parlour—she would bring some pleasant volume, and read it aloud to me. When
                        Hareton was there, she generally paused in an <pb n="356"/>interesting part,
                        and left the book lying about—that she did repeatedly; but he was as
                        obstinate as a mule, and, instead of snatching at her bait, in wet weather
                        he took to smoking with Joseph, and they sat like automatons, one on each
                        side of the fire, the elder happily too deaf to understand her wicked
                        nonsense, as he would have called it, the younger doing his best to seem to
                        disregard it. On fine evenings the latter followed his shooting expeditions,
                        and Catherine yawned and sighed, and teased me to talk to her, and ran off
                        into the court or garden, the moment I began; and, as a last resource, cried
                        and said, she was tired of living, her life was useless.</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Heathcliff, who grew more and more disinclined to society, had almost
                        banished Earnshaw out of his apartment. Owing to an accident, at the
                        commencement of March, he became for some days a fixture in the kitchen. His
                        gun burst, while out on the hills, by himself; a splinter cut his arm, and
                        he lost a good <pb n="357"/>deal of blood before he could reach home. The
                        consequence was, that, perforce, he was condemned to the fire-side and
                        tranquillity, till he made it up again.</p>
                    <p>"It suited Catherine to have him there: at any rate, it made her hate her
                        room up stairs, more than ever; and she would compel me to find out business
                        below, that she might accompany me.</p>
                    <p>"On Easter Monday, Joseph went to Gimmerton fair with some cattle; and, in
                        the afternoon, I was busy getting up linen in the kitchen—Earnshaw sat,
                        morose as usual, at the chimney corner, and my little mistress was beguiling
                        an idle hour with drawing pictures on the window panes, varying her
                        amusement by smothered bursts of songs, and whispered ejaculations, and
                        quick glances of annoyance and impatience in the direction of her cousin,
                        who steadfastly smoked, and looked into the grate.</p>
                    <p>"At a notice that I could do with her no longer, intercepting my light, she
                        removed to <pb n="358"/>the hearthstone. I bestowed little attention on her
                        proceedings, but, presently, I heard her begin—</p>
                    <p>"'I've found out, Hareton, that I want—that I'm glad—that I should like you
                        to be my cousin, now, if you had not grown so cross to me, and so
                        rough.'</p>
                    <p>"Hareton returned no answer.</p>
                    <p>"'Hareton, Hareton, Hareton! do you hear?' she continued.</p>
                    <p>"'Get off wi' ye!' he growled, with uncompromising gruffness.</p>
                    <p>"'Let me take that pipe,' she said, cautiously advancing her hand, and
                        abstracting it from his mouth.</p>
                    <p>"Before he could attempt to recover it, it was broken, and behind the fire.
                        He swore at her and seized another.</p>
                    <p>"'Stop,' she cried, 'you must listen to me, first; and I can't speak while
                        those clouds are floating in my face.'</p>
                    <p><pb n="359"/>"'Will you go to the devil!' he exclaimed, ferociously, 'and let
                        me be!'</p>
                    <p>"'No,' she persisted, 'I wont—I can't tell what to do to make you talk to me,
                        and you are determined not to understand. When I call you stupid, I don't
                        mean anything—I don't mean that I despise you. Come you shall take notice of
                        me, Hareton—you are my cousin, and you shall own me.'</p>
                    <p>"'I shall have naught to do wi' you, and your mucky pride, and your damned,
                        mocking tricks!' he answered. 'I'll go to hell, body and soul, before I look
                        sideways after you again! side out of t' gait, now; this minute!'</p>
                    <p>"Catherine frowned, and retreated to the window-seat, chewing her lip, and
                        endeavouring, by humming an eccentric tune, to conceal a growing tendency to
                        sob.</p>
                    <p>"'You should be friends with your cousin, Mr. Hareton,' I interrupted, 'since
                        she repents of her sauciness! it would do you a great deal <pb n="360"/>of
                        good—it would make you another man, to have her for a companion.'</p>
                    <p>"'A companion?' he cried; 'when she hates me, and does not think me fit to
                        wipe her shoon! Nay, if it made me a king, I'd not be scorned for seeking
                        her good will any more.'</p>
                    <p>"'It is not I who hate you, it is you who hate me!' wept Cathy, no longer
                        disguising her trouble. 'You hate me as much as Mr. Heathcliff does, and
                        more.'</p>
                    <p>"'You're a damned liar,' began Earnshaw; 'why have I made him angry, by
                        taking your part then, a hundred times? and that, when you sneered at, and
                        despised me, and—Go on plaguing me, and I'll step in yonder, and say you
                        worried me out of the kitchen!'</p>
                    <p>"'I didn't know you took my part,' she answered, drying her eyes; 'and I was
                        miserable and bitter at every body; but, now I thank you, and beg you to
                        forgive me, what can I do besides?'</p>
                    <p>"She returned to the hearth, and frankly extended her hand.</p>
                    <p><pb n="361"/>"He blackened, and scowled like a thunder cloud, and kept his
                        fists resolutely clenched, and his gaze fixed on the ground.</p>
                    <p>"Catherine, by instinct, must have divined it was obdurate perversity, and
                        not dislike, that prompted this dogged conduct; for, after remaining an
                        instant, undecided, she stooped, and impressed on his cheek a gentle
                        kiss.</p>
                    <p>"The little rogue thought I had not seen her, and, drawing back, she took her
                        former station by the window, quite demurely.</p>
                    <p>"I shook my head reprovingly; and then she blushed, and whispered—</p>
                    <p>"'Well! what should I have done, Ellen? He wouldn't shake hands, and he
                        wouldn't look—I must show him some way that I like him, that I want to be
                        friends.'</p>
                    <p>"Whether the kiss convinced Hareton, I cannot tell; he was very careful, for
                        some minutes, that his face should not be seen; and when he did raise it, he
                        was sadly puzzled where to turn his eyes.</p>
                    <p><pb n="362"/>"Catherine employed herself in wrapping a handsome book neatly
                        in white paper; and having tied it with a bit of ribband, and addressed it
                        to 'Mr. Hareton Earnshaw,' she desired me to be her ambassadress, and convey
                        the present to its destined recipient.</p>
                    <p>"'And tell him, if he'll take it, I'll come and teach him to read it right,'
                        she said, 'and, if he refuse it, I'll go up stairs, and never tease him
                        again,'</p>
                    <p>"I carried it, and repeated the message, anxiously watched by my employer.
                        Hareton would not open his fingers, so I laid it on his knee. He did not
                        strike it off either. I returned to my work: Catherine leaned her head and
                        arms on the table, till she heard the slight rustle of the covering being
                        removed, then she stole away, and quietly seated herself beside her cousin.
                        He trembled, and his face glowed—all his rudeness, and all his surly
                        harshness had deserted him—he could not summon <pb n="363"/>courage, at
                        first, to utter a syllable, in reply to her questioning look, and her
                        murmured petition.</p>
                    <p>"'Say you forgive me, Hareton, do! You can make me so happy, by speaking that
                        little word.'</p>
                    <p>"He muttered something inaudible.</p>
                    <p>"'And you'll be my friend?' added Catherine, interrogatively.</p>
                    <p>"'Nay! you'll be ashamed of me every day of your life,' he answered. 'And the
                        more, the more you know me, and I cannot bide it.'</p>
                    <p>"'So, you wont be my friend?' she said, smiling as sweet as honey, and
                        creeping close up.</p>
                    <p>"I overheard no further distinguishable talk; but on looking round again, I
                        perceived two such radiant countenances bent over the page of the accepted
                        book, that I did not doubt the treaty had been ratified, on both sides, and
                        the enemies were, thenceforth, sworn allies.</p>
                    <p>"The work they studied was full of costly <pb n="364"/>pictures; and those,
                        and their position had charm enough to keep them unmoved, till Joseph came
                        home. He, poor man, was perfectly aghast at the spectacle of Catherine
                        seated on the same bench with Hareton Earnshaw, leaning her hand on his
                        shoulder; and confounded at his favourite's endurance of her proximity. It
                        affected him too deeply to allow an observation on the subject that night.
                        His emotion was only revealed by the immense sighs he drew, as he solemnly
                        spread his large bible on the table, and overlaid it with dirty bank-notes
                        from his pocket-book, the produce of the day's transactions. At length, he
                        summoned Hareton from his seat.</p>
                    <p>"'Tak' these in tuh t' maister, lad,' he said, 'un' bide theare; Aw's gang up
                        tuh my awn rahm. This hoile's norther mensful, nor seemly fur us—we mun side
                        aht, and seearch another!'</p>
                    <p>"'Come, Catherine, I said, we must 'side out,' too—I've done my ironing, are
                        you ready to go?'</p>
                    <p><pb n="365"/>"'It is not eight o'clock!' she answered, rising unwillingly,
                        'Hareton, I'll leave this book upon the chimney-piece, and I'll bring some
                        more to-morrow.'</p>
                    <p>"'Ony books ut yah leave, Aw suall tak' intuh th' hahse,' said Joseph, 'un'
                        it 'ull be mitch if yah find 'em agean; soa, yah muh plase yourseln!'</p>
                    <p>"Cathy threatened that his library should pay for hers; and, smiling as she
                        passed Hareton, went singing up stairs, lighter of heart, I venture to say,
                        than ever she had been under that roof before; except, perhaps, during her
                        earliest visits to Linton.</p>
                    <p>"The intimacy, thus commenced, grew rapidly; though it encountered temporary
                        interruptions, Earnshaw was not to be civilized with a wish; and my young
                        lady was no philosopher, and no paragon of patience; but both their minds
                        tending to the same point—one loving and desiring to esteem; and the other
                        loving and desiring to be esteemed—they contrived in the end, to reach
                        it.</p>
                    <p><pb n="366"/>"You see, Mr. Lockwood, it was easy enough to win Mrs.
                        Heathcliff's heart; but now, I'm glad you did not try—the crown of all my
                        wishes will be the union of those two; I shall envy no one on their
                        wedding-day—there won't be a happier woman than myself in England!"</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="367"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XIX.</head>

                    <p>"On the morrow of that Monday, Earnshaw being still unable to follow his
                        ordinary employments, and, therefore, remaining about the house, I speedily
                        found it would be impracticable to retain my charge beside me, as
                        heretofore.</p>
                    <p>She got down stairs before me, and out into the garden; where she had seen
                        her cousin performing some easy work; and when I went to bid them come to
                        breakfast, I saw she had persuaded him to clear a large space of ground <pb n="368"/>from currant and gooseberry bushes, and they were busy planning
                        together an importation of plants from the Grange.</p>
                    <p>"I was terrified at the devastation which had been accomplished in a brief
                        half hour; the black currant trees were the apple of Joseph's eye, and she
                        had just fixed her choice of a flower bed in the midst of them!</p>
                    <p>"'There! That will be all shewn to the master,' I exclaimed, 'the minute it
                        is discovered. And what excuse have you to offer for taking such liberties
                        with the garden? We shall have a fine explosion on the head of it: see if we
                        don't! Mr. Hareton, I wonder you should have no more wit, than to go and
                        make that mess at her bidding!'</p>
                    <p>"'I'd forgotten they were Joseph's,' answered Earnshaw, rather puzzled, 'but
                        I'll tell him I did it.'</p>
                    <p>"We always ate our meals with Mr. Heathcliff. I held the mistress's post in
                        making tea and carving; so I was indispensable at table. <pb n="369"/>Catherine usually sat by me; but to-day, she stole nearer to Hareton, and
                        I presently saw she would have no more discretion in her friendship, than
                        she had in her hostility.</p>
                    <p>"'Now, mind you don't talk with and notice your cousin too much,' were my
                        whispered instructions as we entered the room; 'It will certainly annoy Mr.
                        Heathcliff, and he'll be mad at you both.'</p>
                    <p>"'I'm not going to,' she answered.</p>
                    <p>"The minute after, she had sidled to him, and was sticking primroses in his
                        plate of porridge.</p>
                    <p>"He dared not speak to her, there; he dared hardly look; and yet she went on
                        teasing, till he was twice on the point of being provoked to laugh; and I
                        frowned, and then, she glanced towards the master, whose mind was occupied
                        on other subjects than his company, as his countenance evinced, and she grew
                        serious for an instant, scrutinizing him with deep gravity. Afterwards she
                        turned, and re-commenced her <pb n="370"/>nonsense; at last, Hareton uttered
                        a smothered laugh.</p>
                    <p>"Mr. Heathcliff started; his eye rapidly surveyed our faces. Catherine met it
                        with her accustomed look of nervousness, and yet defiance, which he
                        abhorred.</p>
                    <p>"It is well you are out of my reach;" he exclaimed. "What fiend possesses you
                        to stare back at me, continually, with those infernal eyes? Down with them!
                        and don't remind me of your existence again. I thought I had cured you of
                        laughing!"</p>
                    <p>"It was me," muttered Hareton.</p>
                    <p>"What do you say?" demanded the master.</p>
                    <p>Hareton looked at his plate, and did not repeat the confession.</p>
                    <p>Mr. Heathcliff looked at him a bit, and then silently resumed his breakfast,
                        and his interrupted musing.</p>
                    <p>We had nearly finished, and the two young people prudently shifted wider
                        asunder, so I anticipated no further disturbance during that <pb n="371"/>sitting; when Joseph appeared at the door, revealing by his quivering lip,
                        and furious eyes, that the outrage committed on his precious shrubs was
                        detected.</p>
                    <p>He must have seen Cathy, and her cousin about the spot, before he examined
                        it, for while his jaws worked like those of a cow chewing its cud, and
                        rendered his speech difficult to understand, he began:</p>
                    <p>"Aw mun hev my wage, and Aw mun goa! Aw <hi>hed</hi> aimed tuh dee, wheare
                        Aw'd sarved fur sixty year; un' Aw thowt Aw'd lug my books up intuh t'
                        garret, un' all my bits uh stuff, un' they sud hev t' kitchen tuh theirseln;
                        fur t' sake uh quietness. It wur hard tuh gie up my awn hearthstun, bud Aw
                        thowt Aw <hi>could</hi> do that! Bud, nab, shoo's taan my garden frough me,
                        un' by th' heart! Maister, Aw cannot stand it! Yah muh bend tuh th' yoak, an
                        ye will—<hi>Aw</hi>' noan used to't and an ow'd man doesn't sooin get used
                        tuh <pb n="372"/>new barthens—Aw'd rayther arn my bite, an' my sup, wi' a
                        hammer in th' road!"</p>
                    <p>"Now, now, idiot!" interrupted Heathcliff, "cut it short! What's your
                        grievance? I'll interfere in no quarrels between you, and Nelly—She may
                        thrust you into the coal-hole for anything I care"</p>
                    <p>"It's noan Nelly!" answered Joseph. "Aw sudn't shift fur Nelly—Nasty, ill
                        nowt as shoo is, Thank God! <hi>shoo</hi> cannot stale t'sowl uh nob'dy!
                        Shoo wer niver soa handsome, bud whet a body mud look at her 'baht winking.
                        It's yon flaysome, graceless quean, ut's witched ahr lad, wi' her bold een,
                        un' her forrard ways—till—Nay! It fair brusts my heart! He's forgetten all E
                        done fur him, un made on him, un' goan un' riven up a whole row ut t'
                        grandest currant trees, i' t' garden!" and here he lamented outright,
                        unmanned by a sense of his bitter injuries, and Earnshaw's ingratitude and
                        dangerous condition.</p>
                    <p><pb n="373"/>"Is the fool drunk?" asked Mr. Heathcliff. "Hareton is it you
                        he's finding fault with?"</p>
                    <p>"Iv'e pulled up two or three bushes," replied the young man, "but I'm going
                        to set 'em again.</p>
                    <p>"And why have you pulled them up?" said the master.</p>
                    <p>Catherine wisely put in her tongue.</p>
                    <p>"We wanted to plant some flowers there," she cried. "I'm the only person to
                        blame, for I wished him to do it."</p>
                    <p>"And who the devil gave <hi>you</hi> leave to touch a stick about the place?"
                        demanded her father-in-law, much surprised, "And who ordered <hi>you</hi> to
                        obey her?" he added turning to Hareton.</p>
                    <p>The latter was speechless; his cousin replied—</p>
                    <p>"You shouldn't grudge a few yards of earth, for me to ornament, when you have
                        taken all my land!"</p>
                    <p>"Your land, insolent slut? you never had any!" said Heathcliff.</p>
                    <p><pb n="374"/>"And my money," she continued, returning his angry glare, and
                        meantime, biting a piece of crust, the remnant of her breakfast.</p>
                    <p>"Silence!" he exclaimed. "Get done, and begone!"</p>
                    <p>"And Hareton's land, and his money, "pursued the reckless thing. "Hareton,
                        and I are friends now; and I shall tell him all about you!"</p>
                    <p>The master seemed confounded a moment, he grew pale, and rose up, eyeing her
                        all the while, with an expression of mortal hate.</p>
                    <p>"If you strike me, Hareton will strike you!' she said, "so you may as well
                        sit down."</p>
                    <p>"If Hareton does not turn you out of the room, I'll strike him to Hell,"
                        thundered Heathcliff. "Damnable witch! dare you pretend to rouse him against
                        me? Off with her! Do you hear? Fling her into the kitchen! I'll kill her,
                        Ellen Dean, if you let her come into my sight again!"</p>
                    <p>Hareton tried under his breath to persuade her to go.</p>
                    <p><pb n="375"/>"Drag her away!" he cried savagely. "Are you staying to talk?"
                        And he approached to execute his own command.</p>
                    <p>"He'll not obey you, wicked man, any more!" said Catherine, and he'll soon
                        detest you, as much as I do!"</p>
                    <p>"Wisht! wisht!" muttered the young man reproachfully. "I will not hear you
                        speak so to him—Have done!"</p>
                    <p>"But you won't let him strike me?" she cried.</p>
                    <p>"Come then!" he whispered earnestly.</p>
                    <p>It was too late—Heathcliff had caught hold of her.</p>
                    <p>"Now <hi>you</hi> go!" he said to Earnshaw. "Accursed witch! this time she
                        has provoked me, when I could not bear it; and I'll make her repent it for
                        ever!"</p>
                    <p>He had his hand in her hair; Hareton attempted to release the locks,
                        entreating him not to hurt her that once. His black eyes flashed, he seemed
                        ready to tear Catherine in <pb n="376"/>pieces, and I was just worked up to
                        risk coming to the rescue, when of a sudden, his fingers relaxed, he shifted
                        hs grasp from her head, to her arm, and gazed intently in her face—Then, he
                        drew his hand over his eyes, stood a moment to collect himself apparently,
                        and turning anew to Catherine, said with assumed calmness,</p>
                    <p>"You must learn to avoid putting me in a passion, or I shall really murder
                        you, sometime! go with Mrs. Dean, and keep with her, and confine your
                        insolence to her ears. As to Hareton Earnshaw if I see him listen to you,
                        I'll send him seeking his bread where he can get it! your love will make him
                        an outcast, and a beggar—Nelly, take her, and leave me, all of you! Leave
                        me!"</p>
                    <p>I led my young lady out; she was too glad of her escape, to resist; the other
                        followed, and Mr. Heathcliff had the room to himself, till dinner.</p>
                    <p>I had counselled Catherine to get hers <pb n="377"/>upstairs; but, as soon as
                        he perceived her vacant seat, he sent me to call her. He spoke to none of
                        us, eat very little, and went out directly afterwards, intimating that he
                        should not return before evening.</p>
                    <p>The two new friends established themselves in the house, during his absence,
                        where I heard Hareton sternly check his cousin, on her offering a revelation
                        of her father-in-law's conduct to his father.</p>
                    <p>He said he wouldn't suffer a word to be uttered to him, in his disparagement;
                        if he were the devil, it didn't signify; he would stand by him; and he'd
                        rather she would abuse himself, as she used to, than begin on Mr.
                        Heathcliff.</p>
                    <p>Catherine was waxing cross at this; but he found means to make her hold her
                        tongue, by asking, how she would like <hi>him</hi> to speak ill of her
                        father? and then she comprehended that Earnshaw took the master's reputation
                        home to himself: and was attached by ties stronger <pb n="378"/>than reason
                        could break—chains, forged by habit, which it would be cruel to attempt to
                        loosen.</p>
                    <p>She showed a good heart, thenceforth, in avoiding both complaints and
                        expressions of antipathy concerning Heathcliff; and confessed to me her
                        sorrow that she had endeavoured to raise a bad spirit between him and
                        Hareton—indeed, I don't believe she has ever breathed a syllable, in the
                        latter's hearing, against her oppressor, since.</p>
                    <p>When this slight disagreement was over, they were thick again, and as busy as
                        possible, in their several occupations, of pupil, and teacher, I came in to
                        sit with them, after I had done my work, and I felt so soothed, and
                        comforted to watch them, that I did not notice how time got on. You know,
                        they both appeared in a measure, my children: I had long been proud of one,
                        and now, I was sure, the other would be a source of equal satisfaction. His
                        honest, warm, and intelligent nature <pb n="379"/>shook off rapidly the
                        clouds of ignorance, and degradation in which it had been bred; and
                        Catherine's sincere commendations acted as a spur to his industry. His
                        brightening mind brightened his features, and added spirit and nobility to
                        their aspect—I could hardly fancy it the same individual I had beheld on the
                        day I discovered my little lady at Wuthering Heights, after her expedition
                        to the Crags.</p>
                    <p>While I admired, and they laboured, dusk drew on, and with it returned the
                        master. He came upon us quite unexpectedly, entering by the front way, and
                        had a full view of the whole three, ere we could raise our heads to glance
                        at him.</p>
                    <p>Well, I reflected, there was never a pleasanter, or more harmless sight; and
                        it will be a burning shame to scold them. The red fire-light glowed on their
                        two bonny heads, and revealed their faces, animated with the eager interest
                        of children; for, though he was twenty-three, and she eighteen, each had so
                            <pb n="380"/>much of novelty to feel, and learn, that neither
                        experienced, nor evinced the sentiments of sober disenchanted maturity.</p>
                    <p>They lifted their eyes together, to encounter Mr. Heathcliff—perhaps, you
                        have never remarked that their eyes are precisely similar, and they are
                        those of Catherine Earnshaw. The present Catherine has no other likeness to
                        her, except a breadth of forehead, and a certain arch of the nostril that
                        makes her appear rather haughty, whether she will, or not. With Hareton the
                        resemblance is carried farther, it is singular, at all times—then it was
                        particularly striking: because his senses were alert, and his mental
                        faculties wakened to unwonted activity.</p>
                    <p>I suppose this resemblance disarmed Mr. Heathcliff: he walked to the hearth
                        in evident agitation, but it quickly subsided, as he looked at the young
                        man; or, I should say, altered its character, for it was there yet.</p>
                    <p>He took the book from his hand, and <pb n="381"/>glanced at the open page,
                        then returned it without any observation; merely signing Catherine away—her
                        companion lingered very little behind her, and I was about to depart also,
                        but he bid me sit still.</p>
                    <p>"It is a poor conclusion, is it not," he observed, having brooded a while on
                        the scene he had just witnessed. "An absurd termination to my violent
                        exertions? I get levers, and mattocks to demolish the two houses, and train
                        myself to be capable of working like Hercules, and when everything is ready,
                        and in my power, I find the will to lift a slate off either roof has
                        vanished! My old enemies have not beaten me—now would be the precise time to
                        revenge myself on their representatives—I could do it; and none could hinder
                        me—But where is the use? I don't care for striking, I can't take the trouble
                        to raise my hand! That sounds as if I had been labouring the whole time,
                        only to exhibit a fine trait of <pb n="382"/>magnanimity. It is far from
                        being the case—I have lost the faculty of enjoying their destruction, and I
                        am too idle to destroy for nothing.</p>
                    <p>"Nelly, there is a strange change approaching—I'm in its shadow at present—I
                        take so little interest in my daily life, that I hardly remember to eat, and
                        drink—Those two, who have left the room are the only objects which retain a
                        distinct material appearance to me; and, that appearance causes me pain,
                        amounting to agony. About <hi>her</hi> I won't speak; and I don't desire to
                        think; but I earnestly wish she were invisible—her presence invokes only
                        maddening sensations. <hi>He</hi> moves me differently; and yet if I could
                        do it without seeming insane, I'd never see him again! You'll perhaps think
                        me rather inclined to become so," he added, making an effort to smile, "if I
                        try to describe the thousand forms of past associations, and ideas he
                        awakens, or embodies—But you'll not talk of what I tell you, and <pb n="383"/>my mind is so eternally secluded in itself, it is tempting, at last, to
                        turn it out to another.</p>
                    <p>"Five minutes ago, Hareton seemed a personification of my youth, not a human
                        being—I felt to him in such a variety of ways, that it would have been
                        impossible to have accosted him rationally.</p>
                    <p>"In the first place, his startling likeness to Catherine connected him
                        fearfully with her—That however which you may suppose the most potent to
                        arrest my imagination, is actually the least—for what is not connected with
                        her to me? and what does not recall her? I cannot look down to this floor,
                        but her features are shaped on the flags! In every cloud, in every
                        tree—filling the air at night, and caught by glimpses in every object, by
                        day I am surrounded with her image! The most ordinary faces of men, and
                        women—my own features mock me with a resemblance. The entire world is a
                        dreadful collection of <pb n="384"/>memoranda that she did exist, and that I
                        have lost her!</p>
                    <p>"Well, Hareton's aspect was the ghost of my immortal love, of my wild
                        endeavours to hold my right, my degradation, my pride, my happiness, and my
                        anguish—</p>
                    <p>"But it is frenzy to repeat these thoughts to you; only it will let you know,
                        why, with a reluctance to be always alone, his society is no benefit, rather
                        an aggravation of the constant torment I suffer—and it partly contributes to
                        render me regardless how he and his cousin go on together. I can give them
                        no attention, any more.</p>
                    <p>"But what do you mean by a <hi>change</hi>, Mr. Heathcliff?" I said, alarmed
                        at his manner, though he was neither in danger of losing his senses, nor
                        dying, according to my judgment he was quite strong and healthy; and, as to
                        his reason, from childhood, he had a delight in dwelling on dark things, and
                        entertaining <pb n="385"/>odd fancies—he might have had a monomania on the
                        subject of his departed idol; but on every other point his wits were as
                        sound as mine.</p>
                    <p>"I shall not know that, till it comes," he said, "I'm only half conscious of
                        it now."</p>
                    <p>"You have no feeling of illness, have you?" I asked.</p>
                    <p>"No, Nelly, I have not," he answered.</p>
                    <p>"Then, you are not afraid of death?" I pursued.</p>
                    <p>"Afraid?" No!" he replied. "I have neither a fear, nor a presentiment, nor a
                        hope of death—Why should I? With my hard constitution, and temperate mode of
                        living, and unperilous occupations, I ought to, and probably <hi>shall</hi>
                        remain above ground, till there is scarcely a black hair on my head—And yet
                        I cannot continue in this condition!—I have to remind myself to
                        breathe—almost to remind my heart to beat! And it is like bending back a
                        stiff spring. . .it is by compulsion, that I <pb n="386"/>do the slightest
                        act, not prompted by one thought, and by compulsion, that I notice anything
                        alive, or dead, which is not associated with one universal idea. . .I have a
                        single wish, and my whole being, and faculties are yearning to attain it.
                        They have yearned towards it so long, and so unwaveringly, that I'm
                        convinced it <hi>will</hi> be reached—and <hi>soon</hi>—because it has
                        devoured my existence—I am swallowed in the anticipation of its
                        fulfilment.</p>
                    <p>"My confessions have not relieved me—but, they may account for some,
                        otherwise unaccountable phases of humour, which I show. O, God! It is a long
                        fight, I wish it were over!"</p>
                    <p>He began to pace the room, muttering terrible things to himself; till I was
                        inclined to believe, as he said Joseph did, that conscience had turned his
                        heart to an earthly hell—I wondered greatly how it would end.</p>
                    <p>Though he seldom before had revealed this <pb n="387"/>state of mind, even by
                        looks, it was his habitual mood, I had no doubt: he asserted it himself—but,
                        not a soul, from his general bearing would have conjectured the fact. You
                        did not, when you saw him, Mr. Lockwood—and at the period of which I speak,
                        he was just the same as then, only fonder of continued solitude, and perhaps
                        still more laconic in company.</p>
                </div>
                <div type="chapter">
                    <pb n="388"/>

                    <head>CHAPTER XX.</head>

                    <p>For some days after that evening, Mr. Heathcliff shunned meeting us at meals;
                        yet he would not consent, formally, to exclude Hareton and Cathy. He had an
                        aversion to yielding so completely to his feelings, chosing, rather, to
                        absent himself—And eating once in twenty-four hours seemed sufficient
                        sustenance for him.</p>
                    <p>One night, after the family were in bed, I heard him go down stairs, and out
                        at the front door: I did not hear him re-enter <pb n="389"/>and, in the
                        morning, I found he was still away.</p>
                    <p>We were in April then, the weather was sweet and warm, the grass as green as
                        showers and sun could make it, and the two dwarf apple trees, near the
                        southern wail, in full bloom.</p>
                    <p>"After breakfast, Catherine insisted on my bringing a chair, and sitting,
                        with my work, under the fir trees, at the end of the house; and she beguiled
                        Hareton, who had perfectly recovered from his accident, to dig and arrange
                        her little garden, which was shifted to that corner by the influence of
                        Joseph's complaints.</p>
                    <p>"I was comfortably revelling in the spring fragrance around, and the
                        beautiful soft blue overhead, when my young lady, who had run down near the
                        gate, to procure some primrose roots for a border, returned only half laden,
                        and informed us that Mr. Heathcliff was coming in.</p>
                    <p><pb n="390"/>"'And he spoke to me,' she added with a perplexed
                        countenance.</p>
                    <p>"'What did he say?' asked Hareton.</p>
                    <p>"'He told me to begone as fast as I could,' she answered. "But he looked so
                        different from his usual look that I stopped a moment to stare at him.</p>
                    <p>"'How?' he enquired.</p>
                    <p>"'Why, almost bright and cheerful—No, almost nothing—<hi>very much</hi>
                        excited, and wild and glad!' she replied.</p>
                    <p>"Night-walking amuses him, then,' "I remarked, affecting a careless manner.
                        In reality, as surprised as she was; and, anxious to ascertain the truth of
                        her statement, for to see the master looking glad would not be an every day
                        spectacle, I framed an excuse to go in.</p>
                    <p>"Heathcliff stood at the open door; he was pale, and he trembled; yet,
                        certainly, he had a strange joyful glitter in his eyes, that altered the
                        aspect of his whole face.</p>
                    <p><pb n="391"/>"'Will you have some breakfast?' I said, 'You must be hungry
                        rambling about all night!'</p>
                    <p>"I wanted to discover where he had been; but I did not like to ask
                        directly.</p>
                    <p>"'No, I'm not hungry,' he answered, averting his head, and speaking rather
                        contemptuously, as if he guessed I was trying to divine the occasion of his
                        good humour.</p>
                    <p>"I felt perplexed—I didn't know whether it were not a proper opportunity to
                        offer a bit of admonition.</p>
                    <p>"'I don't think it right to wander out of doors,' I observed, 'instead of
                        being in bed: it is not wise, at any rate, this moist season. I dare say
                        you'll catch a bad cold, or a fever—you have something the matter with you
                        now!'</p>
                    <p>"'Nothing but what I can bear,' he replied, 'and with the greatest pleasure,
                        provided you'll leave me alone—get in, and don't annoy me.'</p>
                    <p>"I obeyed; and, in passing, I noticed he breathed as fast as a cat.</p>
                    <p><pb n="392"/>"'Yes!' I reflected to myself, "we shall have a fit of illness.
                        I cannot conceive what he has been doing!'</p>
                    <p>"That noon, he sat down to dinner with us, and received a heaped up plate
                        from my hands, as if he intended to make amends for previous fasting.</p>
                    <p>"'I've neither cold, nor fever, Nelly,' he remarked, in allusion to my
                        morning's speech. 'And I'm ready to do justice to the food you give me.'</p>
                    <p>"He took his knife and fork, and was going to commence eating, when the
                        inclination appeared to become suddenly extinct. He laid them on the table,
                        looked eagerly towards the window, then rose and went out.</p>
                    <p>"We saw him walking, to and fro, in the garden, while we concluded our meal;
                        and Earnshaw said he'd go, and ask why he would not dine; he thought we had
                        grieved him some way.</p>
                    <p><pb n="393"/>"'Well, is he coming?' cried Catherine, when her cousin
                        returned.</p>
                    <p>"'Nay,' he answered, 'but he's not angry; he seemed rare and pleased indeed;
                        only, I made him impatient by speaking to him twice; and then he bid me be
                        off to you; he wondered how I could want the company of any body else.'</p>
                    <p>"I set his plate, to keep warm, on the fender: and after an hour or two, he
                        re-entered, when the room was clear, in no degree calmer—the same
                        unnatural—it was unnatural—appearance of joy under his black brows; the same
                        bloodless hue: and his teeth visible, now and then, in a kind of smile; his
                        frame shivering, not as one shivers with chill or weakness, but as a
                        tight-stretched cord vibrates—a strong thrilling, rather than trembling.</p>
                    <p>"I will ask what is the matter, I thought, or who should? And I
                        exclaimed—</p>
                    <p>"'Have you heard any good news, Mr. Heathcliff? You look uncommonly
                        animated.'</p>
                    <p><pb n="394"/>"'Where should good news come from, to me?' he said. 'I'm
                        animated with hunger; and, seemingly, I must not eat.'</p>
                    <p>"'Your dinner is here,' I returned; 'why wont you get it?'</p>
                    <p>"'I don't want it now,' he muttered, hastily. 'I'll wait till supper. And,
                        Nelly, once for all, let me beg you to warn Hareton and the other away from
                        me. I wish to be troubled by nobody—I wish to have this place to
                        myself.'</p>
                    <p>"'Is there some new reason for this banishment?' I inquired. 'Tell me why you
                        are so queer, Mr. Heathcliff? Where were you last night?' I'm not putting
                        the question through idle curiosity, but—'</p>
                    <p>"'You are putting the question through very idle curiosity,' he interrupted,
                        with a laugh. 'Yet, I'll answer it. Last night, I was on the threshold of
                        hell. To-day, I am within sight of my heaven—I have my eyes on it—hardly
                        three feet to sever me! And <pb n="395"/>now you'd better go—You'll neither
                        see nor hear anything to frighten you, if you refrain from prying.'</p>
                    <p>"Having swept the hearth, and wiped the table, I departed more perplexed than
                        ever.</p>
                    <p>"He did not quit the house again that afternoon, and no one intruded on his
                        solitude, till, at eight o'clock, I deemed it proper, though unsummoned, to
                        carry a candle, and his supper to him.</p>
                    <p>"He was leaning against the ledge of an open lattice, but not looking out;
                        his face was turned to the interior gloom. The fire had smouldered to ashes;
                        the room was filled with the damp, mild air of the cloudy evening, and so
                        still, that not only the murmur of the beck down Gimmerton was
                        distinguishable, but its ripples and its gurgling over the pebbles, or
                        through the large stones which it could not cover.</p>
                    <p>"I uttered an ejaculation of discontent at seeing the dismal grate, and
                        commenced <pb n="396"/>shutting the casements, one after another, till I
                        came to his.</p>
                    <p>"'Must I close this?' I asked, in order to rouse him, for he would not
                        stir.</p>
                    <p>"The light flashed on his features, as I spoke. Oh, Mr. Lockwood, I cannot
                        express what a terrible start I got, by the momentary view! Those deep black
                        eyes! That smile, and ghastly paleness! It appeared to me, not Mr.
                        Heathcliff, but a goblin; and, in my terror, I let the candle bend towards
                        the wall, and it left me in darkness.</p>
                    <p>"'Yes, close it,' he replied, in his familiar voice. 'There, that is pure
                        awkwardness! Why did you hold the candle horizontally? Be quick, and bring
                        another.'</p>
                    <p>"I hurried out in a foolish state of dread, and said to Joseph—</p>
                    <p>"'The master wishes you to take him a light, and rekindle the fire.' For I
                        dare not go in myself again just then.</p>
                    <p>Joseph rattled some fire into the shovel, and <pb n="397"/>went; but he
                        brought it back, immediately, with the supper tray in his other hand,
                        explaining that Mr. Heathcliff was going to bed, and he wanted nothing to
                        eat till morning.</p>
                    <p>"We heard him mount the stairs directly; he did not proceed to his ordinary
                        chamber, but turned into that with the panelled bed–its window, as I
                        mentioned before, is wide enough for anybody to get through, and it struck
                        me, that he plotted another midnight excursion, which he had rather we had
                        no suspicion of.</p>
                    <p>"'Is he a ghoul, or a vampire?' I mused. I had read of such hideous,
                        incarnate demons. And then, I set myself to reflect, how I had tended him in
                        infancy; and watched him grow to youth; and followed him almost through his
                        whole course; and what absurd nonsense it was to yield to that sense of
                        horror.</p>
                    <p>"'But, where did he come from, the little dark thing, harboured by a good man
                        to his bane?' muttered superstition, as I dozed into <pb n="398"/>unconsciousness. And I began, half dreaming, to weary myself with imaging
                        some fit parentage for him; and repeating my waking meditations, I tracked
                        his existence over again, with grim variations; at last, picturing his death
                        and funeral; of which, all I can remember is, being exceedingly vexed at
                        having the task of dictating an inscription for his monument, and consulting
                        the sexton about it; and, as he had no surname, and we could not tell his
                        age, we were obliged to content ourselves with the single word,
                        'Heathcliff.' That came true; we were. If you enter the kirkyard, you'll
                        read on his headstone, only that, and the date of his death.</p>
                    <p>"Dawn restored me to common sense. I rose, and went into the garden, as soon
                        as I could see, to ascertain if there were any footmarks under his window.
                        There were none.</p>
                    <p>"'He has stayed at home,' I thought, 'and he'll be all right, to-day!"</p>
                    <p>"I prepared breakfast for the household; as <pb n="399"/>was my usual custom,
                        but told Hareton, and Catherine to get theirs, ere the master came down, for
                        he lay late. They preferred taking it out of doors, under the trees, and I
                        set a little table to accommodate them.</p>
                    <p>"On my re-entrance, I found Mr. Heathcliff below. He and Joseph were
                        conversing about some farming business; he gave clear, minute directions
                        concerning the matter discussed, but he spoke rapidly, and turned his head
                        continually aside, and had the same excited expression, even more
                        exaggerated.</p>
                    <p>"When Joseph quitted the room, he took his seat in the place he generally
                        chose, and I put a basin of coffee before him. He drew it nearer, and then
                        rested his arms on the table, and looked at the opposite wall, as I
                        supposed, surveying one particular portion, up and down, with glittering,
                        restless eyes, and with such eager interest, that he stopped breathing,
                        during half a minute together.</p>
                    <p>"'Come now,' I exclaimed, pushing some <pb n="400"/>bread against his hand.
                        'Eat and drink that, while it is hot. It has been waiting near an hour.'</p>
                    <p>"He didn't notice me, and yet he smiled. I'd rather have seen him gnash his
                        teeth than smile so.</p>
                    <p>"'Mr. Heathcliff! master!' I cried. 'Don't for God's sake, stare as if you
                        saw an unearthly vision.'</p>
                    <p>"'Dont, for God's sake, shout so loud,' he replied. 'Turn round, and tell me,
                        are we by ourselves?'</p>
                    <p>"'Of course,' was my answer, 'of course, we are!'</p>
                    <p>"Still, I involuntarily obeyed him, as if I were not quite sure.</p>
                    <p>"With a sweep of his hand, he cleared a vacant space in front among the
                        breakfast things, and leant forward to gaze more at his ease.</p>
                    <p>"Now, I perceived he was not looking at the wall, for when I regarded him
                        alone, it <pb n="401"/>seemed, exactly, that he gazed at something within
                        two yards distance. And, whatever it was, it communicated, apparently, both
                        pleasure and pain, in exquisite extremes, at least, the anguished, yet
                        raptured expression of his countenance suggested that idea.</p>
                    <p>"The fancied object was not fixed, either; his eyes pursued it with unwearied
                        vigilance; and, even in speaking to me, were never weaned away.</p>
                    <p>"I vainly reminded him of his protracted abstinence from food; if he stirred
                        to touch anything in compliance with my entreaties, if he stretched his hand
                        out to get a piece of bread, his fingers clenched, before they reached it,
                        and remained on the table, forgetful of their aim.</p>
                    <p>"I sat a model of patience, trying to attract his absorbed attention from its
                        engrossing speculation; till he grew irritable, and got up, asking, why I
                        would not allow him to have his own time in taking his meals? and saying <pb n="402"/>that, on the next occasion, I needn't wait, I might set the
                        things down, and go.</p>
                    <p>"Having uttered these words, he left the house; slowly sauntered down the
                        garden path, and disappeared through the gate.</p>
                    <p>"The hours crept anxiously by: another evening came. I did not retire to rest
                        till late, and when I did, I could not sleep. He returned after midnight,
                        and, instead of going to bed, shut himself into the room beneath. I
                        listened, and tossed about; and, finally, dressed, and descended. It was too
                        irksome to lie up there, harassing my brain with a hundred idle
                        misgivings.</p>
                    <p>"I distinguished Mr. Heathcliff's step, restlessly measuring the floor; and
                        he frequently broke the silence, by a deep inspiration, resembling a groan.
                        He muttered detached words, also; the only one, I could catch, was the name
                        of Catherine, coupled with some wild term of endearment, or suffering; and
                        spoken as one would speak to a person present <pb n="403"/>—low and earnest,
                        and wrung from the depth of his soul.</p>
                    <p>"I had not courage to walk straight into the apartment; but I desired to
                        divert him from his reverie, and, therefore, fell foul of the kitchen fire;
                        stirred it, and began to scrape the cinders. It drew him forth sooner than I
                        expected. He opened the door immediately, and said—</p>
                    <p>"'Nelly, come here—is it morning? Come in with your light.'</p>
                    <p>"'It is striking four," I answered; "you want a candle to take up stairs—you
                        might have lit one at this fire.'</p>
                    <p>"'No, I don't wish to go up stairs,' he said. 'Come in, and kindle
                            <hi>me</hi> a fire, and do anything there is to do about the room.'</p>
                    <p>"I must blow the coals red first, before I can carry any,' I replied, getting
                        a chair and the bellows.</p>
                    <p>"He roamed to and fro, meantime, in a <pb n="404"/>state approaching
                        distraction: his heavy sighs succeeding each other so thick as to leave no
                        space for common breathing between.</p>
                    <p>"'When day breaks, I'll send for Green,' he said; 'I wish to make some legal
                        inquiries of him, while I can bestow a thought on those matters, and while I
                        can act calmly. I have not written my will yet, and how to leave my
                        property, I cannot determine! I wish I could annihiliate it from the face of
                        the earth.'</p>
                    <p>"'I would not talk so, Mr. Heathcliff,' I interposed. "Let your will be, a
                        while—you'll be spared to repent of your many injustices, yet! I never
                        expected that your nerves would be disordered—they are, at present,
                        marvellously so, however; and, almost entirely, through your own fault. The
                        way you've passed these three last days might knock up a Titan. Do take some
                        food, and some repose. You need only look at yourself, in a glass, to see
                        how you require both. Your cheeks are <pb n="405"/>hollow, and your eyes
                        blood-shot, like a person starving with hunger, and going blind with loss of
                        sleep.'</p>
                    <p>"'It is not my fault, that I cannot eat or rest,' he replied. 'I assure you
                        it is through no settled designs. I'll do both, as soon as I possibly can.
                        But you might as well bid a man struggling in the water, rest within
                        arms-length of the shore! I must reach it first, and then I'll rest. Well,
                        never mind, Mr. Green; as to repenting of my injustices, I've done no
                        injustice, and I repent of nothing—I'm too happy, and yet I'm not happy
                        enough. My soul's bliss kills my body, but does not satisfy itself.'</p>
                    <p>"'Happy, master?' I cried. 'Strange happiness! If you would hear me without
                        being angry, I might offer some advice that would make you happier.'</p>
                    <p>"'What is that?' he asked. 'Give it.'</p>
                    <p>"'You are aware, Mr. Heathcliff,' I said, 'that from the time you were
                        thirteen years <pb n="406"/>old, you have lived a selfish, unchristian life;
                        and probably hardly had a Bible in your hands, during all that period. You
                        must have forgotten the contents of the book, and you may not have space to
                        search it now. Could it be hurtful to send for some one—some minister of any
                        denomination, it does not matter which, to explain it, and show you how very
                        far you have erred from its precepts, and how unfit you will be for its
                        heaven, unless a change takes place before you die?'</p>
                    <p>"I'm rather obliged than angry, Nelly," he said, for you remind me of the
                        manner that I desire to be buried in—It is to be carried to the churchyard,
                        in the evening. You, and Hareton may, if you please accompany me—and mind,
                        particularly, to notice that the sexton obeys my directions concerning the
                        two coffins! No minister need come; nor need anything be said over me—I tell
                        you, I have nearly attained <hi>my</hi> heaven; and that of others is
                        altogether unvalued, and uncoveted by me!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="407"/>"And supposing you persevered in your obstinate fast, and died
                        by that means, and they refused to bury you in the precincts of the Kirk?" I
                        said shocked at his godless indifference. "How would you like it?"</p>
                    <p>"They wont do that," he replied, "if they did, you must have me removed
                        secretly; and if you neglect it, you shall prove, practically, that the dead
                        are not annihilated!"</p>
                    <p>As soon as he heard the other members of the family stirring he retired to
                        his den, and I breathed freer—But in the afternoon, while Joseph and Hareton
                        were at their work, he came into the kitchen again, and with a wild look,
                        bid me come, and sit in the house—he wanted somebody with him.</p>
                    <p>I declined, telling him plainly, that his strange talk and manner, frightened
                        me, and I had neither the nerve, nor the will to be his companion,
                        alone.</p>
                    <p>"I believe you think me a fiend!" he said, <pb n="408"/>with his dismal
                        laugh, "something too horrible to live under a decent roof!"</p>
                    <p>Then turning to Catherine, who was there, and who drew behind me at his
                        approach, he added, half sneeringly.</p>
                    <p>"Will <hi>you</hi> come, chuck?" I'll not hurt you. No! to you, I've made
                        myself worse than the devil. Well, there is <hi>one</hi> who wont shrink
                        from my company! By God! she's relentless. Oh, damn it! It's unutterably too
                        much for flesh and blood to bear, even mine."</p>
                    <p>He solicited the society of no one more. At dusk, he went into his
                        chamber—through the whole night, and far into the morning, we heard him
                        groaning, and murmuring to himself. Hareton was anxious to enter, but I bid
                        him fetch Mr. Kenneth, and he should go in, and see him.</p>
                    <p>When he came, and I requested admittance and tried to open the door, I found
                        it locked; and Heathcliff bid us be damned. He was <pb n="409"/>better, and
                        would be left alone; so the doctor went away.</p>
                    <p>The following evening was very wet, indeed it poured down, till day-dawn;
                        and, as I took my morning walk round the house, I observed the master's
                        window swinging open, and the rain driving straight in.</p>
                    <p>He cannot be in bed, I thought, those showers would drench him through! He
                        must either be up, or out. But, I'll make no more ado, I'll go boldly, and
                        look!"</p>
                    <p>Having succeeded in obtaining entrance with another key, I ran to unclose the
                        panels, for the chamber was vacant—quickly pushing them aside, I peeped in.
                        Mr. Heathcliff was there—laid on his back. His eyes met mine so keen, and
                        fierce, I started; and then, he seemed to smile.</p>
                    <p>I could not think him dead—but his face, and throat were washed with rain;
                        the bed-clothes dripped, and he was perfectly still. The lattice, flapping
                        to and fro, had grazed <pb n="410"/>one hand that rested on the sill—no
                        blood trickled from the broken skin, and when I put my fingers to it, I
                        could doubt no more—he was dead and stark!</p>
                    <p>I hasped the window; I combed his black long hair from his forehead; I tried
                        to close his eyes—to extinguish, if possible, that frightful, life-like gaze
                        of exultation, before any one else beheld it. They would not shut—they
                        seemed to sneer at my attempts, and his parted lips, and sharp, white teeth
                        sneered too! Taken with another fit of cowardice, I cried out for Joseph.
                        Joseph shuffled up, and made a noise, but resolutely refused to meddle with
                        him.</p>
                    <p>"Th' divil's harried off his soul" he cried, "and he muh hev his carcass
                        intuh t' bargin, for ow't Aw care! Ech! what a wicked un he looks girnning
                        at death!" and the old sinner grinned in mockery.</p>
                    <p>I thought be intended to cut a caper round the bed; but suddenly composing
                        himself, he <pb n="411"/>fell on his knees, and raised his hands, and
                        returned thanks that the lawful master and the ancient stock were restored
                        to their rights.</p>
                    <p>I felt stunned hy the awful event; and my memory unavoidably recurred to
                        former times with a sort of oppressive sadness. But poor Hareton the most
                        wronged, was the only one that really suffered much. He sat by the corpse
                        all night, weeping in bitter earnest. He pressed its hand, and kissed the
                        sarcastic, savage face that every one else shrank from contemplating; and
                        bemoaned him with that strong grief which springs naturally from a generous
                        heart, though it be tough as tempered steel.</p>
                    <p>Kenneth was perplexed to pronounce of what disorder the master died. I
                        concealed the fact of his having swallowed nothing for four days, fearing it
                        might lead to trouble, and then, I am persuaded he did not abstain on
                        purpose; it was the consequence of his strange illness, not the cause.</p>
                    <p><pb n="412"/>We buried him, to the scandal of the whole neighbourhood, as he
                        had wished. Earnshaw, and I, the sexton and six men to carry the coffin,
                        comprehended the whole attendance.</p>
                    <p>The six men departed when they had let it down into the grave: we stayed to
                        see it covered. Hareton, with a streaming face, dug green sods, and laid
                        them over the brown mould himself, at present it is as smooth and verdant as
                        its companion mounds—and I hope its tenant sleeps as soundly. But the
                        country folks, if you asked them, would swear on their bible that he
                            <hi>walks</hi>. There are those who speak to having met him near the
                        church, and on the moor, and even within this house—Idle tales, you'll say,
                        and so say I. Yet that old man by the kitchen fire affirms he has seen two
                        on 'em looking out of his chamber window, on every rainy night, since his
                        death—and an odd thing happened to me about a month ago.</p>
                    <p>I was going to the Grange one evening—a dark evening threatening thunder—and,
                        just <pb n="413"/>at the turn of the Heights, I encountered a little boy
                        with a sheep, and two lambs before him, he was crying terribly, and I
                        supposed the lambs were skittish, and would not be guided.</p>
                    <p>"'What is the matter, my little man?' I asked.</p>
                    <p>"'They's Heathcliff, and a woman, yonder, under t' Nab,' he blubbered, 'un'
                        Aw darnut pass 'em.'</p>
                    <p>"I saw nothing; but neither the sheep nor he would go on, so I bid him take
                        the road lower down.</p>
                    <p>"He probably raised the phantoms from thinking, as he traversed the moors
                        alone, on the nonsense he had heard his parents and companions repeat—yet
                        still, I don't like being out in the dark, now—and I don't like being left
                        by myself in this grim house—I cannot help it, I shall be glad when they
                        leave it, and shift to the Grange!"</p>
                    <p><pb n="414"/>"They are going to the Grange then?" I said.</p>
                    <p>"Yes," answered Mrs. Dean, "as soon as they are married; and that will be on
                        New Year's day."</p>
                    <p>"And who will live here then?"</p>
                    <p>"Why, Joseph will take care of the house, and, perhaps, a lad to keep him
                        company. They will live in the kitchen, and the rest will be shut up."</p>
                    <p>"For the use of such ghosts as choose to inhabit it," I observed.</p>
                    <p>"No, Mr. Lockwood," said Nelly, shaking her head. "I believe the dead are at
                        peace, but it is not right to speak of them with levity."</p>
                    <p>At that moment the garden gate swung to; the ramblers were returning.</p>
                    <p>"<hi>They</hi> are afraid of nothing," I grumbled, watching their approach
                        through the window.</p>
                    <p>"Together they would brave satan and all his legions."</p>
                    <p><pb n="415"/>As they stepped onto the door-stones, and halted to take a last
                        look at the moon, or, more correctly, at each other, by her light, I felt
                        irresistibly impelled to escape them again; and, pressing a remembrance into
                        the hand of Mrs. Dean, and disregarding her expostulations at my rudeness, I
                        vanished through the kitchen, as they opened the house-door, and so, should
                        have confirmed Joseph in his opinion of his fellow-servant's gay
                        indiscretions, had he not, fortunately, recognised me for a respectable
                        character, by the sweet ring of a sovereign at his feet.</p>
                    <p>My walk home was lengthened by a diversion in the direction of the kirk. When
                        beneath its walls, I perceived decay had made progress, even in seven
                        months—many a window showed black gaps deprived of glass; and slates jutted
                        off, here and there, beyond the right line of the roof, to be gradually
                        worked off in coming autumn storms.</p>
                    <p>I sought, and soon discovered, the three <pb n="416"/>head-stones on the
                        slope next the moor—the middle one, grey, and half buried in heath—Edgar
                        Linton's only harmonized by the turf, and moss creeping up its
                        foot—Heathcliff's still bare.</p>
                    <p>I lingered round them, under that benign sky; watched the moths fluttering
                        among the heath, and hare-bells; listened to the soft wind breathing through
                        the grass; and wondered how any one could ever imagine unquiet slumbers, for
                        the sleepers in that quiet earth.</p>
                </div>
            </div>
        </body>

    </text>
</TEI>